IMAGE EVALUATION
TEST TARGET (MT-S)
/.
^A
&0
1.0 If KS I
I.I
2.5
■^ 1^ 12.2
:!: i;£ 12.0
IL25 ■ 1.4
- 6"
1.6
m
^
//,
.^
.' ^
.>.^
<*
U.A
CIHM/ICMH
Microfiche
Series.
CIHM/ICMH
Collection de
microfiches.
Canadian Institute for Historical Microreproductions / Institut Canadian de microreproductions historiques
V
Technical and Bibliographic Notes/Notes techniques et bibliographiques
The Institute has attempted to obtain the best
original copy available for filming. Features of this
copy which may be bibliographically unique,
which may alter any of the images in the
reproduction, or which may significantly change
the usual method of filming, are checked below.
L'Institut a microfilm^ le meilleur exemplaire
qu'il lui a 6t6 possible de se procurer. Les details
de cet exemplaire qui sont peut-dtre uniques du
point de vua bibllographique, qui peuvent modifier
une image reproduite, ou qui peuvent exiger une
modification dans la m6thode normale de filmage
sont indiquAs ci-dessous.
U
Coloured covers/
Couverture de couleur
I I Covers damaged/
D
Couverture endommag6e
Covers restored and/or laminated/
Couverture restaur6e et/ou pellicul6e
I I Cover title missing/
D
D
D
D
D
Le titre de couverture manque
I I Coloured maps/
D
Cartes giographiques en couleur
Coloured ink (i.e. other than blue or black)/
Encre de couleur (i.e. autre que bisue ou noire)
Coloured plates and/or illustrations/
Planches et/ou illustrations en couleur
Bound with other material/
Reli6 avec d'autres documents
Tight binding may cause shadows or distortion
along interior margin/
La reliure serr^e peut causer de I'ombre ou de la
distortion le long de la marge int^rieure
Blank leaves added during restoration may
appear within the text. Whenever possible, these
have been omitted from filming/
II se peut que certaines pages blanches ajoutias
lors d'une restauration apparaissent dans le texte,
mais, lorsque cela 6tait possible, ces pages n'ont
pas 6t6 filmies.
Additional comments:/
Commentaires supplimentaires.-
□ Coloured pages/
Pages de couleur
n Pages damaged/
Pages endommagies
n Pages restored and/or laminated/
Pages restaurdes et/ou pellicul6es
//
V
Pagos discoloured, stained or foxed/
Pages d6color6es, tachet6es ou piqu6es
n Pages detached/
Pages ddtachdes
Showthrough/
Transparence
I I Quality of print varies/
Quality indgale de I'impression
Includes supplementary material/
Comprend du materiel supplimentaire
Only edition available/
Seule Mition disponible
Pages wholly or partially obscured by errata
slips, tissues, etc., have been refilmed to
ensure the best possible image/
Les pages totalement ou partiellement
obscurcies par un feuillet d'errata, une pelure,
etc.. ont 6t6 filmies A nouveau de fa^on h
obtenir la meilleure image possible.
This item is filmed at the reduction ratio checked below/
Ce document est filmd au taux de reduction indiquA ci-dessous.
10X 14X 18X 22X
26X
30X
y
12X
16X
20X
24X
28X
32X
The copy filmed here has been reproduced thanks
to the generosity of:
Ralph Pickard Bell Library
Mount Allison University
L'exemplaire film6 fut reproduit grdce d la
g6n6roslt6 de:
Ralph Pickard Bell Library
Mount Allison University
The images appearing here are the best quality
possible considering the condition and legibility
of the original copy and in keeping with the
filming contract specifications.
Les images suivantes ont dtd reproduites avec le
plus grand soin, compte tenu de la condition at
de la nettetd de l'exemplaire film6, et en
conformity avec les conditions du contrat de
filmage.
Original copies in printed paper covers are filmed
beginning with the front cover and ending on
the last page with a printed or illustrated impres-
sion, or the back cover when appropriate. All
other original copies are filmed beginning on the
first page with a printed or illustrated impres-
sion, and ending on the last page with a printed
or illustiated impression.
Les exemplaires originaux dont la couverture en
papier est imprim6e sont film6s en commenpant
par le premier plat et en terminant soit par la
dernidre page qui comporte une empreinte
d'impression ou d'illustration, soit par le second
plat, salon le cas. Tous las autres exemplaires
originaux sont filmds en commenpant par la
premidre page qui comporte une empreinte
d'impression ou d'illustration et en terminant par
la dernidre poge qui comporte une telle
empreinte.
The last recorded frame on each microfiche
shall contain the symbol —•^- (meaning "CON-
TINUED "), or the symbol V (meaning "END"),
whichever applies.
Un des symboles suivants apparaitra sur la
dernidre image de cheque microfiche, selon le
cas: ie symboie — ^ signifie "A SUIVRE", le
symbole V signifie "FIN".
Maps, plates, charts, etc., may be filmed at
different reduction ratios. Those too large to be
entirely included in one exposure are filmed
beginning in the upper left hand corner, left to
right and top to bottom, as many frames as
required. The foiiowin*. .u3t;rams illustrate the
method:
Les cartes, planches, tableaux, etc., peuvent dtre
film6s d des taux de reduction diffdrents.
Lorsque le document est trop grand pour dtre
reproduit en un seul clichd, il est film6 d partir
de Tangle supdrieur gauche, de gauche d droite,
et de haut en bas, en prenant le nonibre
d'images ndcessaire. Les diagrammes suivants
illustrent la mdthr de.
1
2
3
1
2
3
4
5
6
/
TRAVEL AND TALK
VOL. I.
BOOKS BY THE REV. H. R. HAWEIS, M.A.
THOUGHTS FOR THE TIMES.
SPEECH IN SEASON.
CURRENT COIN.
ARROWS IN THE AIR. .«
POETS IN THE PULPIT.
UNSECTARIAN FAMILY PRAYERS.
WINGED WORDS.
THE LIGHT OF THE AGES.
THE STORY OF THE FOUR.
THE PICTURE OF JESUS.
THE PICTURE OF PAUL.
THE CONQUERING CROSS.
THE KEY OF DOCTRINE AND PRACTICE.
THE BROAD CHURCH.
MUSIC AND MORALS.
MY MUSICAL LIFE.
ASHES TO ASHES.
AMERICAN HUMORISTS.
PET ; or, Pastimes and Penalties.
LIFE OF SIR MORELL MACKENZIE.
jfH'v. —
,-[
TK
\
MY
AU
NE^
TRAX'EL AND TALK
1885-93-95
MY HUNDRED THOUSAND MILES OF TRAVEL
THROUGH
AMERICA CANADA
AUSTRALIA NEW ZEALAND
TASMANIA
CEYLON
AND
THE PARADISES OF THE PACIFIC
BY
THE REV. H. R. HAWEIS, M.A.
INCUMBENT OK ST. JAMES's, WESTMORELAND ST.
AUTHOR OF 'thoughts FOR THE TIMES ' ' MUSIC AND MORALS' ETC.
IN TWO VOLUMES. - VOL. I.
UNiV£R3"'""V \
WITH TWO PORTRJAITS _ ^ . , '
; MOUNT ALUSuN, j
LIBRARY. ^
LONDON ^
CHATTO .i- ^vr^•DU^. laCCAnfLl.Y
NEW YORK ; DODD, MEAD, & COMPANY
1896
fRINTED HV
SrOTTISWOODU AND CO., NEW-STREET S<^VAUF.
LONDON
PREFACE
I HAVE no preface to offer— no explanation to
make.
These volumes soeak for themselves : those who
are interested in me and my travels and observations
will read them, and the others can leave them alone.
Writers arc sometimes vain enough to imagine
that what amuses them must necessarily amuse other
people : I am under no such delusion, and am there-
fore quite prepared to receive with resignation and
meekness the neglect of the public and the strictures
of the Press, or vice versa.
I have yielded, perhaps rashly, to the representa-
tions of my publishers, and admitted two portraits.
For the first I am indebted to the kindness of Mr.
Frederick A. Atkins, editor of 'The Young Man,'
and for the second to the eminent photographers^
Messrs. Russell & Sons of Baker Street.
These volumes only include my travels outside
Europe from 1885 to 1895.
[I
VI
Travel and Talk
I have two more volumes in view dealing with
my travels in Europe from 1855 to 1885. But as I
wish to conciliate everybody. I do not promise to
publish them-I only threaten to do so.
Queen's IIousr, Chelsea
1896.
H. R. HAWEIS, M.A.
I
CONTENTS
OF
THE FIRST VOLUME
BOSTON
I. Who am I
Called to Boston, U.S.A., to i
deliver the Lowell Lectures I
PACK
in 1885, through Howells,
the Novelist . , , j
IL My First Voyage, 1865
A White Sta«- Ship, 'TheGer- i The Young Wic'ovv
•"''^"•c' • • . . 2 I English Cads
The Little Frenchman . . 3 j Mr. Henry Arthur Jones;
A Death on Board . • 4 j Playvright
Turner and the Black Sails . 6 I Mr. Howard Pa-l. Emcrfxiner
6
6
7
7
in. On the Hub of the Universe
Robbed at Boston . . S * Hard Science '
Good Advice . . .8 Winds !
My First Platform Appearance j Crowded Audiences
at Boston . . . 9 | My Belgian Bell .
IV. Boston Days
to
the
9
II
12
My Distinguished Listeners . 14
Preaching at Boston . .15
At Phillips Brooks's . .16
At Harvard University . .16
At Cambridge Theological
College . . . .15
Boston Watch- dogs Bark worse
than they Bite . . .15
V. Dr. Phillips Brooks
'Moth-eaten Old Angels . 16 ; P. Brooks's Preaching
P. Brooks's Aloofness
Our Last Meeting
17
17 I P. Brooks and the Doctrine
17 ; of the Trinity . . .19
VIU
Travel and Talk
VL Phillips Brooks's Letters
Irvitation to Preach
On Tangier
PAGE
. 21
. 21
Gratitude for Sympathy
Sick Dog's Ingratitude .
VI L
My iMrst Meeting .
Hohiies on Margaret Fuller
Holmes on Edgar Allan Foe
Holmes on Emerson
On Bostonians
Dr. Oliver Wendell Holmes
. 28 ' ' I Live on Interruptions'
29 Agreeable Egotism
29 Holmes as a Chinese Clod
Holmes and the Bishop
' Wear a good Hat '
PAGE
• 23
. 26
30
30
29
29
31
31
31
VIII. Holmes's Table Talk
On Lecturing . . .32
On Longfellow and Emerson. 33
Emerson's desultory Method
of Composition . . .34
IX. O. W. Holmes's Letters
On ' My Musical Life ' . • 35 : Last Letter .
Declines to Lecture in : Last Poem .
London . . . -37 Farewell Visit
Evangeline '
X. Longfellow's MSS.
, 43 I ' Hiawatha '
XL Bryant, Longfellow, Emerson
Henry Ward Beecher offers ( Letter from Longfellow ,
Me his Pulpit . . • 44 i Letter from Emerson .
Letter from Bryant . • 45 , Missed Both .
XII. Farewell, Boston !
ivcception at the Conservatoire 46 | Speeches
39
40
41
44
46
46
46
55
NEW YORK
XIII. Courtlandt Palmer
The Nineteenth
Club
Visit to England .
Century | Hears Henry Ward Beecher
. 56 I Preach . . . .60
. 57 Presentiments of Death . . 61
XIV. Henry Ward Beecher
H. W. Beecher in London, I Estimate of H. W. Beecher
62 I A Sermon at Brooklyn .
1866-86
De Witt
Australia
Talmage in
I edit His Sermons
62 I A Letter from Beecher .
XV. Andrew Carnegie
A Supper at Delmonico's . 69 | Canvas-back Ducks
63
65
67
67
70
Contents of the First Volume
IX
XVI, IIeber Newton
PAGE
At Long Island . . .70
A Broad Church Theologian . 7 1
Bishop Potter suspends his
Course . . . .72
Heber Newton on Father
Ignatius . . . .72
PACK
Newton on Ultramontanes . 74
Newton on the Archbishop
of Canterbury . . .74
An Excuse for the Bishops . 75
An explanatory Letter from
Hebe Newton . . .76
XVII. Dr, Henry Charles Potter, Bishop
Influence of Bishop II. C. | Dr. Peabody and Arch-
Potter
. 78 I bishop Tait
79
XVIII. Presiden'i "rover Cleveland
Is Cleveland an ' England-
Hater'? . . . .
Opening of Congress, 1885 .
Visit to the White House
I Cleveland's Estimate of
80 j (Speaker) Carlisle and
80 I Abrani Hewitt, Canon
Si Farrar, Parnell . . .82
Interview with the President . 82 ' Miss Cleveland
86
XIX. Abram Hewitt
Invites Me to New Jersey . 88 j A Letter from Sir Morell
A Private Railroad . . 88 j Mackenzie . . .90
Abram Hewitt and Sir Morell | Interesting Letters from Abram
Mackenzie . . • 89 j Hewitt . , , .91
The Fighter ot Monopolies
An able Speaker .
XX. Charles Sumner
93 j Sumner's Visit to St. James's,
94 I Marylebone . . .95
XXI. John Bigelow
My Visit to John Bigelow on j Dinner at New York
Hudson River . . . 96 | Conkling
96
96
XXII. Mrs. I011N Bigelow
Her Clever Eccentricities . 98
Her Personal Attractions . 99
Luncheon at Queen's House . 100
Mrs. Bigelow and Ouida . 102
XXIII. Mrs. 'Columbia'
Letter from John Bigelow . 104
Mrs. Barnard at Home . 105
Worn out .
Our Escape
105
105
A Select Girls'
Miss Bennett
School
XXIV. Ogontz
107
107
The Girls' Rooms
Our Talks and Walks
108
109
Travel and Talk
XXV. Thk School Theatre
My Lectures
PAGE
"3
XXVL Fare\n.^i.i., Ocontz
My Testimonial TJouquet .1141 An Ogontz Visit to Queen's
True Sentiment . . 114 | House . , .114
XXVIL Cornell University
Professor Corson .
Freedom of Thought
. IIS
. 116
Preachers at Cornell Uni-
versity . . . ,117
Two Sermons
XXVIIL Cornell Chapel
. 119 I The Professor of Elocution . 120
XXIX. My Cornell Sermon on Religious Consciousness,
WITH A Survey of the Religions of the World 131
Girl Students
Preaching at Vassar and
Poughkeepsie . . -133
A Glass of Sherry . • 134
XXX. Vassar College
132 ' Lecturing as a Total Ab-
stamer . . . -135
Charles Kingsley at Vassar . 135
Principal Taylor's Letter . 136
Brynmawr .
American and
Girls
XXXL American Girls
English
137
13S
The Secret of Intermar-
riages
Lost Opportunities
. 13S
• 139
Undervalued
XXXII. Walt Whitman
. 140 I Ilis Merits
141
XXXIII. Walt at Home
Walt in 1885 . . . 143 j Walt on Browning, Tenny-
Visit to Camden to see Him. 143 | son and En^erson . . 143
XXXIV. Niagara
Free of Toll
Secret of the Rapids
145
146
Captain Webb's Death . 147
A Hell of Waters . .148
XXXV. The Cave of the Winds
A Million Tons of Water
A Perilous Descent
147
148
Tyndall on the Cave of the
Winds . . . .151
Contents of the First Volume
XXXVI. Lectures and Agents in America
Behind the Scenes
Matthew Arnold .
Bradlaugh .
George Augustus Sala .
WAGE
• 152 i Charles Dickens .
• ^>3 Brandram .
■ 154 Dean Farrar
• '54 , ^Spurgeon declines America
XXXVIL Profits
To draw or not to draw . 155
Royal rnstitution Lecturers . 156
Divers Methods .
The Fatigues of Travel
XI
PAGE
154
'54
154
156
157
XXXVIII. Reporters
Blunders pardonable and un- I Reporters should be wel-
• 159 i corned and assisted . ,160
pardonable
MONTREAL
XXXIX. Canada
A Newspaper 'Special' . 161 I Specimen of some « Per-
Smallpox at Montreal . . 163 1 'sonals ' . . ,53
XL. Kingston
President Grant of ; The Kingston Boys express
Kmgston University . 164 { their Feelings . ^ ^ 165
XLL The Honourable John Arisott
I'^Br^tkh'^ p" ^'''''' •, u- '^7 Sir Charles Nicholson and
World """'' '^' . ' '^' Honourable John
A,i™ \ r^'- ' • ^^7 Abbott on Emigration 171
Advantages to Emigrants . 16S , The American Thfeat [ 172
XLII. Mr. Abbott's Opinions
A Burning Question . • 174 | The British Government .174
XLIIL Sir William Dawson
^'u7?r'''^'5, ^^^'' ^"^^ ^'' Dawson at
William Flower • . 175
Sir W. Dawson's Early
Passion for Natural
History . . . . I??
Sir Charles Lyell ." ^ 175
Museum
Discoveries .
Writings
A reverent Mind .
The British Association
Montreal
176
177
177
179
179
xu
Travel and Talk
CHICAGO
XLIV. What is America ?
Where is ' Unllcd'?
XLV. My Second \'oyagk
Summons to Cliica£To . . 183 ' Accidents, Reason of .
Mr. Ismay .... 184 Mr. Ismay's ' Idleness '
Mr. Ismay on the White A Suggestion to Mr. Ismay
Star Line . . . 185 . How to save Waste
XLVL On Board the 'Majestic'
Provisions for a Voyage . 191
English and American Girls
on Board . . . .192
Pastimes
Captain Parsell .
The Boy that ate
XLVII. Reflections
Is Chicago really so Bad ? .195
Old World Wickedness . 195
New World Wickedness
Leo XIII, 's Perspicacity
PACK
182
186
189
190
190
192
193
194
19s
196
XLVIII. The Parliament ol" Religions
The Conferences . . .197
Mazoomda — Dr. Momerie . 197
Cardinal Gibbons . .197
Dharmapala and Vive-
kananda . . . .198
' Cocksure ' Cook . .198
Vivekananda's Speech . .199
A Cosmopolitan Brother-
hood , . . .201
XLIX. My Speech
Process of Reporting . . 202 I The Roman Catholic Bishop 205
The Japanese Theologian . 204 | The Mormons . . . 206
L. Verbatim Rei-ort of My Speech
Music a Growing Art
. 207 I Patriotism in Music
21
Connection between Music i Gregorian Chants in Eng-
and Morals . . . 209 | land . . . .215
Thought without Feeling is | Let the People Sing . .216
Dead . . . . 210 i Music Controls and Purifies
National Music .
213
Emotion
LI. The Chicago Exhibition
Illusive Beauty . . . 219 | Temper of the Architects
LI I. A Day at the Fair
Chinese Theatre .
Brazilian Dancing Girls
Ferris Wheel
217
219
220
Chairing .
. 221
220
200,000 to be fed
. 222
221
The Beauty Show
. 223
Contents of the First Volume xiii
The Storm Gathers
The Storm Bursts
LI 1 1. A SliNSATION
• AGE
• 225
Moral of the Fair and the
PAOK
220
Parliament
227
A Retr(>.pcct
I'aris, 1797 ,
Madrid, 1827, ^:c.
LIV. Some othkr ExiiiniriONs
. 228
. 229
230
Dublin, 1850
I'aris, 1849 .
Birmingham, 1849
230
232
LV. PiUNCi: Alhkrt's Gknius
Sir Robcrl Peel and Mr. The Queen's Anxiety . 234
Labouchcre . . . 233 ♦ The Prince looks 111 ' . 234
Colonel Sibthorpe and the Cole and Scott Russell . 234
O'Oorman . . . 233 Joseph Paxton 'a Common
Lord Granville and JSir , Gardener's Boy ' . . 234
Stafford Northcote . . 233 | The Government . . . 234
LVI. Tin: Great ExninrnoN, 1851
Prince Albert's great Tri-
umph .... 235
Prince Albert's Speech . 235
South Kensington Museum . 236
Fisheries, Ilcaltheries.
Colinderies, (S:c.
236
LVII. CoLLAi'SE OF British Phlegm
The Morose Briton . . 237 | Music and Bright Eyes
Ices and Champagne .
237 ! Jubilee Weather.
238
238
LVIII. The Colour Art
Fireworks .... 240 i A Tribute to ' Music and
Mr. A. Wallace Rimington j Morals' .... 240
and his Colour Organ . 240 j An independent Art . . 240
LIX. Fire and Water Colour
Sir Francis Bolton . .241
Coloured Fountains from
below .... 241
The Crystal Palace
Sir George Grove
Old Memories
• 243
• 244
• 245
Skeletons
MORMON LAND
LX. Utah Desert and Frisco Town
. 247 I Degraded Indians
The Mint Village
The Rev. Dr. Church
LXI. A Mormon Invitation
. 248 I The Mormon Elders
248 I An Invitation
• 247
249
-49
XIV
Travel and Talk
Lxir.
TAGE PAfJE
My early Mormon Lee- | President Q. Cannon and
lures
249 I Bishop Clawson
LXIIl.
Talk with the Polygamists . 251 ' General M'Cook differs
The Mormon Theory . , 255 A Manifesto
My Talk with the Prophet Mormon Murders
and Twelve Apostles . 255 , Conflicting Evidence .
250
255
256
256
257
LXIV. Risk of Joseph Smith
Joseph's Visions 258
LXV. Thk Uook of Mormon
The Golden Plates . , 259 | Another Account . . 260
LXVL
The New Church at Fayette . 262 | Anecdotes of Joseph Smith . 263
Troubles
Joseph in Danger
LXVII. New Sion, 1833
. 264 I Expulsion from Ne\y Sion
. 266
LXVIII. Nauvoo, 'the Beautiful'
First False Stej) . . . 269 j Second False Step
LXIX. Causes of Unpopularity
Mormons earliest Aboli- I Mormons Polygamists
tionists ...
Mormons Spiritualists .
. 269 j Mormons against Political
. 269 I Corruption
LXX. Death of the Prophet Joseph Smith
An Investigation . . 270 Trial ....
Forebodings . . . 270 Imprisonment
Flight . . . .271 Assassination
Return . . . .271 Funeral
LXXI. Estimate of Joseph Smith
Was He an Impostor ? . 273
Joseph and Occultism . . 274
Joseph a Strong Medium
Smith's honafdc^ f
266
269
269
270
272
272
273
273
275
275
LXXII. The Exodus
Murderers Acquitted .
Arrest of Brigham Young
Sorrow on the Mississippi
A Terrible Pilgrimage .
276 Spring
277 I Last Days of Nauvoo .
277 i Sufferings of the Fugitives . 281
278 , Touching Episode . . 282
278
279
( .7
V
'•a
Contents of the First Volume
XV
LXXIII. Arrivai- at Salt Laku
July 23, 1847
City mapped out
Early Dangers
Indians
rAc.r. PAGK,
. 282 Arrival of Brigham Young . 285
. 283 Ilis Wisdom . . .286
. 283 Ikighani appointed Govcr-
. 284 , nor, 1 85 1 . . . 287
LXXIV. Thf, Grkat Reeellion (?)
Shady U.S.A. Judges at
Brigham's Wrath and
Salt Lake . . • 288 Pluck
Blunder of President Ikigham's Statesm.inship
Buchanan . . . 28S Hrigham's Triumph
An Army despatched against Spoiling the Egyptians
the Mormons . . . 2S9 , ^ Sic vos iion voOis^
290
292
293
294
294
LXX\'. U.S.A. Prksikents and the Mormons
Lincoln . . . • 294 [ Grant
295
LXXVI. The Eight for Polygamy
Persecution
Ruined Homes
296
296
Timely Revelation
Polygamy abandoned
297
297
Completeness
Life . . ,
His Zeal for Education
LXXVII. Brigiiam's Last Days
of his
. 298
. 298
His Sermon on taking the
Sacrament . . . 298
His last Words . . . 298
A Letter from W. Cannon .
I arrive at Salt Lake City .
A Drive with the Mormon
Ladies . . . .301
Charming Mrs. Goesbeck . 302
' Music and Morals ' at Salt
Lake .... 303
LXXVHI
299
360
General M'Cook again . 303
The Mormons give nic a
Concert .... 303
I Lecture to the Mormons . 303
Mormon Horrors discounted 304
Audi alteram part en i . . 304
LXXIX. Estimate of Mormonism
Leading Truths . . . 305
That God reveals Himself
now .... 305
That there is a living Com-
munion of Saints .
306
The City of the Saints
That He sends Prophets thrown open . . . 307
now .... 305 Entrance of the Christians . 30S
That He enshrines Truth Introduction of Gin Palaces,
in Sacred Books now . 306 ' Houses of 111 Eame, and
That He ever Atones for j I'olicemen . . . 30S
Sin Original and Actual 306 1 Utah Territory proclaimed a
Hope for the Dead
306 i State, 1896
308
XVI
Travel and Talk
I
PULPn AND PLATFORM OUTRE MER
San Francisco, 1893
Hcatcn Tracks avoided . 310 | I it^nore Church I'ai lies
LXXX. At Trinity Cihkcii, I'RAncisco, 1894
Preach at New Orleans «•// Crowds at Francisco .
route
311
Various Criticisms
LXXXL Ai Stanford-Lei.and University
a Girl Graduate . . • 314
My University Sermon . 315
A (jenial Congregation . 316
1 )can Stanley's Mot
Preaching at S. Jose
Rev. Dr. Wakefield
lAC.K
3»o
311
312
316
316
316
LXXXIL The Bishoi' or California Criticised
Preaching at the Metro- * Newspaper Enterprise' . 318
politan Temple . -317 Bishop Nichols . . ■ 321
' 2,000 turned away ' . . 317 1 My courteous Reception by
American 'Gassing' . . 317 | the Bishop and Clergy of
Nonconformists invite me to the Diocese . . .322
Preach. . . . 317 ' I Address the Episcopal
The Bishop disapproves -317 ' Rectors on Revivalism . 323
I submit . . . . 317 I Address the Presbyterian
Letters from the Bishop . 318 1 Clergy on Sectarianism
324
LXXXIIL Major Hooper
I Address the Ministers of ] Major Hooper's
all Religious Denomina-
tions by Request . . 329
kind
Protection
Saved from Friends
• 329
• 329
LXXXIV. My American Agents
My Hebrew Secretary . . 330
Espionage . . . • 33^ 1
Lionising . . . -331
Lectures Handicapped . 332
Invitation from the Earl of
Aberdeen . . . 333
A Rush from Vancouver to
Winnipeg . . .333
LXXXV. The Rev. Dr. Garrett
Preaching at Seattle . . 336 1 On Colonel IngersoU in
Aft'ecting Scene . . . 336 Seattle Opera House . 339
Overflowing Congregations . 336 Public Reception at Van-
The Rev. Dr. (Barrett's couver .... 339
Letter .... 337 ' Note on Order of Events . 340
VfER
I'Af.K,
'S
. 310
i04
*
• 311
•
. 312
Y
,
. 316
•
. 316
•
• 316
[SKD
se'
. 318
• 321
tion
l.y
;icrgy
of
^->T
*
• J--
pisco
)al
lism
• j2j
byterian
lism
• 324
k
ind
.
• 329
•
• 329
'^arl of
333
iver to
•
333
oil in
e
Van-
339
nts
339
340
TRAVEL AND TALK
BOSTON
I
Who am I— that I should be called to Boston,
U.S.A., Hub of the Universe, to deliver the I^owell
Lectures ?
' Ah, well ! ' I muttered approvingly with a little
self-satisfied sigh, ' my humble merits have at last
been discovered ! '
' But stay,' says a voice within, * did Boston dis-
cover you — or did you '
* Well — yes, I did — in a sort of way. I do remember
me now that I desired much to see Boston, per-
adventure to lecture at the '
' And you let them know it ? '
' Hush ! Have you not heard that no one who
offers himself to Boston is ever asked to be Lowell
Lecturer } It would be like offering yourself to the
Royal Institution for a show Friday night. Still,
I admit just dropping a hint in a postscript to good
Mr. Howells the novelist — who in a casual con-
versation with Mr. Augustus Lowell — and so on.'
But the ocean rolled between.
VOL. 1 J5
■9
Travel and Talk
II
Mv First Voyage, 1885. — I step out of my Liver-
pool hotel and into my * White Star ' nppartcmcnt vieublc
— what is the difference ? The h"[^ht, being electric,
is better ; the bells are more frequently answered, and
consequently oftencr rung; the attendants are more
civil, and, under trying circumstances which I may
allude to presently, more sympathetic ; the food is
plentiful, cheap, and excellent ; coffee-rooms, smoking-
rooms, bath-rooms within easy reach. A pianoforte
and perpetual sea-motion seem almost the only draw-
backs — but then some people on board are sure to
like the one without minding the other ; to them a
few days on the Atlantic between Liverpool and New
York on one of these vast oceanic hotels must be
happiness unalloyed.
For about a day and a half I was engaged with
the steward on some urgent affairs of so private a
nature that no one except the doctor was admitted to
see me. His remarks were conclusive and valuable ;
and finding, towards the end of the second day, after
prolonged, indefatigable, and I may say sleepless
attention, a considerable abatement in the pressure
of business, I concluded to dine at the general tabic.
Up to this time I had been too busy to dine at all.
The * lots ' on board were of a mixed character.
The noisy lot were less objectionable than usual,
headed by a vivacious Frenchman, who by day or-
ganised as many of the male folk as were willing into
rope-pulling and other rollicking bands on deck. By
night, seated at the piano— for he turned out to be an
organist with a fatally retentive memory — the versa-
1
my Liver-
ictit meiiblc
rr electric,
vcrcd, and
arc more
ch I may
lie food is
, smokin^-
pianoforte
only draw-
re sure to
to them a
d1 and New
s must be
^acred with
private a
.dmitted to
I valuable ;
day, after
sleepless
pressure
ral table.
inc at all.
character,
lan usual,
)y day or-
[illing into
leek. By
it to be an
Ithe versa-
Bo.STON 3
tile Celt would extemporise upon every theme from
' Lohengrin ' to ' Yankee Doodle,' and, as he was
not difficult about encores^ ten o'clock, late for on
shipboard, would find him still surrounded by two
or three musical fanatic^, pounding away at the
' Dame Blanche ' or ' Faust,' to the confusion of the
sleepless and unmusical in adjoining state-rooms.
He was a right cheery man, and although 1 abhorred
the variations on the ' White Lady,' I owed him no
grudge. One by one the sullen Teutons on board
gave in to his irresistible vivacity, and found them-
selves careering about deck next morning, on some
wild-goose game under the little man's despotic
orders, like so many schoolboys.
O proud Britons ! you never, never will be
slaves, we know ; but you had to surrender to that
impetuous little Frenchman, with his mischievous,
laughing mouth, and his bristly, clean-trimmed beard.
When you mobbed him, crushed his hat over his
eyes, and finally, in your own rough and peculiar
horse-play, hoisted him aloft and bore him kicking
and laughing to the bulwarks with fell intent to
hurl him overboard, the Frenchman still conquered ;
for had he not shaken you out of your national
stiffness and reserve, and was he not, as he stood
waving his crushed hat with imperturbable good
humour after the fray, the very embodiment of what
is almost your national bete noire, ' Ic don de la
gaiete * ?
There were sadder elements on board. The
' Germanic ' was pretty full. After the first day or
two, the splendid dining-room was well furnished
with guests. The third day there came in late a
B 2
4 Travel and Talk
slender emaciated young man, leaning on the arm of
a pretty young woman of about twenty-five. She
arranged his cushions for him, and he sat very still at
the dinner table. His tall pale forehead, and large
dark eyes that seemed to take little note of what was
going on, gave him a statuesque and even cadaverous
appearance. After dinner he remained seated in the
dining-room, with his wife beside him. She spoke to
him occasionally, even read him little bits out of
some book, apparently humorous. But he hardly
noticed her, and she soon relapsed into silence, pre-
tending to read, as it seemed to me, with a forced
composure of face. Suddenly she laid down her book,
rose, and helped the invalid to his feet. He was very
weak, and staggered out of the room supported ten-
derly by his wife. All eyes were turned towards them
for a moment ; the general talk flagged ; the saloon
door closed. We never saw him alive again. That
night he died. I learned from the doctor that he had
gone abroad to some German springs for his health,
and, getting worse, had started, hoping only to live
through the passage, and die at home. At eleven
o'clock next morning the poor young wife sent for
me, and I went to her room. He was lying like a
marble effigy, not much more still, not much more
pale, than he had looked a few hours before at the
dinner table, but the eyes were closed, and the light was
gone out for ever. So strange it seemed— and she
sat tearless. For months, weeks, and days she had
waited for this : it had come now, and she could not
weep. But she could talk a little, enough to tell of
two lives that once had been supremely blest, and now
she could even bear to speak of her irreparable loss —
it was better so. At such times we are all utterly
.»
Boston
5
e arm of
ve. She
ry still at
ind large
what was
idaverous
:ed in the
; spoke to
ts out of
le hardly
nice, prc-
a forced
her book,
2 was very
Drted ten-
ards them
he saloon
tin. That
lat he had
lis health,
y to live
!^\t eleven
I sent for
like a
uch more
)re at the
light was
and she
she had
:ould not
to tell of
, and now
ble loss —
11 utterly
helpless to comfort one another — the help must come
from within and from above. So we knelt down by
the body at rest. She could not bear to have him
laid in his coffin and no prayer said ; and after that I
left. About two o'clock next day 1 looked down from
the upper deck, and noticed a great stir among the
passengers. Four sailors passed through the crowd
bearing a coffin draped with a Union Jack for a pall.
The young wife's entreaties that her husband should
not be lowered into the sea in a shotted hammock had
prevailed with our good captain, and the coffin was
placed in a boat swung on deck. The poor young
lady was singularly composed and reasonable ; she
shrank from leaving her room or facing any of the
passengers. But in the darkness she allowed herself
to be brought up on deck to breathe the fresh air, and
she stood for some time looking towards the boat
which contained all that she cared for in this world.
I am told that deaths on board these great ocean
steamers are common enough. People crossing and
recrossing for their health are not unfrequently sur-
prised by that black privateer at whose summons
commercial and pleasure crafts alike have to strike
their flags.
I continued pacing the deck for some time. There
was no moon ; the ship's lanterns gave a vague light ;
the stars were out ; a few people lingered in their
folding chairs on deck ; the dim boat hoisted astern
with its sad freight seemed to draw me. About this
time last night she had closed her book suddenly, and
he had risen to take his last walk in this world, and
to-night the book of his life lay closed, the story
abruptly broken off at t) e age of thirty-two, with how
6 Travel and Talk
many chapters unwritten ! As I turned round and
looked up at the tall masts faintly visible against the
sky, and then over into the gloomy waters through
which wc were rushing, the sails of the * Germanic '
were set ; the ship's lights glared fitfully through the
black smoke ; there was something inexpressibly
gloomy and funereal about it all. I was irresistibly
reminded of Turner's ' Burial of Wilkic at Sea.' In
that picture the drooping half-furled sails arc seen to
be jet blacky and I have heard this condemned as
unnatural, and done for scenic effect. When asked
about it, Turner merely remarked that he was obliged
to paint the sails y^/ black. Above me now the great
square sails, white by day, stood out against the dim
starlit sky. They \\zxQ.jet black. Turner was right,
as usual ; and his critics were wrong, as usual.
The poor young widow had gone to her cabin,
not far from the dining-room, to spend her first
terrible night alone. She wanted to keep the coffin
with her one more night, but the captain was peremp-
tory, and she was resigned. We are in the habit of
sneering at French frivolity. On entering the saloon
I noticed the piano was shut. The little French
organist was sitting at the other end of the room
chatting with a few of his particular cronies, all very
quiet and subdued. He never opened the piano
again during the voyage. His gaiety seemed to have
received a check from which it could not recover.
True-hearted little man ! you never sought to know
that poor bereaved lady, but your respectful tribute
was not thrown away upon her. You did what you
could. That very night a noisy party of girls and
vulgar men squabbled over dominoes and cards till
Boston
•ound and
gainst the
s through
ijcrmanic '
roucrh the
xprcssibly
irrcsjstibly
Sea.' In
are seen to
lemned as
^hen asked
^'asobh'ged
/ the great
st the dim
was right,
ual.
her cabin,
I her first
the cofifin
IS peremp-
ic habit of
he saloon
e Frencli
the room
s, all very
the piano
d to have
)t recover.
t to know
ul tribute
what you
girls and
cards till
■'.V
■1-V'
past eleven o'clock, laughing and joking boisterously,
close to the poor lady's room. They were English.
Mr. Henry Arthur Jones was on board ; he was
going to New York to bring out* Saints and Sinners/
which had lately had such a run in London. He
doubted whether the satire on Dissent would be
appreciated in America, where all sects are equal, or
are supposed to be. Mr. Howard Paul and I did
our best to cheer him up. Indeed, the Americans
are quite as alive as we are to the tyranny of the con-
gregation over the minister, and to the occasional
vulgarity of the lay jack-m-office under the Voluntary
system in the New Republic ; and accordingly ' Saints
and Sinners' took in New York as well as in London.
Chit-chat, reading, writing and routine on board ;
an occasional unknown ship in sight on the horizon ; a
couple of little brown-and-white birds on our rigging,
so tame that the steerage passengers caught them and
senselessly put an end to their poor little lives. Once
some pretty dolphins sported at a respectful distance
round the vessel ; happily, they could not be caught.
A whale spouted far out to sea ; he was wiser still,
he could not even be seen. The fog-whistle blew
exaspcatingly all one night, and the next morn, the
ninth after leaving Liverpool, through a blinding
sheet of rain, we steamed into New York harbour.
Ill
On the Hub of the Universe.— After a
wretched night in a suffocating sleeping-car I got into
Boston about 9.30 a.m. Not a soul came to meet
ipli
I
I
8
Travel and Talk
me ; nor did I know personally a soul in Boston,
Mr. Howclls, the novelist, being absent at the time. I
put up at a first-class hotel, which shall be nameless,
where I was robbed of about 50/. or more. My
room was entered, my locked box broken open, and
my cashbox abstracted. It being pretty evident
that the hotel-keeper was responsible for the whole
amount, he concluded tardily to pay me half. I
took it and left his hotel. Afem. — Never keep your
money in your box.
I had crept stealthily into Boston ; no reporter
called, no newspaper announced my arrival, till
Monday, when I was due at the Lowell Institute ;
but on Sunday several friends, to whom I had intro-
ductions, found me out, and called. On Monday I
received official visits from the Lowell Institute
Secretary, Dr. Cotting, and Mr. Augustus Lowell, and
went over to see the Huntingdon Hall, where the
Lowell Lectures are delivered. It holds about 1,000
people, and is on the same plan as the London
Institution, Finsbury Circus, but without galleries.
I had heard much of the Lowell audiences. Boston
being the hub of the U.S.A., the Lowell Institute
seems to be the hub of Boston. It is the American
Royal Institution, and, by paying heavier fees, prides
itself on securing the best lecturers and the most
enlightened audiences. I might well tremble at the
ordeal before me. In the course of the day I was
favoured with a great deal of good advice. I was told
the sort of lecture I was to give ; how I was to speak —
not too fast, not too slow ; not too loud, and not too low.
Above all, I was to be learned — abstruse with plenty
of hard science — and in fact prove myself generally
worthy of the aforesaid hub.
in Boston,
he time. I
le nameless,
more. My
1 open, and
tty evident
■ the whole
le half. I
r keep your
no reporter
arrival, till
I Institute ;
had intro-
Monday I
II Institute
Lowell, and
where the
ibout i,ooo
le London
t galleries.
;s. Boston
Institute
American
ees, prides
the most
Die at the
ay I was
I was told
to speak —
ot too low.
ith plenty
generally
i
I
Boston 9
I went back to my hotel and pondered. I had
never had so much good advice in my life. I was a
Royal Institution lecturer ; I fancied I had come to
Boston to instruct, to enlighten. That is the spirit in
which Royal Institution lecturers in London go to
their work. I was quickly undeceived. Boston was
going to instruct me — to judge me, to weigh me in
the balance, and perhaps find me wanting. To be
prompted on my own special topic — to be told how I
was to address an audience after twenty years of
incessant public speaking in London — * Well, well,' I
said to myself, ' this is indeed a novel experience, and
all is no doubt kindly meant.' And so I went home
to tea. But I could not help being a little shaken in
my self-confidence. I never face a new audience
without anxiety and trepidation, and the ample advice
I had received was certainly enough to wreck any
lecturer of ordinary sensibility on a first night.
At last the moment came. I appeared * B 4 a c of
upturned faces,' as poor Artemus used to say. The
theatre was quite full. There was hardly any ap-
plause on my entrance. I had been prepared for
that. Who was I ? A pilgrim and a stranger indeed !
I soon felt as if I hadn't a friend in the world. I tried
a feeble little complimentary allusion to the manager
of the Lowell Institute, which was received in ominous
silence. I quoted one or two of their favourite poets
without a gleam of recognition or sympathy from
that apparently austere assembly. ' This will never
do,' thought I to myself, and at this moment the very
atmosphere seemed to conspire against me. There
were horrid echoes and harmonic sounds ringing in
my ears and mocking my voice. I had a violin on
the table, and a gong — I covered the one and removed
I
'J
10
Travel and Talk
the other. All in vain ; the mocking echoes con-
tinued. I was speaking slowly, accurately, and with
all due dullness, on the anatomy of sound. I remem-
bered the placards stuck up on the organ loft in the
far west, where the rough worshippers were wont to
lounge into church with bowic knives and six-shooters :
' Gentlemen, please not to fire at the organist, as he
is doing his best.' I was doing my best, but, sorely
weighted with good advice — and bent on pleasing the
Bostonians, bad was that best, and dull as ditch-water.
O man, vain are thy words when thou ceasest to
be thyself, and art bent on finding favour, instead
of speaking forth the truth that is in thee, as thy
soul shall prompt thee to utterance, heedless of praise
or blame !
That night I learned my lesson for good. I had not
been, after all, quite a failure. To my surprise, a great
many people seemed pleased with the lecture. I cer-
tainly was not one of them. The next day I received
more good advice, and I was not surprised. The
local allusions, it seems, were out of place ; the
quotations over-trite or trivial ; the learning not
heavy enough. I accepted the rebuke with outward
meekness, and inwardly boiling over. ' Hard science '
alone, it seemed, could redeem me in the eyes of
Boston. This was final — I had apparently failed
to please the hub of the universe. Henceforth I
intended to deliver my message in my own way, and
please myself The next night was more crowded
than the first ; there was not standing room. That
evening I was fortunate enough to establish that
entente cordiale with the Bostonians which was to be
the beginning of a very happy time, and one in which
Boston
II
:hoes con-
, and with
I remem-
loft in the
e wont to
-shooters :
list, as he
)Ut, sorely
easing the
tch-water.
ceasest to
r, instead
ie, as thy
; of praise
I had not
e, a great
e. I cer-
reccived
^d. The
ftce ; the
ing not
outward
science '
eyes of
y failed
eforth I
vay, and
crowded
That
sh that
IS to be
n which
.A
I think I may say I laid the foundation, at least, of
some lifelong friendships. I at once took the bull
by the horns, and warned my hearers not to expect
any hard science in my lectures on music and morals.
Science, I said, was not in my line ; I knew nothing
at all about it. I was musical and I was moral ; and
I then plunged at once into the mission of Art, and
the special place and rationale of music. The more
I pranced through all the rules laid down for my
guidance and correction the more the room kindled,
and the genial applause which greeted me at the
close of my hour emboldened me to believe that I
had this time almost satisfied the hub of the universe.
From that time I looked forward to my nights at the
Lowell Institute with unmixed pleasure. ' We regard
those lectures,' said a past Lowell lecturer to me, * as
ordeals to be got through somehow.' ' I never spent
happier evenings in America,' I replied. Indeed, all
reserve between me and the audience seemed broken
down ; we almost conversed. ' Conference ' would
have been a better word for our meetings. After the
second Wagner lecture, which I concluded with a
dramatic paraphrase of ' Tannhauser,' end of Act III.,
the applause continued, with cries of ' Let's have him
out ! ' until, contrary, I believe, to all Lowell Institute
etiquette, I was brought back to the platform, and
I there remained, shaking hands with my friends,
and answering questions about Wagner, until it was
evident that the audience would not disperse until I
retired. On entering my private room I found it full of
ardent intruders, who were determined not to depart
without my autograph. After that night I got no
more good advice. My audience had delivered me.
12
Travel and Talk
I used to go to my room adjoining the platform
about half an hour before lecture time. I always found
the staircase blocked with people waiting for the
opening of the doors, and one night the crowd was so
great that fears for the staircase were entertained,
and the people after that were always marshalled in
the lobbies below.
My good friend Mr. Augustus Lowell, who treated
me from the first with the most delicate courtesy and
generous appreciation, had been as much annoyed as
I was by the non-arrival of a great Belgian bell, cast
specially for me by Scverin Van Aerschodt, lineal
descendant and representative of the Van den Gheyns
of the sixteenth century, who cast some of the chief
suites of bells that now hang in the noble towers
of Bruges, Ghent, Malines, and Louvain. My first
lecture had been somewhat marred by the absence of
that bell, and Mr. Lowell asked me to give an addi-
tional lecture should the bell arrive in time. After
a rough voyage the bell arrived, and there was re-
joicing at the Lowell Institute. Its fine silvery sur-
face was flecked with green spots of wind, weather
and sea water, but the bell, weighing about five cwt.,
was a treasure, a model of pure smooth casting
with * America ' on one side, a beautiful proud female
profile, with thirteen stars round her head, and an
inscription bearing my name and that of the Lowell
Institute on the other. The good janitor of the
Huntington Hall fell in love with her on the spot,
and with many powders and unguents, brushes and
cloths, set to polishing her up for the evening, until
on the afternoon of my seventh and last Lowell
Lecture he brought me to see her in triumph. As she
1
Boston
^e platform
Iways found
'^nrr for the
"ovvd was so
entertained,
arshalled in
ivho treated
)urtesy and
annoyed as
n bell, cast
lodt, lineal
len Gheyns
f the chief
ible towers
My first
absence of
re an addi-
ne. After
'e was re-
ilvery sur-
1, weather
: five cwt.,
h casting
ud female
and an
le Lowell
of the
he spot,
shes and
ing, until
Lowell
As she
T3
appeared on the platform, swung on rough cross-
beams, she shone like silver, and sounded as mellow
as an old violoncello, giving the fundamental third
and fifth as true as a pianoforte. At night the crowd
was so great that every available stlanding-place was
occupied. Phillips Brooks said to me, * Do you think
I can get in ? ' * You can get in anywhere ! ' I don't
think he was in the least interested in bells or music.
Ho sat in a remote corner. I can see his massive
frame, and his expressive full face, which reminded
me so much of Thackeray, just a little way off, where
the difference between a broken and a sound nose was
not so apparent. Ladies were sitting on the floor
and on the platform. The doors were blocked. I had
brought with me the official pamphlet issued by the
Royal Institution, containing my lecture on bells,
delivered therein, and the substance of this I re-
delivered. On being recalled at the close, I bade
adieu to my sympathetic friends who gathered round
me ; shook more hands and signed more autographs.
By this time I knew many of them by sight. I felt
grateful to them for the happy evenings they had
given me, and they seemed genuinely sorry to part
with me. I had not taught them much * hard science,'
it is true, but they had taught me two things : first,
that Bostonians are often misrepresented by some of
their would-be representatives ; and secondly, that
Bostonian audiences are very much like other culti-
vated listeners, irresponsive to what is dull, but as
sensitive as other people to that touch of nature
which makes the whole world kin. For one soul vt's-
d-vis a thousand there is, after all, but one three-fold
counsel of perfection that, like charity, never fails :
Forget thyself, love thy people, and do thy work.'
u
Travel and Talk
!
tl
IV
Boston Days.— I was pleasantly detained in
Boston a fortnight more by an unexpected request to
fix my own fees, and redeliver three of my Lowell
Lectures. I did so at the Hawthorne Hall before
what I was told was the cvcinc de la crane of Boston :
Oliver Wendell Holmes, Dr. Berthold, Mr. Shattuck,
the venerable and gifted Miss Peabody, Mrs. Ole
Bull, Asa Gray, and other remnants of the brilliant
Emerson, Bryant, and Longfellow circle occupied
prominent seats and vouchsafed no advice. They
gave me what was better, an almost loving attention.
I was the only person, it would seem, aware of my
own defects, and I kept the knowledge to myself.
They did their best to conceal it from me. Miss
Peabody compared me to Hawthorne ; Mr. Putnam,
a leading Boston lawyer, who had kindly managed
the hotel robbery affair for me, assured me that since
the da}'s of Agassiz there had been no such success ;
and Dr. Oliver Wendell Holmes expressed himself
very kindly. ' A model,' he said, ' of what such a
lecture should be.' In the 'hard science' days, a
month before, I had almost been tempted to blow my
own trumpet a little in self-defence, but wisdom and
modesty prevailed. I now felt myself to be one of
Wisdom's justified children. Mem. — Another three-
fold counsel of perfection : ' Don't praise yourself ;
don't run yourself down ; .do'i't defend yourself; —
leave it all to other people.' Have I disregarded this
in chronicling in my diary the verdict of others at a
time, I confess, when my own was doubtful? If so,
Boston
15
ctained in
request to
ny I.owcll
I all before
^f Boston :
Shattuck,
Mrs. Ole
c brilliant
occupied
ce. They
attention,
are of my
to myself,
ne. Miss
. Putnam,
managed
hat since
success ;
i himself
t such a
da}'s, a
blow my
iom and
■e one of
ir three-
ourself ;
rself ; —
ed this
irs at a
If so,
let Sterne's recording angel drop a tear and blot out
my offence. Few things can be more humbling, after
all, than a man's real knowledge of himself and his
own shortcomings, what he aims at, what he achieves.
He alone weighs accurately the praises lavished upon
him for things which merit blame, or the blame so
rashly cast for things which deserve praise ; but in all
his earthly striving, his successes and his failures
alike, one thing is ever wholesome, ever sweet — nay,
little less than sacred — it is the genuine sympathy of
human hearts ; and that was given me at Boston.
1 preached once in Boston. It was in Phillips
Brooks's grand mo.sque-like church, to a congregation
of between two and three thousand people. Phillips
Brooks and Canon Farrar conducted the :jervice. I
preached again for my kind and hospitable friend,
Dean Gray, in the Episcopal Church at Cambridge,
and again before the Harvard University, at the
request of Principal Eliot. On this occasion the
congregation consisted of Unitarians, Nonconformists,
and a sprinkling of Episcopalians. The Harvard
students were in force, and on that Sunday night the
spacious edifice was crowded. It was the strangest
service - stranger even than that at Cornell Universit}-,
where I was told to wear what I liked, and do what
1 liked, and say what I pleased. Below me Dean
Gray, in plain black coat, conducted an improvised
service ; a hymn or two was sung, and I then rose in
the pulpit wearing a black Geneva gown and a
Cambridge hood. I was not in good condition, and
for the first half-hour, whilst treading the thorny
ground of Bible inspiration, was quite aware that
I was not putting my points persuasively for the
I
!•)
Travel and Talk
Episcopalians at any rate. My second half-hour I
warmed up, but it was too late.
The next day the papers gave an extraordinary
travesty of my sermon, in which it appeared I had
trampled on all that was most dear to the Bible
Christian. For several days the papers pursued me,
and things were made to look so bad that I broke
through my usual reserve in correcting wild reports,
and sent a letter mildly protesting against the mis-
representations current. Dean Gray did the same,
and hearing no more, I suppose the theological
watchdogs of Boston lay down to sleep again. In
no single instance was I treated unkindly by the
l^oston or Cambridge newspapers, nor, I am sure, did
they willingly misrepresent me. On the whole, I
wonder they did so well — I think they could hardly
have meant better.
(
V
Dr. Phillips Brooks.— Never ought he for his
own sake to have been made a Bishop. Admirable
was he as Bishop — greater as Rector of Trinity
Church. But for America it was well. How bravely
he soared above all the cackling, blear-eyed ecclesi-
astics and timorous prelates who protested against
his election. How little he cared whether they
elected him or not. ' Dear old moth-eaten angels ! '
he said to me one day, alluding to some of the
conservative, stick-in-the-mud clergy who had voted
against him, and there was a lofty, only half-con-
temptuous pity about the humour of the phrase,
which somehow left no sting behind it.
1 can see the tall, portly figure — monumental and
i
Boston
ly
If-hour I
Lordinary
;d I had
he Bible
sued me,
I broke
I reports,
the mis-
he same,
eological
jain. In
r by the
sure, did
whole, I
d hardly
e for his
dmirablc
Trinity
f bravely
ecclesi-
against
er they
ingels ! '
I of the
d voted
alf-con-
phrase,
ital and
impressive — fit tabernacle for that noble spirit with
its strange aloofness and yet quick sympathies that
gave all and seemed to want nothing in return — and
never became too familiar or common. It was a
strange liftcd-up kind of sympathy quite irresistible ;
it seemed to carry you away with a rush, like a full
strong river. The poor felt it and worshipped him ;
but he was so other-worldly, almost like the denizen
of some far-off planet whose inhabitants had moved
on a stage or so beyond us. lie seemed like one not
of us come amongst us for a little while, understand-
ing us better than we did ourselves, loving us, full
of a divine depth and simple helpfulness and artless
humility, but still aloof as though some innavigable
ocean washed between us. I wonder, did ever anyone
knozf Phillips lirooks intimately ?
The bishopric was Phillips Ikooks's crown of sa-
crifice. The last time he lunched with me at the New-
University Club with the Bishop of Gloucester, the
Earl of Meath (ever full of good works), and Canon
Milman, we remained chatting alone for some time
after lunch on the top gallery opening out of the
club smoking room and overlooking the chimney-
pots of London.
I had a presentiment that I should never see him
again, and it was so. Subdued, gentle, caustic,
eloquent, severe by turns, but more * detached ' — that
is the only word for Phillips Brooks — more detached
than ever. There was a far-away look every now and
then in his eyes which came and went like a cold
gleam of wintry sunlight falling upon him from
beyond the clouds. It always seemed to me that
Phillips Brooks did not care greatly to remain here
VOL. I c
i:
I
i8
Travel and Talk
below, except for the work of the ministry, in which
he rejoiced, so that whenever the Master should
come and call for him, he would not have to call
twice, but the faithful servant would immediately rise
up quickly and go to Him. lie alwaj's reminded me
of those exquisite lines in ' J^'zckicl : '
* What have ye lacked, beloved, with us,
\Vc murmur heavily and low,
That ye should rise with kindling eyes
And be so fain to go ?
* It was not that our love was cold.
That earthly lights were growing dim,
But that the Shepherd from the fold
Had smiled and drawn them unto Him.
' Praise God, the Shepherd is so sweet ;
Praise God, the country is so fair ;
We might not hold them from His feet,
We can but haste to meet them there.'
And Phillips Brooks's preaching ? Quite inde-
scribable ! He stood up, and the Spirit entered into
him, like a mighty rushing wind. I have heard him
read his sermons. I have heard him pour forth a
perfer\ id stream of extempore eloquence for an hour.
It mattered little to him — less to us — it was always
the whirlwind, the fire, and through it all and in it
all somehow the still small voice.
It was not what he said — indeed, there was not
much in what he said — and there is no more in a
page of his printed sermons than in a column of
Mr. Gladstone's eloquence. He formulated little, he
theorised less ; he hardly attempted to construct or
m
Boston
19
/", in which
ter should
ve to call
:liatcly rise
n in dec! inc
^im.
bt
re.'
iiitc indc-
tcrcd into
leard him
ir forth a
an hour,
as always
and in it
was not
lore in a
)lumn of
little, he
struct or
^'^■
reconstruct, still less to criticise or destroy. Only
the waters of the great deep were broken ud ; the
tongues of fire alighted on the heads of the people.
Strong men stood and wept; others were lifted up
with inconceivable emotion, a sense of triumph ; the
sorrowful went away jubilant ; the sinner went off and
without knowing that he had repented forgot to sin
ajiain ; and numbers who were thus moved could
hardly /icar what he said. I once ventured to remark
to him, alluding to the furious rapidity of his utterance,
which defied all shorthand writers : ' The people miss
whole sentences and paragraphs.'
' No matter,' said Brooks ; * they get a sentence
and a thought here and there ; if they heard all, they
would forget half; they hear quite enough,'
It was true, and Brooks knew his own secret.
They said he talked fast because he stammered if
he talked slowly. It may have been, and doubtless
his method was unskilled and imperfect from an
elocutionist's point of view, but what Phillips Brooks
gave was himself.
People went out stepping lightly as on air, with a
sound of angels' voices ' chiming ' about them : as
])ai e says, ' like those that chime after the chiming
of the eternal spheres,'
No ; there never was anybody, there never will
be anyone, like Phillips lirook.s. There was an
incomparable elevation and buoyancy about his
torrential oratory and himself ; he positively radiated
faith and joy in the Eternal.
His one theological triumph was in restoring to
Unitarian Boston some .sort of belief in the doctrine
of the Trinity. It was Phillips Brooks's intense grasp
c 2
il
.'
^j,
20
Travel and Talk
of the human side of God as an essential and not an
accidental part of the Divine nature which enabled
him to do this. Whilst professing no toleration what-
ever for the bitter polemical document mistakenly
called the Creed of St, Athanasius, Phillips Brooks
was passionately Athanasian, and believed as firmly
as I do that the doctrine of Athanasius concerning
the Holy Trinity, more especially in relation to the
Ferson of the Redeemer, is absolutely the only con-
vincing and unanswerable statement that was ever or
is ever likely to be made concerning the Divine
Nature under the limitations of Humanity.
In my * Conquering Cross,' the fifth volume of
' Christ and Christianity,' the chapter on ' Constan-
tine and the Nicene Council,' I have endeavoured to
state the true Athanasian doctrine, which so few theo-
logians and hardly any of the clergy seem to know
anything about, as opposed to the equally misunder-
stood Arian doctrine ; and in a conversation which
I had with Phillips Brooks not long before his death,
I found that our views were in almost exact harmony
upon this subject.
VI
Phillips Brooks's Letters.— One of the first
to welcome me to Boston in November 1885 when I
arrived to deliver the Lowell Lectures was Phillips
Brooks. The following letter speaks for itself:
' 233 Clarendon Street, Boston :
' November 5, 18S5.
' My dear Mr. Haweis, — I was so sorry to miss see-
ing you yesterday.
* Welcome to Boston.
Boston
21
and not an
ch enabled
ation what-
mistakenly
ips Brooks
d as firmly
concerning
Ltion to the
: only con-
was ever or
the Divine
volume of
* Constan-
ta vou red to
lo few theo-
n to know
r misunder-
ior. which
I his death,
:t harmony
)f the first
85 when I
IS Phillips
self:
an :
er 5, 1885.
D miss see-
' Will you preach for me at Trinity, Sunday morn-
ing next ?
' I do hope you can and will.
' Most sincerely yours,
•Phillips Brooks.'
It was on this occasion that Archdeacon (now
Dean) F'arrar turned up quite unexpectedly and took
part in the service. We were both at that time
lecturing in Boston, and the papers made copy out of
us, not always in the best taste, by comparing our
platform, and pulpit styles. Of course the journals
which extolled the distinguished Archdeacon were
cool on me, and vice versa. I thought it was very
graceful, under the circumstances, of the Archdeacon
to appear on the occasion of my preaching, and still
more friendly of him to assure me afterwards that
everyone who heard my sermon must have been the
better for it.
' The large house ' — by which the ' Boston Journal '
meant Phillips Brooks's magnificent church — ' was
packed with a congregation comprising the regular
congregation and many from other churches. It was
a surprise to see behind the chancel rail Arch-
deacon Farrar : it seemed that he had returned to
Boston for the Sunday, and therefore assisted the
Rev. Phillips Brooks in the devotional exercises. The
Rev. Mr. Haweis was not seen until the moment he
mounted the pulpit steps.' Then follows a specimen
of the ' impressionist ' sketches of my humble self,
which varied according to the taste or animus of the
reporter. On this occasion — the ' black hair sets off my
pale colour.' At another time I am very dark — or
like Dr. Talmage, or Ward Becchcr — or Mr. Toole —
tl
ill
i I
I
I
'I
1
22
Travel and Talk
or ' a slender joyous man of forty-seven.' Other
reporters considered me stout and melancholy, and
so forth.
I shall never forget the kindness and attention
shown me by Phillips Brooks whilst I was at Boston.
His beautiful house was close to my lecture-hall. I
sometimes met Dean Farrar at lunch there. I could
always turn in and rest there, and I made it my home
whenever I came out to Boston from the Deanery at
Cambridge, where I mostly lived.
Our friendship matured as the years rolled on —
too few, alas !
* You arc most good,' he writes in 1887. *I am
here [Westminster Palace Hotel] for the shortest visit
with my sister and her child, under my charge, who
have never seen the great London before, and so all
the sights are to be seen in truest tourist fashion.
' I never can repcty the sermon you preached for
me [" the fiery echoes of your voice," he wrote in
another letter, " still seem to linger about the walls
of Holy Trinity"]. This year I must not attempt to
do so. I am here only for two Sundays, and on both
of them I am promised for two preachings. These
promises were made months ago, long before I left
America, so I am helpless there. I must not hope
either to preach for you, or (what I should like far
better) Jiear you preach
' Do not count me faithless, but only unfortunate.
You kindly name two days, on either of which I could
come to lunch. . . . Above all let me not be a bore
or burden. . . .
' PniLLU'S l^ROOKS.'
■Ji
Boston
23
jn.' Other
choly, and
i attention
at Boston,
jre-hall. I
^ I could
it my home
Deanery at
oiled on —
57. ' I am
lortest visit
harge, who
and so all
ishion.
cached for
wrote in
the walls
attempt to
id on both
s. These
"ore I left
not hope
d like far
ifortunate.
ch I could
be a bore
kOOKS.'
■M
A few more extracts from his letters may as well
follow here.
I had asked him to meet a distinguished company
at my house, including Cabinet ministers, bishops,
and well-known writers and men of .science ; he could
not come, but he came one afternoon when we were
alone.
' It would have been good to meet all these great
people ; but I am quite content. I shall see you and
Mrs. Hawcis. I shall not miss the others.
'PiiiLLii's Brooks.'
I wrote and asked him to go with me to Lambeth
Palace.
* Thank you for one more added to your hundred
kindnesses ; yes, wc have cards for Lambeth for this
afternoon, and shall go. And I have the pleasure of
knowing Bishop Lightfoot, and shall see him if he is
in Durham. . . .
•Phillips Brooks.'
In 1889 I wrote to him about Tangier, which I
had been visiting in order to investigate the state of
the prisons and the consular corruption, which I sub-
sequently exposed in the London press with some
good results.
' April 23, 1889.
' The brightest Easter greeting to you ! It is good
to see your most exemplary handwriting, and to know
that you are well and happy. How fine the church
facade must be! [1 had lately built a new fa9ade to
St. James's, Westmoreland Street] I shall not see it
this year, for I shall not come to England. If I
ii<^
n
H
Travel and Talk
anywhere, I shall go to Japan ! But it looks now as
if I should stay quietly at home.
* This is a sad story about Tangier. Thank Heaven,
the places of cruelty cannot be quite as much hidden
as they used to be. Some tourist parson finds them
out, and the " Times," with all its blunders, is still
there.
* This little town [Boston] grows apace, and there
are interesting things going on in it all the while ; but
I am sad not to get a month in London. Some day I
shall do it yet, and then I shall see you again.
' Till then, think of mc, and be sure of my remem-
brance with kindest regards to Mrs. Hawcis.
* Phillips Brooks.*
I had asked him to go down to Fulham Palace to
the Bishop of London's with me. I had also invited
him to my conversazione at the Portman Rooms, a
description of which is given by Dr. Oliver Wendell
Holmes in his ' Over the Tea Cups.' Brooks writes :
*July 4, 1S90.
* I wish that I could be at your conversazione this
evening. It was good in you to give our national
festival the honour of your choice.
* As I write the rockets are burning and the boys
are shouting over the now well-established fact that
we are an independent nation.
* I fancy you are as glad of it as we are, for we
should have been a most troublesome dependency.
I thank you for your counting me . . . amongst your
friends, and giving my very much misspelt name a
place upon the prospectus of your meeting.
' After all, I hope to cross the ocean for the shortest
'i
I i
iks now as
k Heaven,
ch hidden
Snds them
;rs, is still
and there
k\'hilc ; but
Dme day I
lin.
ly remem-
5.
ROOKS.*
Palace to
Iso invited
Rooms, a
Wendell
s writes :
4, 1890.
zione this
national
the boys
fact that
e, for we
tendency,
igst your
name a
shortest
Boston
25
i
of all journeys this summer. It seems to be the only
way of getting thoroughly clear of appointments on
this side. I shall get only a few days in England
and a few days in Switzerland.
* How long I shall have in London I cannot say. I
should think as much as an hour and a half
* I shall try to see you of course, and trust the kind
fates for success. But my time is so uncertain that I
cannot guess when I shall be at your gate, and you
must make no account of me. Only it will be sad if
I miss you entirely. . . .
' Phillips Brooks.'
As early as 1 888 I was contemplating a visit to
the Pacific Coast, although not until 1893 was I
destined to sec for the first time the City of the
Golden Gate. Phillips Brooks wrote :
' February 23, 1SS8.
' How gladly would I be sitting this afternoon in
your pleasant garden or your pleasant library, and
thanking you in person for your most kind note.
Instead of that this thick gross medium of pen and
ink comes in ; but still enough of human feeling may
penetrate through it to let you know that I am glad
that you remember me, and that I think of the bright
days in London with perpetual gratitude and joy. I
shall not come this year. I shall go up into the
country and sit under my apple trees and read my
books, and hold my peace. The blessed silence after
all these months of talk !
' And yet the months of talk arc most delightful ;
one grows surer of a few strong things, and more and
more delights to tell them to his fellow creatures ; and
the fellow creatures — bless them !— arc so good ! They
m
I' >
'i
•I
26
Travel and Talk
listen so kindly, and their hearts, recognising what is
true in what we say, leap up so cheerily and say, ** Ves,
that is so. I felt it ! "
* It is a delightful work, and I trust there are a
good many years yet of it before the end. [Alas ! there
were but four.]
' I had a rather miserable summer after I went on
to the Continent from London. It was only a lame
hand [he had been nursing a sick dog of low degree
most tenderly, and it had bitten him], a felon ! a mean,
miserable, undignified, decrepitude ! but it disabled
mc somewhat, and ended by shutting me up for ten
days in Geneva under a doctor's care. It is all well
now, and the winter has been full of hearty happi-
ness.
* So you are bidden to come and look at the
Pacific. I hope that some day you will do it. A
new ocean is a great sight in a man's life. We shall
see you here on the way, which will do us all good.
' Phillips Brooks.'
Alas! in 1893 Phillips Brooks was dead.
I deeply regret now that 1 thoughtlessly destroyed
so many of his letters ; but little I dreamed the hand
that wrote them would so soon be cold in the sepul-
chre.
Only on his last visit to England did I notice
a certain weariness and want of alertness, doubt-
less due to enfeebled action of the heart, which
latterly proved insufficient to vitalise adequately his
tall massive frame.
I think a letter dated July 8, 1892, from the
Westminster Palace Hotel, is the last I received from
him :
g what is
ay, *' Yes,
ire are a
as ! there
went oil
\y a lame
w degree
! a mean,
disabled
p for ten
s all well
ty happi-
ly at the
o it. A
We shall
good.
OOKS.'
cstroyed
he hand
e sepul-
notice
doubt-
which
itely his
om the
2d from
Bo.STON
27
4
♦ It was most pleasant to hear from you again
and I sent at once my telegram to say how gladl)' I
should come to lunch with you on Saturday, and go
with you to the Bishop of London's as you most
kindly propose.
' I am counting upon it with the greatest pleasure.
* I mi\st not have the privilege of going home with
you to Queen's House afterwards, and, indeed, I must
hasten back from the Bishop's early because I have
promised Farrar to be with him at his schools at half-
past five ; but I shall get a good delightful afternoon
with you, in which I much rejoice. You are very good
to remember mc, and I am yours most sincerely,
* Phillips Brook.s.'
For people who had seen so much of each other
and were on such friendly terms as we were, a certain
tone of needless humility and deference which breathes
through his letters may seem a little artificial, but it
was genuine and characteristic of Phillips Brooks.
I remember a story about an obscure American
clergyman who once got the great preacher to fill
his pulpit in the countr}'. The crowds which always
flocked to hear him gathered from far and wide, and
there was not standing room in the chancel.
Phillips Brooks congratulated the worthy parson
upon the magnificent congregation that he had got !
It never seemed to occur to him that they had only
come to hear him.
VII
Dr. Oliver Wendell Holmes.— Name well-
beloved wherever English is read — incomparable
Autocrat — the last survivor of that glorious band of
\i
I
t 1
:^
28
Travel and Talk
genial and brave writers (all abolitionists), poets,
philosophers, novelists, and essayists, who have
created American literature. Oliver Wendell Holmes,
outliving Nathaniel Hawthorne, Bryant, Emerson,
Longfellow — even James Russell Lowell — it was my
good fortune to see at Boston, and for seven years to
number amongst my friends and correspondents.
It was on Wednesday, November 4, 1885, at a
reception given us by our kind friends Mr. and Mrs.
Parker, at Boston, that I first met Dr. Oliver Wendell
Holmes — a small spare man of some .seventy-six
years, with a genial, mobile face, lips seldom at rest,
kind eyes, quick at penetrating. I told him that,
instead of allowing him to come out to sec me, I had
been about to pay my respects to him.
' Well,' said he, * I don't go out much this weather.
I suppose about my time of life one may expect to
sit at home under one's pagoda and be visited like a
Chinese god ; but I have come out to sec you.'
O. W. H. talked just as he wrote, and was just
what he seemed to be. He was always the Autocrat,
or the Professor, or the Poet of the Breakfast Table.
* The sound of our own voice,' he once said to me,
' is sweet; we all love it'
His mind was naturally prone to go back to that
brilliant circle — Emerson, Longfellow, Agassiz, Haw-
thorne, Margaret Fuller, Bryant, Whittier, James
Russell Lowell — of which he himself was so subtle
an ornament ; but he never lost sympathy with the
present.
* After a life like mine, one may well live a little,
as pigs are said to do, on one's own fat. We certainly
were a good circle in the old days. What a presence
was Agassiz, with his flashing eyes so full of life, and
Boston
;), poets,
ho have
Holmes,
Emerson,
was my
years to
snts.
585, at a
and Mrs,
Wendell
/enty-six
I at rest,
lim that,
10, I had
weather,
xpect to
ed like a
»u.'
was just
\utocrat,
Table.
d to me,
to that
iz, Haw-
James
3 subtle
vith the
a little,
ertainly
■)resence
ife, and
29
M
•liiii
genius, and insight, and eloquence! As for Haw-
thorne — such a contrast to him — he was as shy and
retiring, like a blushing schoolgirl of fourteen. For a
whole evening you could hardly get a word out of
him in company ; but then Margaret Fuller — rather
dull, as I think, in her books — was a rare talker — over-
rated though,' he added. ' Do you know, I think I
was always a little jealous of her ? Perhaps I ucvcr
did her quite justice. It began when we were ciiildrcn.
W'c used to go to school together, and she got ahead
of me. Once she wrote an essay beginning, '* Trite as
may be the remark," Sic. She read it to me. I didn't
know what " trite " meant. She evidently did. I felt
quite piqued and disliked her for her lofty superiority.
Is it not absurd the trivial little things that warp the
mind and impress young children, and old ones too ?
As for Poc, he was really a poor creature a very
poor creature ; he gave great offence at Boston ;
people were kindly disposed towards him, but he
treated them infamously.'
Holmes always stood a little outside the Emerson
clique. ' Oh, as to Emerson,' he would say, * he was
an angel-so pure and sunny ; but the stuff talked in
his name about transcendentalism was insufferable ;
it has infected Boston ever since. The brainless
litterateurs and charlatans that lived on his peculiari-
ties and mimicked his language — it makes one sick to
think of them— to him his style was native, it was
clear, pure inspiration. We are too indulgent here in
Boston to mere litterateurs ; we do not see things in
right proportion ; we hardly know first-rate quality
from second rate.'
And after a pause he added —
' No, nor fifth-rate.'
'i
I
■J!
30
Travel and Talk
One afternoon we went in to see him. He lived
in Beacon Street, and the bacl< of his house commanded
a view of the sea and the sunset. His study table
was strewn with letters. He began to describe witli
inimitable humour the way he was pestered by
admirers. Yet I think he would have missed them.
He tossed me a letter asking for his autograph ; he
opened another requesting a sentiment ; and a third
wanting his opinion on some verses.
* I live,' he said, ' on interruptions ; but what .1 I
to do with the books people send me and urge me to
read ? '
I told him what Stanley, the late Dean of West-
minster, did with such presents ; he wrote a post card
with * Dear Sir, I will not wait to open your book,
but best thanks. — A. P. S.' Holmes thanked me
for the hint.
I was delighted to hear him talk about himself, his
poems, and his varied experiences of admirers. He
seemed to me about the most contented mart' to
popularity I ever saw. He would complain of ;;
made a butt of by everyone who wanted a lift in art,
literature, or lecturing, but I could see that few applied
to him in vain. At times he would check himself
lightly with —
* Dear me, I am talking of nothing but myself,
like a garrulous old man that i am.'
'You will never grow old,' I said; 'the vigour
and freshness of your soul will keep you young for
ever.'
'Ay,' said he, 'young with a second childhood,
through which, I suppose, we must all pass till we get
wa.shed clean, as I hope we shall be when we wake up
by -and -by.'
( I
Boston
31
Mc lived
nmancled
dy tabic
ribc with
crcd by
ed them,
raph ; he
d a third
hat .1 I
gc me to
of West-
post card
ur book,
iked me
msclf, his
ers. He
lart' to
of ^ :r
"t in art,
V applied
himself
: myself,
vigour
Dung for
ildhood,
1 we get
wake up
^if
• Si
Although Dr. Holmes talked of sitting at home
like a Chinese god, I certainly met him out several
times — indeed, no choice assembly seemed complete
without him, and wherever he was the talk was sure
to be bright, genial, good, and kindl)-.
At a great reception given to (anon I\'irrar at the
Ihunsuick Hotel, I again found m)'self close to Oliver
Wendell Holmes.
' Who is that bishop,' I asked, ' who just spoke to
me ? '
' Oh,' said Holmes, ' that is the well-known Bishop
of , and not at all a bad fellow either. I will tell
)ou why I have a good opinion of him. I once saw
him go up to two ladies in the street in the rain — he
had on a brand-new hat. I happened to know those
ladies. They were total strangers to him, but he
offered them his umbrella and walked off in the rain,
and quietly spoiled his hat. Now,' says Holmes, ' a
man loves his hat — and a bishop's hat ! ' He paused ;
it was an awe-inspiring thought.
* Yes,' I cut in, layin- my hand gently on the
poet's arm, and holding him ' with my glittering
eye ' —
' Wear a good hat : the secret of your looks
Lives with the beaver in Canadian brooks.
Virtue may flourish in an old cravat,
l^ut man and nature scorn the shocking hat.'
I saw the author's eyes kindle.
' Well,' said he, * I had better be off now. I shall
hear nothing better than that. I am in luck to-day
this is the second time since I have entered this room
that I have had my own poems quoted to me.*
* Ah,' I said, * you should have seen the electrical
1
I
32
Travel and Talk
effect produced by those lines when I quoted them at
the Royal Institution — the soundest sleeper awoke.*
A few days afterwards I was fortunate enough to
hear him read some of his own verses, ' Dorothy Q,'
' Bill and Joe,' and one or two more, which have
already become American classics. He prefaced
them with one of those graceful impromptu introduc-
tions which at once proclaimed the practised lecturer.
Holmes was an exquisite reader, the singularly
sympathetic and vibrating voice rising at times
into passionate but never unrestrained declamation
or dying away into a trembling and pathetic whisper.
When I heard the poet read, I could not help feel-
ing that, facile and appropriate as may be the vers
d'occasion for which he is so famous, he will take
rank in poetic literature at the side of Longfellow and
Bryant by virtue of such perfect and tender lyrics as
* Under the Violets ' and ' The Voiceless.'
i
1
■■A
'/
I I
VIII
Holmes's Table Talk. — Holmes was one of the
most amusing after-dinner talkers imaginable, and the
more he got all the talk the better he talked, which did
not prevent him from being a very good listener. One
night, at my friend Mr. J. Perkins's, he entertained
us all with accounts of his early lecturing tours, when
the managers of forlorn institutions tried to bate him
down, when he had to walk miles over ploughed
fields to reach some remote town, and then send his
agent out into the highways to beat up an audience.
' Ay,' said he, ' things are changed now.'
• You gentlemen come over here with your reputa-
Boston
33
them at
Lwoke.'
lough to
rothy Q:
ich have
prefaced
ntroduc-
lecturcr.
ingularly
at times
lamation
whisper,
lelp feel-
the vers
will take
ellow and
lyrics as
Diie of the
e, and the
which did
ner. One
itertained
)urs, when
bate him
ploughed
send his
audience.
ur reputa-
tions made, and a literary public promising you fixed
fees ; in my young days no one had heard of mc, and
few people knew what a lecture was. There was no
literary public : wc had to create the taste, and uphill
work it was I can tell you, but it had its adventure
and its sweetness and reward. I can go back thirty,
forty years, and remember the comfort and content
of sitting in some outlandish inn after my lecture
with a glass of hot punch and my pipe, and my feet
upon the mantelpiece, with my agent near me whom
I could talk to or let alone as I pleased, and — and — '
he added, his eyes twinkling with almost boyish
exultation, * rattling the well-earned dollars in my
pocket ! '
Holmes was very fond of Emerson, and I gather
was much with him towards the close of his life, when
his mind had entirely given way, and he could recollect
nothing.
' His beautiful spirit,' he said, ' remained quite
unclouded and serene, although his memory was gone ;
latterly he would read a book without turning over
the page, for by the time he had got to the bottom of
it he had forgotten what he had been reading, and
would begin all over again. iVfter Longfellow's death,
as he lay in the chapel before the coffin lid was shut
down, I went in with Emerson to take a last look at our
poor friend, l^merson stood gazing at the quiet face
for some moments. Then turning to me he said,
" That is the face of a very amiable gentleman, but I do
not know who he is." All his sensibility, his fine judg-
ment, and taste remained unimpaired — only his
memory was gone. Of all men that I have ever
known he was the most serene and angelic down to
the very end.'
VOL. I n
!^
iS(
■■"*,?!
»:> i
(
34
Travel and Talk
From another intimate friend of the great Concord
philosopher I obtained a curious glimpse into Emer-
son's method of composition. He knew nothing
thoroughly, was not at all logical, never defined his
views, read unsystematically, and often for long inter-
vals read little ; but he would go out into the woods
and fields.
' I place myself in right and happy relations with
nature,' he would say, ' and let thought come to me ;
when an idea strikes me I put it down in my note-
book, and fortunate am I if in one morning or day I get
a real living thought of my own. When I wish to
write upon any subject I consult my thought book and
select from it those thoughts which seem capable of
being welded appropriately together. I work at the
expression of them till I have reached what seems to
me the best form, and so I leave them.'
These fragments of Emerson's talk explained
much to one who like myself for years had been a
loving Emersonian student. The essays are gnomic
and prophetic, not literary and rigidly connected. They
abound in leaps and gaps of thought like St. Paul's
Epistles ; and there is no great reason why paragraphs
out of one essay should not be neatly fitted into any
other with good effect. The whole of Emerson is
thus fragmentary ; but so fertile and suggestive that,
without a system, he has leavened most systems of
contemporary philosophy, and sent thousands of
ardent minds along new tracks of luminous thought.
He seems to me, indeed, one of the greatest initial
forces of the century, and in his pure and lofty * tran-
scendentalism,' his keen insight into the essence of
things, his contempt of wealth, his severe analysis of
life, shown in those flashes of intuition in which its
f
Boston
35
Concord
Emcr-
nothing
ned his
\g intcr-
; woods
ns with
to me ;
ly note-
lay I get
wish to
took and
pable of
s. at the
icems to
^plained
been a
gnomic
d. They
t. Paul's
agraphs
nto any
erson is
ve that,
terns of
mds of
thought.
it initial
y * tran-
lence of
lysis of
hich its
V
spiritual heights and depths stand revealed, Emerson
is the true and timely counterpoise to the hungry,
money-getting materialism of America.
IX
O. \V. Holmes's Letters. — The dear Autocrat
having promised mc a copy of his famous book, I
sent him * My Musical Life,' then just out. Here
are two charming letters a propos of my book :
•296 Beacon Street : December 1, 1SS5.
'Dear Mr. IIaweis, — I am really delighted with
)our " Musical Life." One is not always delighted with
tlic books sent him ; but I opened on the Violin
chapter, and found so much that pleased me that I fell
in love with the book that held it.
' I have been so much taken up for the last week
or two that I hardly know whether I have sent you
an}' book of m.inc or even my photograph. I know I
meant to ; and if 1 have not done it already, I mean
to. Just write one line on a post card— tell me if I
have or not. Please do not take the trouble to write
a note, fur you must be, as we say, driven to death by
all sorts of well-meant attentions. IVIy remembrances
to charming Mrs. Haweis, and very kindest regards to
yourself.
• Very truly yours,
'O. W. Holmes.'
On the 5th of the same month — December 1 885 —
I received this second note :
' One word more. It is absolutely neccssai)' to
relieve my sense of obligation to you.
' When I thanked you for " My Musical Life," I had
D Z
I'
(tf
36
Travel and Talk
only dipped into it. I was much pleased, of course,
but I have enjoyed reading it since so much that I
meant to tell you of it.
* You have given a life to the " fiddle " such as
nothing but its own music ever gave it before.
' I never knew until I read what you say of the
instrument, what profanation I had been guilty of to
touch one, much more to write about it !
* I find your book really fascinating, full of spirit,
picturesqueness, vitality ; and I cannot help thinking
it may give you pleasure to have me tell you so.
Therefore I do it, and you can be sure I am honest
about it, because I have written once thanking you,
and should not have thought of writing again if the
book had not tickled my very heart's root and forced
me to do it.
'With the kindest regards to yourself and I\Irs.
llaweis — charming Mrs. Haweis,
' I am very truly yours,
' O. W. Holmes.'
Here is a characteristic little note :
Postscript to letter of same date.
•April 15, 18S5.
'Dear Mr. Haweis,— I remember that I wrote
^ery for z/ery, and forgot to scratch off the superfluous
prolongation. As I do not write in the negro dialect,
I must beg you to be assured that in writing the word
I always " spell it with a wel' as old Mr. Weller told
Sam to spell his name.
' Very truly yours,
' O. W. Holmes.'
When news reached me that Holmes thought of
'%
i< I
Boston
37
course,
that I
such as
•
J of the
Ity of to
Df spirit,
;hinking
you so,
1 honest
ng you,
n if the
d forced
nd Mrs.
LMES.'
5, i8Ss.
1 wrote
erfluous
dialect,
he word
Her told
,MES.'
ught of
coming to England, ' I tried to sound him about a
lecture at the Royal Institution. I also invited him
to stay at my house. The following was his reply :
* 296 Beacon Street, Boston.
• My dear Sir, — You are exceedingly kind, and I
am very much obliged to you for your cordial invi-
tation ; but the arrangements I have made for Mrs.
Sargent [his daughter, who accompanied him] and
myself oblige me to decline your offer of hospitality.
' As to lecturing or reading, I have formed no pro-
ject of that nature. I go to England to spend money,
not to make it. What I most wish is to find Tiyself
as little hampered by engagements as possible — to
live quietly in the quarters I have engaged for as long
a time as possible, and get a little rested before seeing
my friends, excepting one or two old American
intimates.
* I am very grateful to you for your generous in-
vitation [to stay at Queen's House], and hope to
thank you and Mrs. Haweis in person as soon as I
am established in London.
' Believe me,
* Most truly yours,
' O. W. Holmes.'
Little did he know what awaited him. From the
first moment when the Duke of Westminster invited
him to Eaton Hall to his final departure for Paris —
where nobody seemed to have heard of him, and he saw
hardly anyone but M. Pasteur, for whom he had a
profound admiration — the genial Autocrat was hailed
with a series of ovations.
In his Dover Street hotel I found his ante-room
I
'M
1)*
n\
38
Tk WFT. A\P TaT.K
tabic covered with cards and notes, and a youngj
lady secretary was engaged all day in answering
invitations and parrying the oppressive assaults of
his admirers for autographs.
He always took a nap in the afternoon, and
devoted all the rest of his time to society. This was
not the ideal of life in London with which he had
started ; but Holmes really loved society, and sub-
mitted to hero worship with most becoming resigna-
tion.
Here is a specimen of many similar notes written
shortly after his arrival, which tells its own stor\' 1
' 17 Dover Street : May 19, 1SS6.
' Dear Mrs. Haweis,— Thank you for your kind
invitations. If you please, send the victoria to-
morrow [we had placed our carriage at his dis-
posal].
' I have marked next Monday for the lunch at
I o'clock fo half-past. [On that occasion he met
Dr. Samuel Smiles, author of *' Self-Help," and
Bishop Ellicott, and we did not rise from table
till nearly five clock, the talk being absorbing and
incessant.]
* I must make a brief visit at the " tea and talk "
[the reception at Queen's House] on the 27th, as I
must be at Sir James Paget's at 6.30.
' Believe me, dear Mrs. Haweis,
* Very truly yours,
' O. W. Holmes.'
I introduce these 1886 waif and stray memories of
Holmes here for the sake of the letters, although they
do not belong properly to my American travels.
\ [it
y.
'1^
Boston
39
young
swerincr
lults of
)n, and
his was
he had
id sub-
csigna-
WTittcn
), iSS6.
)ur kind
^ria to-
lls dis-
imch at
he met
)," and
n table
ng- and
d talk "
th, as I
MES.'
orlcs of
gh they
:1s.
When I had made up my mind to accept the in-
vitation from Chicago to visit that city as Anglican
delegate to the Parliament of Religions in 1893, I
wrote to Holmes hoping that we might effect a meet-
ing. I then received from him the last letter he ever
wrote to me.
* Beverly Farm, Mass. : August 7, 1 893.
* Dear Mr. Hawels, — You have laid out a grand
plan for the early autumn months, and I hope it will be
carried out to your heart's content.
' I envy you the visit to Chicago, which I do not
feel able to undertake, but which I think must be one
of the great sensations of a lifetime. My eighty-fourth
birthday comes in three weeks from to-morrow.
' I am well enough for so venerable a person, but I
cannot do all I could in 1886, when I was almost ten
years younger.
' I hope before you begin your career in this country
the state of affairs will be less unfavourable than I am
sorry to say it is now. The financial depression sur-
passes anything I have ever known.
* I am glad that you took my good-natured account
of my reception by your people [referring to the recep-
tion I gave him at Queen's House in 1886, noticed in
his ' Hundred Days in Europe '] in so good-natured
a way, and I trust that I shall smile as benignantly on
the notice you propose to give of me in one of your
periodicals.
* With kindest regards to yourself and Mrs. Haweis,
* Very truly yours,
' O. W. Holmes.
' P.S.— I inclose a hymn— the last poem I have
written— also the formula to correspondents to which
T\
:1 i
40
Travel and Talk
[illegible] in my eyes and [illegible] in my fingers
have driven me during the absence of my secretary.*
Here is the card to correspondents :
' Beverly Farm, Mass. : 1893.
* Dear , — Yours of the is received.
I can do little more than acknowledge the reception
of the very numerous communications which come to
me from unknown friends, near and distant, many of
them containing requests to which I cannot con-
veniently pay the desired attention. Regretting that
I find my time, my eyes, and my hand overtaxed by
an ever increasing correspondence,
* I am,
• Yours very truly,
* {^Signaturey
Here is the hymn, a veritable swan song, and I
believe the last he ever wrote, quite as dignified and
characteristic as Tennyson's ' Crossing the Bar,* written
at about the same age :
^vV_*
' Hynui ivritten for the Receptioji in honour of the
twenty-fiftli Anniversary of the Reorganisatioii oj
the Boston Young Men's Christian Union
< The forty-second since its organisation in 1 85 1),
'Wednesday Evening, May 31, 1893.
* Tune^ '''Dundee!'
' Our Father ! while our hearts unlearn
The creeds that wrong Thy name,
Still let our hallowed altars burn
With Faith's undying flame !
1
Boston
41
' fingers
retary.'
: 1893.
eceived.
^ception
come to
many of
ot con-
ing that
ixcd by
• Not by the lightning gleams of wrath
Our souls Thy face shall sec,
The star of Love must light the path
That leads to Heaven and Thee.
' Help us to read our Master's will
Through every darkening stain
That clouds His sacred image still,
And see Him once again
• The brother man, the pitying friend,
Who weeps for human woes,
Whose pleading words of pardon blend
With cries of raging foes.
turey
T, and I
led and
written
of the
ation oj
' If 'mid the gathering storms of doubt
Our hearts grow faint and cold.
The strength we cannot live without
Thy love will not withhold.
' Our prayers accept ; our sins forgive ;
Our youthful zeal renew ;
Shape for us holier lives to live,
And nobler work to do 1
Oliver Wendell Holmes.
May 28, 1893.'
On paying a farewell visit to Oliver Wendell
Holmes in Boston, he took me into his study and pre-
sented me with a copy of the ' Autocrat of the Breakfast
Table.' * Write your name, I pray, and any verse if you
will.' The poet took up a gold-nibbed pen, and said,
• This is the pen I wrote the whole of the " Autocrat "
with. I now keep it only to write my name for my
friends,' and he wrote. When I looked at the frontis-
k
■,■>
42
Travkl and Talk
&}>
piece, I not only found his sigfnature, but the follow-
ing exquisite lines, certainly amongst the finest and
tenderest he ever wrote :
' A few may touch the magic string,
And greedy Fame is proud to win them ;
Alas ! for those that never sing,
But die with all the music in them.'
IcilAHOU. — The l^oston Age is over. Even
ITowells, the most illustrious of all the modern
American novelists, is getting lukewarm. Emerson,
Thoreau, Hawthorne, Longfellow, James Russell
Lowell, Oliver Wendell Holmes, Whittier, Bryant —
not all identified with the Hub, but almost all — arc
now gone, and Xew York is gradually sapping the
Bostonian supremacy for culture, and weakening the
magic spell of Concord.
' Ay me ! ay me ! the woods decay and fall.'
M
r
t
)
i
f
X
Longfellow's MSS.— At Cambridge in 1885, I
lived chiefly with Dean Gray, close to Longfellow's
house, and I was in and out constantly to see Samuel
Longfellow, his brother. There I met the aged Miss
Peabody, indefatigable friend of the 'poor Red man,'
who, as Artemus Ward remarked, * is rapidly becoming
exstink.' There too was Mrs. Agassiz, the gifted
widow of the great Professor whom I have heard Sir
Richard Owen quote so often with such love and
admiration ; and there were delightful Professor Childs
and Asa Gray too, most gentle and modest of savants,
and most gifted of naturalists. I remember on his
seventieth birthday reception, at which I was present,
l^OSTON
43
foUow-
lest and
:m;
Even
modern
Lmerson,
Russell
Jryant —
all — arc
ping the
ning the
fall.'
1885, I
g fellow's
Samuel
ed Miss
d man,'
ecoming
c gifted
eard Sir
ovc and
)r Childs
savants,
on his
present,
4
they gave him a beautiful silver jug embossed all
over with his favourite ferns and flowers and most
delicately chased.
* Whose is this exquisite work ? ' I asked him.
* Only the firm's name is inscribed upon it,' he
replied.
1 am glad that our Walter Crane and a few
modern Art leaders have with true Ruskinian ire
protested against this absorption and exploitation of
genius by trade.
At Dean Gray's too I met Mrs. Olc Bull, widow of
the magic violinist who astonished the wild Indian
tribes and electrified courts and puzzled the steady-
going fiddlers of the day.
I staj'ed in Mrs. Ole Bull's house afterwards, and
she showed me her husband's rare collection of violin
Looking over the poet Longfellow's MSS. wit
Samuel Longfellow, I observed that they were all
written in pencil. There I saw the rough draft of
' Excelsior.' In coming upon the first embryo opening
of Evangeline' it was interesting to see how the poet
had wavered over the first line —
* This is the Forest Primeval.'
He had written —
' Still stands the '
' Here is the '
and scratched both out, and at last decided on —
' This is the I'^orest,'
to open with, and used
' Still stands the Forest Primeval '
at the conclusion of the whole poem.
k
1 '
i^
if
44
Travel and Talk
Glancing hastily at the end of * Hiawatha,' I
noticed some beautiful lines which do not appear at
all. Longfellow, like our own poet Gray and unlike
Byron, was a very careful and fastidious artist in
verse, for all his apparent ease and spontaneity. He
would sacrifice in a moment any form of thought or
a melodic line if it broke the unity of his poem, or
marred its technical finish.
' In the glory and the fragrance
Of the purple mists of evening,'
has been ruthlessly expunged. It should come between
and
' In the glory of the sunset '
* In the purple mists of evening.'
XI
Bryant, Longfellow, Emerson.— Whilst in
Boston I received a note from Henry Ward Beecher
inviting me to occupy his historic pulpit at Brooklyn,
and offering me lOO dollars as a fee.
To my English notions of pulpit etiquette this
seemed to me singular, nor could I have occupied
any Nonconformist pulpit in New York without the
Bishop of New York's consent, which would have
most likely been refused. As it happened, I was
engaged for the Harvard University pulpit th?'
but I was assured that the great preach^ ■»
to pay me a very high compliment, . tii.. for
sixteen years he had never made a siinilar ofter to
anyone.
;
Boston
4S
atha,' I
Dpear at
d unlike
artist in
ity. He
DUght or
Doem, or
between
To have arrived in America just too late to sec
Emerson, Bryant, or Longfellow, was indeed a bitter
disappointment to me. My correspondence with
these eminent persons is almost confined, as far as the
interest of it is concerned, to the possession of their
autographs.
I tried to get Bryant and Longfellow to write
something for ' Cassell's Magazine,' which I at one
time edited. I had succeeded with Victor Hugo,
the Archbishop of Canterbury (Tait), Farrar, Wilkie
Collins, Garibaldi, Swinburne, and other famous people.
I failed with my Americans. The aged Bryant wrote :
If
t
rhilst in
Beecher
rooklyn,
ittc this
)ccupied
Kout the
lid have
I, I was
ir y
Ai^ for
ofier to
'New York Feb. 17, 18/0.
* Dear Sir, — I thank you for the kind words in
which you accompany the request made in your note.
It will, however, be impossible for me to comply with
it. I have several good friends among the editors
of the American magazines, who have asked me to
write something for them, but I am so occupied, so
old, and so lazy, that I cannot, and I am obliged to
excuse myself to you on the same plea of too much
to do, love of ease and old age.
' I am, Sir, faithfully yours,
' W. C. Bryant.'
Longfellow wrote :
'Cambridge, Masschls. : 1870.
' My dear Sir, — I am much obliged to you for
your kind offer, but am afraid it will not be in my
power to accept it. I am not at present writing for
any periodicals, and do not wish to enter into any
engagements of the kind.
«
m
46
Travel and Talk
1 li
\n
w
' Regretting that I cannot comply with your
request, I remain,
* Yours truly,
• Henry W. Longfellow.'
I had a burning desire to sec lunerson when he was
in England in 1873, but I failed. Emerson wrote :
* Slratri>rd-on-Av()n : May 5, 1S73.
' Dear Sir, — Your very kind note reached me last
night here, at the house of Mr. E. F. Flower, and
made me regret the missing you in London. I grieve
also that I have failed to receive the good books you
have sent me [* Music and Morals,' and * Thoughts for
the Times ']. I leave this place of good omen
to-morrow for York, Durham, Edinburgh, and for
Liverpool, whence I sail on the 15th instant for
America, whither I shall carry the recollection of
your kind words. With grateful regards,
* R. Waldo Emerson.
'Ml. j. R. (?) Haucis.'
[P.S. Emerson was not the only person who has
failed to read iny signature correctly.]
It was pleasant to find 'Music and Morals' a
standard prize book in the American .schools, and
even a class book in some of the colleges. It was
more gratifying to learn that * Music and Morals '
had been a favourite with the poet Longfellow in the
evening of his life.and had even, so I was told, inspired
some of his la*, poetry.
Boston
47
XII
Farewell, Boston ! —I have never revisited thee
since 1885, but ere I left a parting Public Reception
was tendered to me and my wife at the New England
Conservatory of Music, which touched me very much.
The New ICngland Conservatory, besides lodging
and boarding several hundred students on a magni-
ficent scale, and in connection with a refined system
of culture, chiefly under the direction of M. Tourjee,
is certainly one of the most influential musical schools
in the United States. A reception, therefore, offered
me at the immediate instigation of the professors and
musical authorities of lioston, in recognition of the
lectures I had delivered to mixed audiences, and as
a mark of the value they set upon my musical writ-
ings, was very gratifying, especially as they might
have adopted the glib cant, not unknown in my own
country, that an amateur could have nothing to say
about music worth the attention of professional
musicians.
Wc found on our arrival at the Boston Conserva-
tory, about nine o'clock in the evening, the entrance
of the building draped in red cloth ; floral wreaths,
with * Welcome ! ' over the grand staircase ; and as,
conducted by the Principal, we moved down the
spacious corridors to the reception room, we passed
between rows of fresh young faces and a large crowd
of invited guests. The ceremony was this time more
formal than on previous occasions. \\ c stood with
Dean Gray on one side, and M. Tourjee and some
of the trustees and the council of the Academy on
48
TUAVF.L AND TaLK
It
the other ; whilst in front of us were several hundreds
of the assembled guests — as man)', in fact, as could
crowd into the principal reception room.
The Rev. Dr. Duryca, one of the most elegant
speakers in America, then stepped forward into the
open semicircle between us and the company, and
delivered a neat address in terms most flattering to
myself and wife, in which with the best taste he
alluded to my ministerial career as in full harmony
with my musical studies, and was good enough to say
that my books on music had done much to raise the
tone of the profession throughout the civilised world.
'It is with the greatest pleasure,' said Dr. Duryea,
* as the representative of the Trustees and Faculty of
the Conservatory, that I add to the general welcome
which you have received in our city, the special wel-
come to the social fellowship of our patrons and
friends at this house.
• We tlo not desire to weary or chill you by the
frigid methods of a formal reception, but to open our
hearts to y'ou in sincere and warm expressions of our
personal regard and affection, and in a testimonial of
our indebtedness for your services to the art to which
we are devoted, our obligati(Mi to you for all you have
written, our reverence and love for what you haye
been and done as a man and as a minister of the gospel
of Jesus Christ. We owe you much for all you have
written. You have not only interpreted to us the
thoughts and sentiments of the great masters of
music, but you have initiated us into the secrets of
high art by leading us up to its moral aims, and by
sanctifying it to the higher uses of the soul as an
expression of the loftiest thought, the finest feeling.
Boston
49
id reds
could
Icgant
to the
y, and
iii^ to
stc he
rmony
to say
isc the
world.
)uryca,
ulty of
clcomc
al wcl-
iis and
by the
)cn our
of our
)nial of
which
)u have
u hayc
gospel
u have
us the
tcrs of
rets of
nd by
as an
eh'ng.
i
' And, also, we are indebted to you because you
have shown how this art may be consecrated to the
service of God, and made use of as an expression of
affection towards Him upon whom we centre our
minds and hearts as we grow in knowledge, in love,
in purity, in excellence, and in beauty, liut, most of
all, we are grateful to Trovidence and the grace of
God for what has been manifested in your character
and life. We desire to consecrate the art of music
to the highest aims, and to engage in the i)ursuit of
it men of the noblest powers and the finest culture.
' When one who can consecrate himself to litera-
ture, the service of religion, and the Church of Jesus
Christ, can hold still with steadfast devotion to the
art of music, and in .some degree even adhere to the
practice of it, we arc encouraged to believe that
the day is coming when our art shall not be beneath
the .service of the noblest, the purest, and the best
men and women we can entice within its charmed
circle, who will bring to it the diligence and zeal equal
to accomplishment in its service,
' Long after you are gone, you will be remembered
here. Long after your voice is silent, it will echo still
in the hearts and souls of those whom you have
taught, encouraged, uplifted, and inspired.
' Our hearts would not be satisfied until we had
turned to her who has been, in homely Anglo-Saxon
words, your companion, your partner, and your wife.
Some men are self-made ; some men are made by
women ; and some men are unmade by women. You
recogni.se with reverence and undying love her power
over your constantly developing power, her refining
and purifying heart. We commend you to Him who
holds the sea in the hollow of His hand. May He
VOL. I E
w
i}!l
«
ill
V!
'/
50
Travel and Talk
speed you on your way to your native land, ancl may
Providence go with you and yours for all you have
been and are to be ! '
I replied : ' Dr. Duryea, Ladies and Gentlemen, —
I am extremely glad that I had not any adequate
notice of the nature of this occasion, which would,
perhaps, have tempted me to prepare some speech.
Some one did say that I should have to speak a few
words ; but, then, "a few words " is Vifacon dc parlcr,
and you can often get out of a few words. But it
is very easy to get into a few words, without getting
out of them. Still, if I had made any preparation
before I came here, I should have to throw it entireK-
to the winds, because not one word of anything I
should have been likely to prepare would have been
of the smallest use to me on the present occasion.
I should have felt very much like poor Artemus Ward
who used to say that " he was the possessor of a
colossal intellect, but did not happen to have brought
it with him.''
* When I first began listening to my friend's very
eloquent and too flattering address, I thought it
might, perhaps, prove to me a little exhausting —
not from any fault in the address itself, but in my
own powers of endurance. You can stand a certain
amount of encomium in public. I could have read it
without a blush in the papers on the following morn-
ing ; but to stand up and be fired at as a fine speci-
men of a man (that must have applied to my " colo.5sal
intellect") -I hardly know what it applied to, but I
am deeply gratified ; )r, you know, we always like to
be praised for those qualities in which we are most
deficient. I owe a debt of gratitude to my friend for
all his kind words.
Boston
51
ins J
' When he first began to speak, I thought I was
going to have a good time, although, no doubt, a
rather trying time, in the presence of so many spec-
tators ; but he had not gone on long before I found
the subject was going to be lifted out of personalities
into a higher region, and although I was the peg upon
which a great many excellent things might be said
to hang, I was going to be delivered of all further
embarrassment.
* I am not at all insensible to all the kind words I
have received ; but when we speak of music or any of
the arts, I desire to say that I do not wish the art to
be glorified in the man, but I think all who love art,
and who co-operate for the progress of art and the
cause of art, should lose themselves in the cause.
They really work for art just in proportion as they
forget their own services and themselves. The address
was put upon such a footing, and was raised to such a
high moral plane, that I was able to forget myself
I was able to forget anything like personality in the
general interest that we all feel in music ; and then I
became one with you in heart and sympathy. The
instant the fettering personalities ceased I became
one with you. Then I said, " We are now all engaged
in contemplating the beauties of art and the benefits
which wc may receive from art."
' I think that, above all things, America is in the
van of active industries, and what I may call the
discovery of industries, pusliing, active enterprise, and
the accumulating of wealth, and the developing of
experimental science. America seems to have a
peculiar genius for all that side of life ; and when
that is the case, we find that the aits are apt to take a
second place. The old countries have plenty of art.
S2
I Ml-
li
''^J
52
Travel and Talk
"3
i'.i
The new countries neetl art, especially as a kind of
counterbalance to the prevailing genius and activity
of a people whose aims are mostly set upon the
accumulation of material wealth. I think, for such a
nation as that, the arts arc almost of a religious
significance. They seem a visible and active power,
like angels, who bring sweet fragments from the songs
above to the dwellers upon earth.
* An institution like this, which stands for the art
of music, has the power of sweeping the cobwebs from
the brain and restoring the blue sky and sunlight of
the soul. An institution like this is a refining institu-
tion, showing thnt what the nation most needs is a
counterbalance of its great and successful industry.
I am not come here to prate to you. I have lately
delivered ten lectures in this city, and I should think
that Boston has very nearly had enough of me ; but I
cannot leave you without saying these few words,
without thanking you, on behalf of my dear wife,
for all the kind things which my good friend has said
about her, in which he has coupled my name with
hers in his graceful compliment.
' I may tell you that I think she wrote out about
the whole of " Music and Morals " with her own hand
before it went to the printer. I am not so careful
about the printers now. I let them read what they
can ; but, in those days, " Music and Morals " was my
first book, and, in those days, we had a little more
time than, perhaps, wc have had since. Our labours
have rather accumulated upon us. Our children make
certain demands upon us, and we do not have as much
time as we had in those days. But then she used to
be very much my amanuensis, and she used to be
Boston
53
able to write a hand which everybody could read ;
while I, unfortunately, wrote a hand which nobody
could. jead. And in those days it was of more or less
advantage to me to get the editors to look at what I
sent them. Now, I do not care so much. They are
obliging enough to read anything that I send them ;
but in those days I was anxicjus that they should
print my books, and therefore I always asked my wife
to copy my writing off for me. And, as I said before,
she wrote every word of " Music and Morals."
* I must return you, on behalf of Mrs. Haweis
and myself, our heartfelt gratitude for the manner in
which — I was going to say — you have " drunk our
health ; " but you have done something better. You
have given me your good wishes. If I ma)' be allowed
to say so, you have put forward in Mr. Duryea a
spokesman whose eloquence and methods of state-
ment were extremely proper. Indeed, what he said
about myself I could not have improved upon. I'm
going to try to live up to it. I never could have said
anything nor shall I hear anything better than that,
if I should live to be as old as Methuselah — not
only the way in which he alluded to mc, but still
more the way in which he lifted the subject, and
rose into a more worthy atmosphere, as far as I am
concerned. I think that such a gathering as this at
so short a notice shows that you are not anxious to get
me out of the country. I do leave on Monday; but
it shows that you are as anxious to see me, and shake
mc by the hand, as I am anxious to do the same by
you, before I leave your cultured, respected, and
celebrated city of Boston.'
After my reply the ceremony of introduction
I,
) . '.i
■'If
I
w
If
;-li
I
54
Travel and Talk
! (
1 1 ;
began, the principal guests being brought up by
Dean Gray and M. Tourjcc and presented to both of
us ; this took about an hour, and we were then con-
ducted through the chief rooms of this noble establish-
ment by the director, returning to the Deanery at
Cambridge about midnight.
I shall always retain the happiest recollections of
Cambridge, U.S.A. Most of the time I spent with our
kind friends Dean (now, alas ! dead) and Mrs. Gray and
Miss Charlotte, their amiable daughter. One night,
at a reception given to Canon Farrar and myself at
the Deanery, I met a large number of the theological
students, and was at first a little taken aback at the
way in which the young men formed in a circle round
me whenever one of them was presented, so that my
replies had to be addressed to at least a dozen at a
time ; however, on glancing at the other end of the
room, I noticed that a similar group had gathered
round Canon, now (1895) Dean Farrar, so I accepted
the situation frankly, and discoursed to them colloqui-
ally on the lessons to be derived from Church history
in view of successive schools of religious thought —
the distinction between doctrine or religious teaching
and dogma or fixed opinion, and the recurrent need
of restatement if interest in theology was to be
kept alive. There was something to me extremely
refreshing and unlike our old-world theological schools
in these young aspirants to the Christian ministry
being brought under the genial and liberal influence
of so accomplished and wide-minded a divine as Dean
Gra}'. He represented the best and most vigorous
elements of American episcopacy. He was not afraid
Boston
of coming face to face with antagonistic sects, because
he was generous and philosophical enough to acknow-
ledge whatsoever things are pure and lovely and of
good report wherever they existed. Happy are the
students who are allowed thus to develop ! happy arc
the institutions under which they flourish !
i...^
}m
' I
\i i
56
Travel and Talk
NEW YORK
I
•S!
', 1
t. '■
XIII
COURTLANDT Palmkr.~No doubt a vcry ex-
ceptional person, often I think needlessly at war with
clergy, politicians, and all established modes of society
and religion, and very much intent on founding a
s(jciety, if not a religion of his own.
' Courtlandt Palmer ' was the signature of a letter
which I received on my first visit to the States. (Dr.)
* Guilbert ' was the signature of another. I knew no-
thing of either, I trusted both — both proposed to enter-
tain me at New York, and both did so in the most
hospitable manner.
I had not spoken five words to Courtlandt Palmer,
who with his charming wife (now Mrs. Abbey) re-
ceived me on my arrival late one night at his beauti-
ful house in New York, before I was impressed with
a certain sur-excited .sensibility, a winning gift of
manner, and an undertone of pain and restlessness,
which never seemed to leave him. He was a slight
well-built man ; of strong will and definite purpose,
and when I heard him address a large and fashionable
assembly at that unique and phenomenal New York
club known as ' The Nineteenth Century Club,' I could
feel the concentrated earnestness of a man wIkj believed
in his Ideal. That Ideal was as noble as it was
simple — it aimed at discovering a common ground
I: i
New York
57
of fellowship and agreement amongst all sorts of
thoughtful and cultivated people professing all sorts
of diverse political, religious and social views.
I was much with him. He listened to anything I
might have to say about Divine Sympathy, Immor-
tality, Prayer, the Person of the Redeemer, with much
toleration ; but I do not think he ever budged an inch
for me or anyone else from the opinions whatever they
were, formed independently by himself. His thinkings
had evidently landed him in Agnosticism as regards
the future, but in a very practical philanthropy as
regards the present.
When Courtlandt Palmer came over to England a
few years later, I heard him deliver an address at
Felix Moschcles' studio in Sloane Gardens. He
wished to establish branches of his democratic New
York club in London and Paris, but no fish seemed to
rise to his fly, and I thought he himself felt a little
awkward and fish-out-of-waterish. I le had not quite
hit the English tone. I noticed the same about
Henry Ward Beechcr in his later days when he
lectured at 1^2xcter Hall — things which set the world
on fire thirty years before fell flat ; nothing he said
was quite in the humour of the day.
I was asked to write a few memorial lines on my
distinguished American friend. I find them reprinted
in a privately circulated volume. They run as follows :
* Courtlandt Palmer was a great social centre and a
true apostle of progress. He was a large-hearted,
liberal-minded man, with the courage sometimes
the fatal courage — of his opinions and a zeal for
all popular causes which occasionally outran his
I.
1^
1
1
■ I
I
I
JP
I
I
iii
11
I
58
Travel and Talk
discretion ; but in an age where discretion abounds
and zeal is scarce, that was certainly a fault on the
right side. You could not be in Palmer's company
for long without the leading passion of his life crop-
ping up in his talk to found a society, the only pass-
port to which should be a sincere reverence for truth
and an ardent love of man. To get people of dif-
ferent creeds and callings to meet upon this broad
and genial basis and keep their temper without burn-
ing their differences, this was his apparently vague
and perhaps Utopian aim. The Nineteenth Century
Club remains a standing witness to his success. It
has expanded from an *' at home" into a community
numbering its hundreds. Courtlandt Palmer's lan-
guage was sometimes wanting in temperance ; he did
not spare his opponents ; controversially he " was ever
a fighter." lie made short work of abuses, and
denounced bigotry and shams wherever he met with
them. He had no sympathy with narrow-minded-
ness, and he scorned and ridiculed it ; but he could
love narrow-minded people if they were honest. The
result was that he was hated and vilified by outsiders,
especially those who had never seen him ; but few
people could resist the charm of his personal influence.
His eager enthusiasm and a certain tender personal
sympathy, combined with great candour and a refined
courtesy even when face to face with his bitterest
opponents, never failed him. One would say naturally
on meeting him as a stranger in a railway carriage
for half an hour, •' Here is indeed a fine type of the
American Christian gentleman." Vet Courtlandt
Palmer was not a Christian, scarcely a Unitarian.
Positivism was his creed, if he had any. Still there
was a diffidence about his dogmatic professions and
[\\
'Nkw York
59
a pathetic tinge of sadness about his religious think-
ings that seemed ever to hint at further possible
modifications of opinion.
' '* I do not see ni)' way," he once said to me, " about
a next Hfe. I wish I could think like you. The old
heaven and hell is such an intellectual scandal nowa-
days ; one has no patience with the i)eople who talk
the current religious nonsense ; but I know that is not
your conception of the future life. I have none ; 1
wish I had. The Unknowable is still my sphinx —
the great mystery hangs over us all. This life is
clear: to live up to hum.m love and duty, to labour
with the best for the best — that is all I know. I wi.^h
to die having done .something in that way. It is A)!'
this reason that I earnestly desire to bring all good
people together and make them understanil each other
on the ground of a common and noble humanity ; t(j
worship the true, to love the good, to cultivate the
beautiful that is my religion, if I have a religion ;
but I am sick of names or nickname.^."
1
1l
' It was said that (.'(jurllandL Palmer hated the
clergy. This was not true; they hated him some
of them, at least, whose narrowness forced him into
opposition. I^ul some of the best of Lhem were
members or visitors at the Nineteenth Centurv Club.
At a reception gi\en to me {Americaiio more) at his
house I met several clerg)', although I was assured
that clerg)', Anglican and nonconforming, wcnild shun
me if I entered the arch-heretic's house, or accepted
his hospitality. The only Sunday I was in New
York, after preaching morn and afternoon in the
Church of the Holy Spirit and Grace Church respec-
f5E!1
)t*
60
Travel and Talk
lively, we mac'f . a pilgrimage with Courtlandt Palmer
to hear W.ird Beccher at Brooklyn. Mr. Beechcr's
grand prayer that night was reverent and human, like
the infinite, trustful, happy sigh of a child in its mother's
arms, and no one could be more apparently devout
and sympathetic than Courtlandt Palmer.
• We listened to Bcecher's sermon with that rapt
attention which the great American orator could
easily command even in his latter days, when he had
certainly lost nervous force. As he .sat in his chair
restfully watch'ng the disix.'rsal of his vast congrega-
tion, we went up to him on the platform. Courtlandt
Palmer said :
'" Mr. Beechcr, I thank you for your noble sermon.
I wish thousands more could have neard your grandly
human words."
' \\ hilst in New York I attended a reception at the
Ni'ietcenth Century Club. There must have been
over one thousand persons present ; fp.shionably
dressed women, the elite of New York's youth and
beaut)', were there, and man)* mcii of liqht and lead-
ing. When I arrived the hall was already crammed,
and ladies in full toilet were sitting all down the
grand staircase. The Club met at some large public
art galleries. I was the special lecturer on that
evening by Courtlandt ralmcr's invitation, and he
introduced me with great tact and courtesy. After
the lecture and a brief discussion, the company dis-
persed for tea and talk all over the spacious ante-
rooms.
* Men of all opinions upon every conceivable
subject arc heard at the Nineteenth Century Club,
and the tea and promenade and talk at the close
I
s
New York
6i
generally send everyone home happy, enlightened
and content.
' Courtlandt Palmer's death was not unforeseen by
himself.
*" I thought," he said to me at New York in 1885.
" last week the end was coming. I think my heart
stopped ; all grew dark. Well, I'm tiot afraid ; I'm
sorry to go, that's all. I might have done worse."
* When in England he complained much of his
head, and his vast correspondence and excessive
restlessness and activity seemed to be wearing him
out. The end came .soon after, and the eager spirit, full
of schemes for the regeneration of mankind, battling
to the last with the strife of tongues and a mortal
disease, passed away, all too soon,
' " To where, be>'ond these voices, there is peace." '
: i
XIV
IlKNKY Ward Bei:ciii:r as a prcaciier stood up to
the day of his death a head and shoulders figuratively
above all the preachers in America, perhaps the world.
President Lincoln said of him that * Bcecher was
the greatest motive force he had in the North ' during
the anti-slavery war.
This massive-minded and consummate orator,
I have heard it reported, on one occasion went itito a
hall packed with Southerners, spoke for three hours,
and sent the people out into the streets roaring
liberationists, at any rate/r^; /<•;;/.
Mrs. Heecher Stowe's ' Uncle Tom's Cabin,' and
Ward Beecher's oratory probabi)' did more to
suppress slavery than all the (itlur ' pleas ' put
^ ml
C\ >
* i
.>
02
Travel and Talk
to^^cthcr, barring General Grant's big battalions.
Barring, did I say ? Where would the big battah'ons
liave been without them ?
When Mr. lieecher came to London in 1866, in
the height of the anti-slavery agitation, he delivered
some memorable orations in Kxeter Hall. A man
piesent told me )'ou could have walked on the heads
of the people. The assembly was motionless atid
magnetised, and the listeners seemed to breathe
together, breaking out simultaneously into sobbing
or tumultuous api)lause. When the great preacher,
personally conductetl by Major P(Hid, came over for
the last time in 1886, his nervous energy was much
lowered, he was already a dying man ; besides, then he
had nv)thing to fight. Me resembled Mr. Gladstone in
one respect — he was always grandest when at bay,
fighting with his back to the wall and in a minority
of one. The sermons in 1886 were good but not
powerfully characteristic, and the lecturer failed to hit
the tone of the public ; there was a slight flavour
of sui)erannuation even about the jokes. No, I
certainly don't think Ik'echer was (juite haj)py in
iMiglatul the second time of asking.
De Witt Talmagc, a far lesser man, when he was
in London in 1893 and recentl}' in Australia, though
past his meridian, was brimful of what power he
ever had. In the gentle art of saying nothing like a
whirlwind, he is certainly supreme. lUit when he
says something, he marshals his facts with admir-
able effect ; and when he gets on the big war, in
which he plaj'ed so active and philanthropic a part,
his anect!r)tes are as stirring and grapln'c as the)- are
apparently inexhaustible.
Nf,w York
was
63
I did not licar Dc Witt Talmag^c in America. I
just missed him in Australia, where the [jjcncral
opinion was that his preachinj^ was a hu,c;c success,
but his lectures a comparative failure, the audiences
bein^ in a diminishing; ratio, chiefly because he
elected to talk about I\volution and (juestions, if
not beyond, certainl}' outside his ' last.'
B As a thinker Talmage could no more be coni-
j/ared to Beechcr than could Mr. Spur^jeon. Neither
Talmacje nor Spurc^con has done an}thins to re-
construct theology for the nineteenth eentur)- ; all
three as L,nvat popular orators reached each in his
way (juite the first rank, but Jieecher distinctly
lowers, and intellectually he was almost as happy atid
lucid in reconstruction as \V. I'. Robertson of ]?ri;4hton.
On the day of llenr)' W'aid Heecher's funeral
busy New York clo.sed its shutters, all Hrookl) 11
went into mourning, and the current mercantile life
of the city .seemed suspended.
Henry Ward Beechcr was a large, ' whole ' and
altogether phenomenal nature. It was not easy to
j)lace or to judge him. His moods were infiin'te, and
in him, as in most powerful actors and Ileechcr was .i
marvellous natural actor extremes met ; the sublime
imd the ridicuUnis lay close together. lie was madi.;
up of contrasts. He was half a dozen men, not one,
which, as Kmerson says, is the real distinction between
great and ordinary men. The lion, the wag and the
prophet seemed oddly blended and at times (luickl)'
interchangeable ; but no one man, save i)erhaps
Lincoln or Kmerson, has left such a mark on the
American life of the nineteenth century.
One night I made a pilgrimage to hear Hem}- W.
1
!i
^i J
i,
iU I
64
Travel ani> Talk
h
Heechcr, takinjj a car from Madison Avenue, which in
about half an hour brought me to the foot of the
famous Brooklyn Suspension Bridge.
No words can express the effect of that wonderful
structure, which spans the river, swings on two mighty
piers, and connects New York with Brooklyn. It
took me about twenty minutes to walk across. The
immense height of the Gothic stone piers, the
colossal chains and binders, with their multitudinous
network of lines converging in aerial perspective in
the electric light, the glimmering cities on both sides
the river, and the fleet of night steamers and ferry
boats brilliantly aglow with ruby and emerald points
of light, formed a magic scene never to be forgotten.
Another train brought me to within a stone's
throw of Ward Beecher's tabernacle, a spacious but un-
pretentious-looking edifice. On entering I was offered
a slab seat near the front, and very soon, on looking
back, I saw that all hope of retreat was completely
cut off. luery inch of si)ace was utilised and ever)'
seat was occupied. Beccher, in ordinary frock coat
and black tic, was reading from the Bible on a raised
platform. A tall horn-shaped glass full of large
yellow daisies was on one side, and amass of tropical-
looking scarlet foxgloves and drooping creepers stood
on his left-hand side.
Henry Ward Jk^echer's hair was completely white,
his oval face strongly marked, with finely cut profile,
exi>ressive mobile mouth, and rather restless eyes
that sometimes flashed out with .';ternness and at
others .seemed concentrated with a sort of inward
gaze. His manner was very quiet ; his voice very
low and distinct and musical ; his reading, to my
I
New York
65
mind, almost perfect in its natural but impressive
emphasis. In the prayer which followed, and which
was quite buoyant with hopefulness and trust and full
of comfort for the weary and heavy laden, I was much
struck by the absolute stillness of the dense throng ;
every inflection told ; there was not a superfluous
word, no attempt to prompt the Almighty or dictate
to Him, or make a personal display of rhetoric ; it
was quite an ideal presentment of the creature, with
all his wants and sins and hopes and fears, submitting
himself to the Creator for guidance and help. Then
followed a hymn, which might have been more con-
gregational in its delivery, and then the sermon, which
lasted about thirty-five minutes.
Mr. Beccher preached on Christ before Pilate, and
I shall not attempt to give any detailed analysis of
his sermon. He read the whole account, and pro-
ceeded to deal with two criminals — one an individual
Pilate, the other a collective body, the multitude who
cried, ' Crucify Him ! ' He .showed up Pilate as a weak
person, who had not the courage of his opinions, for
he knew that Jesus was innocent, but he would not
do the right and honest thing, because it was • bad
politics.' Upon this theme he played with many
good side hits at immoral politicians ; but he only
reached his full effectiveness when he came to deal
with the corporate ' criminal ' — the crowd who, in
their eagerness for their victim, had cried, ' His blood
be on us and on our children.' ' Oh, yes ; they were
quite ready to take the rcsi){)nsibility of the criminal
action ' Hcecher stoi)pcd suddenly and turned
to a passage in the Acts, where these same men,
when confronted with the prcaciiing of the A[)o^llc.-.,
\UL. I 1
.1.1
ifi;
\m
n
66
Travel and Talk
^1
arc found whimpering and complaining that the people
are now charging them with the blood-shedding of
Jesus. * It is always so,' said Beecher ; * when passion
is hot you will take any risk. But b3'-and-by, when
you have to take the consequences, you are not
so well pleased.' On this theme he waxed most
eloquent, with solemn and altogether impressive and
earnest seriousness. He dealt with the inexorable
nature of the moral law, the inevitable connection in
the moral and in the physical world between cause
and effect. The penalty might be delayed, for five,
for ten years, but the day of reckoning would come,
and every breach of the moral law would sooner or
later be visited. Toward the close of his sermon he
introduced a very powerful and dramatic illustration.
' Down by Hell Gate,' I understood him to say, in
allusion to some well-known place where certain
blasting was to be carried out, ' the rock is tunnelled,
and deep under the solid masses over which men
walk with such careless security, there are now laid
trains of explosive powder. All seems so safe and
firm outwardly, it is hardly possible to imagine that
those solid masses will ever be shaken, but the time will
come when a tiny spark will fire the whole train, and
the mountain will be in a moment rent in the air and
torn to atoms. There are men here to-night,' he said,
looking round — and a kind of shudder went through
the assembly — * there are men here who are tunnelled,
mined ; their time will come, not to-day or to-morrow,
not for months or years perhaps, but it will come ;
in a moment, from an unforeseen quarter, a trifling
incident, their reputations will be blown to atoms,
and what they have sown the)* will reap— /wj/ that.
There is no dynamite like men's lusts and passions.'
\E\V YOUK
67
in
As I mingled with the thronj^ who passed out
into the Brooklyn streets, everyone seemed subdued
and solemnised. I could not wonder at Heechcr's
long-sustained and, to the day of his death, unabated
pulpit popularity.
Only once or twice did Heecher rise to anything
like oratorical fervour. I can understand that he is
often more powerful, but I should think seldom more
really impressive, and all the more so on account of a
certain deliberate and sad restfulness of delivery, like
that of a man speaking out of the wisdom of his heart
concerning the things he knows to be true.
When an English edition of his sermons was called
for, I was invited by the publisher to edit the book.
I chose a certain number of his finest sermons, rang-
ing from 1S56 to 1S70, and sent a fly-leaf frontispiece
to Hrookl)'n for approval. I had styled the i)reacher
by inadvertence * the Rev. Ward Jkecher,' although,
being already personally acquainted with him, I
should have avoided the error. 1 received the follow-
ing characteristic letter of rebuke :
I:
{■
• July 23, 1886.
'Mv I)K.\R Hawk IS,— When my mother, of sainted
memory, brought me to the altar, I was baptised with
the na,mG of Henrj' ]V^
N>
^
6^
23 WEST MAIN STREET
WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580
(716) 872-4503
^
''^:*%<^
<#
.^4,.
f 4^
%
f
72
Travel and Talk
in 1893 owing to ill health has been an irreparable
loss to New York. I am glad to say that he has
now slowly recovered from the nervous collapse
brought on by years of overwork, embittered by
anxious polemics — for Heber Newton is a fighter.
Born in 1840, ordained deacon at twenty-two, he
came to New York in 1869, and for twenty-four years
he has been widening and deepening in doctrine and
spirituality, somewhat to the consternation of his
ecclesiastical rulers. The last ten years of Heber
Newton's life have been years of hard fighting, and
the battle is by no means over. His lectures on the
Bible brought the first episcopal censure down upon
him. Bishop Potter suspended his course on Genesis
— not, however, characteristically enough, until he had
got to the last sermon ; then Father Ignatius set up
in a hall close to his church, and so badgered Bishop
Potter, and ' worried around ' generally, that a com-
mission was appointed to inquire into Newton's
orthodoxy. We believe the commission is still busy.
It is composed chiefly of second and third rate men,
themselves somewhat innocent of theology. Bishop
Potter, kindest, ablest, and discreetest of men, is well
known to be adverse to such prosecutions, but, like
most bishops, is occasionally forced to take vexatious
action by lay bigots, always more clerical than the
clergy, who get played upon by some wordy busy-
body like Ignatius. Certainly an attack upon Heber
Newton proved * very good business,' as the theatrical
managers say.
* And for me,' said Heber Newton, * it was excel-
lent. Of course I let the Father go on without reply.
He was giving me the opportunity I had so long
.
New York
73
waited for. When he had done I was certain of the
ear not only of New York, but of America, for what
I had to say ; he saved me all the trouble and ex-
pense of advertisement, and paved the way, by his
noisy and impertinent diatribes, for the wholesome
truths I wished to impart to a circle far wider than
my own local congregation.'
' But what is your present position in the Church ? '
' Well, I am still waiting. The Commission of In-
quiry would probably have gone to sleep, but I would
not allow thisj, and wrote to the Bishop insisting on
some conclusion. Charges had been made — un-
tenable heresies, a dishonest ministry, keeping in the
Church for the sake of gain, &c. Why,' said Newton,
* if I went out to-morrow, as many have done in
our country, I should be five times better off than
I am r.">", My traducers forget that. Let them
look at the . *lcs of popularity acquired by othef
seceders like Swing of Chicago. It is easy enougn
to preach enlightened doctrines, and bring religion
up to date outside the Church ; but I entirely hold
with you, our mission is to reform from within, and
to claim enlightenment and truth right in the mid-
stream of authority and tradition represented by the
Reformed Church. I was surprised at Stopford
Brooke's secession ; it was easy, but it was not heroic
— it was simply surrender.'
Perhaps the most striking remarks made by Hcber
Newton were in connection with the Roman Catholic
Church in America :
* People don't seem to grasp the importance of
Leo XIII.'s action in sending o\er a legate, and re-
instating Dr. McGlynn in opposition to the Ultra-
ri.
74
Travel and Talk
f I
/
m
montane policy of his own Archbishop. Here was
McGlynn actually excommunicated and deposed at
the instance of Archbishop Corrigan in his own diocese,
chiefly on account of Socialist politics, and when the
Father appeals to Rome after defying his diocesan,
the Pope sends a legate and reinstates the recalcitrant
priest under the Bishop's nose — and this is done
manifestly out of deference to American popular and
public opinion. What does it mean ? It means that
the dogma " Catholic first, American second " will be
reversed, and it is to be American first, dogma second.
The Pope admits by this and similar acts that respect
for American opinion is essential to the maintenance
of Roman authority in America. The Roman Catho-
lic Church is to be adapted and remoulded to suit our
national needs and aspirations. This is an entirely new
departure, and it emanates from Rome. It is a blow
struck at Ultramontanism by Ultramontanes ! It is
the beginning of the end of the old, fatal, and suicidal
non possumus, which has so long sat like a nightmare
upon the bosom of the Roman Catholic Church, and
prevented it from breathing freely. All liberalism
has been quenched in Europe ; but what no Pope has
done for France or Italy, Leo XIII. has just accom-
plished for America : he has supported independence
and freedom of thought within the Roman Catholic
Church.'
Heber Newton spoke of the deplorable effect pro-
duced by the Archbishop of Canterbury's snub to the
Parliament of Religions at Chicago.
* The Roman Catholic Church rose at once above
such a narrow and pusillanimous policy. She ac-
cepted the invitation heartily and respectfully, and
New York
75
sent, in Cardinal Gibbons and Archbishop Ireland,
two of her stronf^cst men. No doubt the official
authority of your Archbishop has influenced many of
our clergy, but his censure is, nevertheless, widely de-
plored, and felt to be unworthy of his high office, and
out of harmony with the age. There is a curious
irony about the head of the reformed Churches posing
as a narrow inquisitor or Mugwump at the moment
that the Pope is throwing over the old 7i07i possumus
to join hands with the latest and most daring forms
of political and religious liberalism.'
Of course it is justifiable to criticise the attitude
of the Archbishops and Bishops of the English
Church ; but we must remember that it is easy to
be wise after the event, and no one could have quite
anticipated the weighty and solemn character assumed
by that unique concourse of the world's religious re-
presentatives at Chicago in the Hall of Columbus.
Heber Newton is a man apparently in the prime
of life ; outwardly he shows no signs of that nervous
prostration which followed an attack of influenza in
1893. His countenance seems ever radiant with
peace and even joyousness. He speaks with flowing
ease and grace, is full of anecdote anc wit, and a
most fascinating companion. A deeper note is
frequently struck, and his spiritual sensibility, as it
were, shines through and irradiates the common affairs
and occasions of life. That so pure and fervent a
spirit may not too soon wer.r out the earthen vessel,
is the prayer of many a graceful and devoted heart
in New York City. On writing (1895) to ask how
he was getting on with the commission appointed to
t
Hi-
\\
u
r
1
i P.
i i
. i
■ «
w
I:
f
76
Travel and Talk
inquire into his orthodoxy; I received the following
characteristic letter from him :
' Bemardsville, N.J.
Rev. IL R. Ilawcis, M.A.,
' Queen's llcuse, Cheyne Walk,
* Lonrlon, S.W., England.
December ii, 1895.
' Dear Mr. Haweis, — Your letter from home is
very welcome. It relieves my mind of an anxiety.
Never having heard of you as passing by here on your
way home, as you had expected, I did not know but
that in your remarkable individuality of life you might
have essayed a journey to the Milky Way en route for
London. I am very sorry to hear that you have
been so much worn down. I should not have guessed
it from the brilliant articles I have seen from you in
the magazines.
* How you must have enjoyed this round-the-world
trip !
' In answer to your inquiry, I am glad to report
that I am still within the fold of the one true and
only true Church. I suppose your inquiry refers to
the slight disturbance of last spring. 1 do not know
whether you understand how that came about.
While you were in this country, our House of Bishops
set forth a pastoral letter of a most astonishing cha-
racter ; undertaking to define the Church's teachings
upon the doctrine of the Incarnation, the Birth of
Christ, the Resurrection of Christ, and the Inspiration
of the Scriptures. They assumed to do what never
has been done in our Church — i.e. give an autho-
ritative and an official interpretation of the Creeds.
They even ventured so far as to say concerning the
Resurrection of Christ that the Church tolerated no
other teaching than that interpretation which they set
New York
11
forth. It seemed to me that this pastoral letter was
fraught with great danger to the intellectual liberty
of the Church. I tried to get a united protest against
it, but failed. Had I been in good strength I should
have taken up the letter seriatim in a series of
sermons. I was not up to this. So I relieved my
conscience by taking direct issue with the House of
Bishops on the question of the Resurrection of Christ,
when Easter time came around, and in as explicit a
way as my English allowed, set forth the very teach-
ing which they had declared to be not tolerated in the
Church — namely, the spiritual nature of the resurrec-
tion body of Jesus in which He appeared to the
disciples. You can quite imagine the holy horror of
the brethren. For a while J thought my day had
come at last. But I stood to my colours and let the
excitement wear down, which it did in time. So I
had the satisfaction of demonstrating that the Church
did tolerate this particular view. And thus I had the
satisfaction of making an effectual protest against the
intolerant position assumed in the letter. Incident-
ally I had a great opportunity of leading the thought
of the religious people in the country to this larger
conception of the truth, as I had ample opportunity
of knowing from all parts of the country.
* Since then I have been quietly at my work.
* Does this answer your inquiry ? If not, ask me
anything further, and I will tell you the truth, the
whole truth, and nothing but the truth.
* Mrs. Newton joins me in most cordial remem-
brances to Mrs. Haweis.
' It is barely possible that I may have a chance of
listening to you in your own church another summer.
• Always yours sincerely,
• R. Heber Newton.'
. h
ll
I i
• I
)!!
II
78
II
HI
1
V
.1
. i
i , 5 ;,
,i]f :
w
1-
A'
h
!
. ■
Travel and Talk
XVII
Dr. Henry Charles Potter, Bishop of New
York, it will be generally admitted, stands at the head
of the New York clergy, and stands very high, both
in capacity, energy, and achievement. Of the many
Episcopal clergy whose good name and fame is in
all mouths, I number specially among my few good
friends and valued acquaintances Dr. Rainsford,
Dr. Huntington, Dr. Guilbert, Dr. Heber Newton, and
Dr. Henry Potter, the Bishop of New York,
Dr. Henry Potter, of whom it has been remarked
that he was never known to say an imprudent thing
or do an unwise one, is nevertheless, like our Dr.
Moorhouse, Bishop of Manchester, one of the bravest
and, like our Stanley, Dean of Westminster, one of the
most chivalrous of men. He was the trusted almoner
of the late wealthy Miss Wolff, an admirable lady,
whom it was my privilege to meet at Dr. Huntington's
house, and who was good enough to keep her house
open a fortnight later than usual on purpose to offer
me hospitality. Dr. Henry Potter, formerly rector of
Grace Church, now Bishop of New York, came over
to London several years ago with letters of introduc-
tion from my friend Senator Sumner, if I remember
rightly, or vtce versa, and I had the honour of accom-
panying him to Fulham to visit the Bishop of London,
as later on I introduced Dr. Peabody, the Boston Pro-
fessor of Moral Philosophy, to Archbishop Tait at a
garden party at Lambeth. Old Dr. Peabody positively
shook and trembled with emotion in the presence
of the Archbishop, and in the midst of the historic
and venerable precincts and associations of Lambeth
T
Nkvv York
79
Palace, and was unable to get out a word when Arch-
bishop Tait shook him in a friendly way by the hand
with his pleasant little Scotch smile.
Dr. Potter first introduced himself to me one
Sunday morning after service in the vestry of St.
James's, Westmoreland Street.
Bishop Potter's friendly attentions to me from the
time of our first meeting till now have been many ;
and in 189$ he was very useful in facilitating for me
some lines of travel with his introductions. I have
just stumbled upon one of his friendly letters.
•London : February 7, 1887.
* My dear Mr. Haweis, — Many thanks for your call
and most kind note.
* I am sorry to think that I shall miss you.
'If I were to be here it would give me great
pleasure to be of any service in any form, but 1 sail
next Saturday for America.
* I trust you are not seriously indisposed, and am,
with all good wishes,
' Very faithfully yours,
• II. C. Potter.'
XVIII
Grover Cleveland. — No President since Lin-
coln (Grant was a military more than a civil figure)
has made anything like the mark which Cleveland
has already made (1895) and is likely to leave on
the political character and constitution of his country.
I speak of course as a complete outsider. I am
as completely outside American politics as Cleveland
is rather ostentatiously (1893) outside British politics.
)
i i
I'll
III
T
So
Tkavkl and Talk
I
A distinguished American has just assured me
(1896) that President Cleveland, who was returned
on the Democratic ticket, is a good ' England hater.'
I can hardly believe it, though, like any other Presi-
dent, he has shown himself quite equal to a little
international frontier juggling at England's expense
on the eve of an election.
A bright sun, a bitter wind, a blue sky, and the
thermometer 4° below zero — and there you have
Washington on the morning of December 7, 1885,
at the opening of Congress. The immense dome-
crowned pile of white marble (?) which stands up
against the blue sky, and is reached by flights of
marble steps, looks like nothing less than St. Paul's
Cathedral built of snow, with a couple of huge
Parthenon temples on either side. P'rom an early
hour the vast halls and corridors were crowded with
a miscellaneous throng, and about half-past eleven the
Senators and M.C.'s began to pour in. Mr. Abram
S. Hewitt, one of the foremost men in Congress,
was good enough to pass me to the President's own
gallery. It was an imposing spectacle. An immense
hall packed, the floor laid out as an amphitheatre,
the Speaker's tribune on one side, deep galleries all
round, and every place thronged, every door besieged
with twenty or thirty rejected applicants for admission.
Many of the members, as I looked down, seemed
embarrassed by the huge bouquets placed on their
desks by political admirers. The roar of conversation
subsided for the roll-call of names, and the Clerk of
the House then took the votes for the two Speakers
nominated, Reed and Carlisle. All through the
voting viva voce, errand boys capered up and down the
T
Nkw York
8i
House and members carried on excited colloquies.
It was soon clear that Mr. Speaker Carlisle would be
re-elected, and presently he was escorted to his high
seat by Reed, the rejected candidate, and another
hon. member. Me then made what I suppose is the
routine speech of thanks, buttering the House pro-
fusely as the greatest political assembly in the world ;
then reminding hon. members of their duties, which
was more to the point ; recommending mutual for-
bearance, candour, order, and general propriety of
conduct ; lastly, promising to govern the House with
impartiality and justice according to the best of his
power, &c. Judge Kelly, the oldest M.C. present,
then advanced to the front in plain clothes (of course
everyone wore plain clothes), and standing on the
floor of the House, swore the Speaker in. It was
understood that little more would be done that da\',
Sherman having been duly elected as President of
the Senate pro tcin. I took a last look round on the
immense assembly. A portion of the galleries was
devoted to the general public ; but everyone was in
black upstairs and down, and the effect was most
impressive, almost funereal. The bright stars and
stripes draped above the Speaker were the only spot
of colour in the House except the occasional bouquets
dotted about on the dr esse s, chiefly of the Southern
M.C.'s. "^ ^
I left the members of Council and the Senators in
full session. The swearing in of one member is like
the swearing in of another, and out of respect to the
memory of Vice-President Hendricks it was arranged
that the
adjourn.
House, after electing its officers, should
■7\
« I
' i
]
v^l
Ut^'<0
1
\
VOL. I
G
f i
!f I
N <
'kl
ii
82
Travel and Talk
I entered the White House. Ascending the
marble steps I was ushered into a spacious hall, in
which stood a large picture of Washington about to
sign the inevitable Decree of Independence as usual.
A very beautiful glazed opaque glass screen separated
the hall from the rest of the ground floor. To right
and left open out other apartments, anterooms, and
the staircase leading to the President's own chambers.
On receiving my card the President sent down that
he would see me at once. On such a day, when all
W^ashington was in a political ferment, and the
President was understood to be preparing his Mes-
sage, I should not have been surprised if I had been
kept waiting an hour or two, and then learned that
the first citizen of America was rather too busy to
engage in small talk with travellers. Not at all.
As I entered the spacious apartment in which the
head of the American State transacts business, the
President was sitting at his bureau with his back to
the windows, and after shaking me warmly by the
hand bade me be seated. He was in the middle of
a long letter, but he pushed it aside, and, swinging
himself round on his pivoted chair (like those used
in the Pullman cars), he at once inquired about n.y
stay in America ; asked me how far they had got on
with business in the House ; and on my remarking
that the Speaker, who had finished about half an
hour ago, seemed to be rather profuse in his thanks,
dealing out a good deal of butter to the M.C.'s
assembled —
' I guess,' said Mr. Cleveland, * they can stand a
good deal of that.
He added that Carlisle was admirably fitted for
the post of Speaker, and he was right glad of his
1<
T
Nkw York
83
rc-elcction, commanding, as he did, the esteem and
confidence of all sides of the House. Speaking of
Mr. Abram S. Hewitt, who had given me my
letter of introduction, he said :
' He is a most able man, but I fear his health is
not good. Unfortunately, nervous energy, brain
power, and physical strength do not alwaj's go
together. For every great effort Hewitt has to pay.
A great speech costs him a great deal — days before.
I wish I could give him some of my strength.'
The President then went on to say he missed his
exercise. * When I was a bachelor I a'ways made a
point of taking my meals in a different place from
where I slept. At breakfast time I went out, all
weathers, and took a good stiff walk before I got my
food. To such habits I attribute a good deal of my
health and strength.' He asked me about my own
methods of work, &c., which would hardly be widely
interesting to a discerning public, and added :
* I myself sit up late, but I sleep well — a great
point ; but this White House all day long, and not
to be able to get away, it sometimes oppresses me,
Walking in the streets is, of course, not pleasant,
I get into my carriage, which is change of air, but
I find the less exercise I take the less inclined I am
for it.'
Some one here came in with despatches, and I
rose to go, but the President seemed in no hurry.
* It seems to me,' I said, ' at such a time as this
that your minutes run out like golden sands. I
thought you would be too busy with your Message
to see me.'
' Oh,' he said, swaying to right and left on his
wooden chair, * I finished my Message on Thursday.
I'
I I:
i
li
G 2
I ,
i!''
Hi
MJ
U
T.
^
84
Travel and Talk
Of course I am beset with business, but there often
comes a hill in the busiest day, and one is rather glad
of the relief.'
I was struck throughout with President Cleve-
land's ease of manner, and his aptitude for interrup-
tions. He seemed to me a man like Lord Brougham,
but without Brougham's irritability, capable of getting
through any quantity of work with astonishing speed
and little effort, and like so many very busy men he
seemed always to have time to be idle.
* I had a very pleasant little visit from Archdeacon
Farrar the olher day,' he remarked ; * he seems a
very agreeable gentleman, and I heard one of his
lectures.'
The President seemed bent on light chit-chat,
and I therefore avoided the introduction of any
political question ; but he suddenly broke off.
' What will be the end of all this power suddenly
thrown into the hands of the masses in England ?
Who will hold the balance ? '
I said it looked very much as if the Irish would
(1885): that for many years we had been trying to
govern them, and it seemed now as if they were going
to have a turn and govern us, the Irish vote having
to be rather more than reckoned with by either
side of the House. He then asked about Mr.
Parnell, and on my remarking that as Mr. Parnell
was a statesman and a gentleman, although more
dangerous than an inferior leader, the members would
rather have him than another, because they could deal
with him on equal terms —
* That,' replied the President, * is very justly said
they might easily change for the worse.'
He asked which party was going to govern next
New York
8S
(this was December 7, before the result of the elections
was known), to which I replied that many people
who called themselves Liberals were so disgusted
with the muddled foreign policy of the last few years
that they would not be sorry to see Lord Salisbury
at the helm, simply because they wanted a change.
I am no politician, but the history of English
politics 1885 to 1895 ha^ curiously confirmed my
presentiment.
I was a little impressed with the feeling that
the President took a purely outside interest in
our politics. They did not seem to affect him
one way or the other. He had no part in the
European Concert — he was simply curious to know
as a matter of gossip on a big scale ; indeed, with
three thousand miles of ocean rolling between, what
can it matter to America, complete in her gigantic
self, whether Lord Salisbury, or Mr. Gladstone, or
Lord Rosebery,or Mr. Parnell rule the roost ? Niagara
would go on just the same. I heard the other day
that a school atlas had been issued in the United
States in which all the islands — England among
them — had been omitted as likely to confuse the
pupil with unessential details. This may have been
a joke, but with a dash of sense in it.
I asked the President if he had ever been to
England. He said No, and had never felt moved to
leave America. There was so much to do there.
He has four years more to reign (1885), and then —
then, as Miss Cleveland remarked to me after my inter-
view with the President — ' no one can tell what will
happen,' but she seemed to imply that although the
burden of the State at times was well-nigh intolerable,
Cleveland would not willingly leave the helm.
H
i
fi
ul i
1
i
5'1
,J>'
r
86
Travel and Talk
1
i
i
1 /
I 1^
t .1
IS:
il
f -i.
1:
i',
ii
. if
' For years he has had certain aims before him,
and as long as he sees some chance of lessening the
corruptions and abuses with which the head of the
State has to grapple, he will go on.'
As I rose for the second time to leave, President
Cleveland rose and accompanied me to the drawing-
room, where we found Miss Cleveland, who before I
left was good enough to show me through the chief
rooms in the White House : the large bedroom in
which poor Garfield lay, and which was then her
own ; the President's bedroom and private study ; the
room occupied by the Prince of Wales in President
Buchanan's time, and the elegant drawing-rooms
and private reception chambers. The interior of the
White House is on a large scale a reproduction of
many a great country seat in England. I under-
stood from Miss Cleveland that it was a close copy
of the Duke of Leinster's seat. Miss Cleveland
herself, although before the President's marriage
she occupied the position of the foremost lady in
the land, never allowed the onerous social duties
which she discharged with such gracious ease and
hospitality to prevent her from taking the liveliest
interest in the arts and literature. She is herself the
authoress of a charming book of essays, justly ad-
mired and widely read, and she gratified me personally
by saying that she had been attracted to my writings
years ago by reading an article of mine on ' Emanuel
Deutsch,' of Talmud celebrity, and was just then
engaged in studying ' Music and Morals.' Of course
this won my heart.
I have never drawn very close to the American
New York
87
politician. But I have known one or two who have
inspired me with respect and admiration. Unhappily,
such men can be counted on the fingers ; but they
stand out as witnesses that it is possible to enter the
arena of politics, if not without some compromise, at
least without serious loss of dignity.
Among these I need ot say, in the opinion of all
unprejudiced persons, is l^rcsident Grover Cleveland.
It has been my privilege to know ' personally at
least three other high class politicians — Senator
Abram Hewitt, the Hon. John Bigelow, and
Senator Charles Sumner.
XIX
Abram Hewitt was introduced to me by the late
Sir Morell Mackenzie, whose patient he was whilst
in England. On my arrival in 1885 in New York, I
immediately received a courteous invitation to stay
with him on his large estate in New Jersey. I here
got my first impression of a country gentleman's life
in the wilder parts of Nev Jersey. Accompanied by
my wife, I drove through a large thinned-out tract
of wooded country. All the old trees in the park
had been cut down, and the coloured and half-caste
people were at work on the land. At last we came to
something like open rough lawnland and a large house
all built of timber, but splendidly appointed inside in
the latest French style ; there was no touch of anything
peculiar, highly artistic or specially aesthetic about it
— simply French. The hall was decorated with skins,
antlers, trophies of the chase and implements of the
vanishing, or I may say vanished Indian.
i Ui
u
I ill
f
)£
'r
1'
■
•- •■
, ;
'
IK
1^" t
'6
^ .1
88
Travel and Talk
For several days we enjoyed the hospitality and
agreeable society of Abram Hewitt and his amiable
wife and daughters.
I remember Mr. Hewitt's taking us on to his lawn
and calling our attention to a little wooden shed on
the slope of the hill, in full view of the house. * That/
said he with the pardonable pride of a man who felt
he was preserving an interesting monument of Ame-
rican ancient history, * that wooden shed is where
Washington stopped to shoe his horses ; it was a forge
in those days, and I would not allow it to be pulled
down, though man}- people declared that it spoiled
the view. To mc it is an interesting relic of the past.
I will not have it touched.'
We drove out one day to see a beautiful lake
about twelve miles away, still on Abram Hewitt's
land. ' I had some idea,' he said, * of coming back
by rail ; ' in fact, a line of rail ran by the lake.
' But where is the terminus ? '
' Oh, not near here.'
' How could you use the train, then ? '
* Stop it,' he said.
' Just hold up your umbrella ? ' I said, joking.
'Why, yes, about that.'
' And would that stop the train ? '
' Why, yes,' said Hewitt, ?.miling at my ignorance.
' You see, the railway belongs to me, so they must
stop ! '
Truly they do things on a grand scale in America.
I sent him a * Pall Mall Gazette ' article in which I
had given some account of President Cleveland, and
recorded the President's kind allusions to himself
I wrote again in 1890 telling him of Sir Morell
Mackenzie's proposed visit to America, for at that
New York
89
time Sir Morell had some thoughts of going to
New York and Boston to deliver some lectures ;
the lectures, however, did not come off.
Mr, Hewitt writes :
• Aix-les-Bains, Fiance :
'July 14, 1890.
* Dear Mr. Haweis, — Youmoteof i6th inst. has
just reached me at these baths, to which I have been
banished for the cure from a very serious attack of
rheumatism. I hope to sail for home on Aug. 2nd,
and to see Dr. Morell Mackenzie at my house during
his visit. He must not pass us by, as we are old
friends.
* Your reference to me is duly appreciated, and I
am glad to have been remembered by Mrs. Piaweis,
to whom please present my kind regards,
' I regret that my stay will be too short in England
to admit of a personal renewal of the very pleasant
associations of your visit to America.
' Sincerely yours,
'A. Hewitt.'
Communication had been opened between Sir
Morell Mackenzie and the Lowell Institute, but the
episode of the German Emperor and Mackenzie's
book had intervened, and I fear that professional un-
popularity had something to do with the withdrawal
of the Lowell Institution's offer. Mackenzie was
no doubt annoyed, but he bore what he certainly
considered to be a snub with characteristic dignity
and good humour. He wrote me the following letter,
as it was by my advice that he had first turned his
eyes to Boston as a lecturing field.
I
:;li
u
i\
i ii
V
i II
..- I
' i
T
i
!
\ \
1
1
' 1
ll
i tt ;,
I)
Si!"
I
1'.
lit. .
i
90
Travel and Talk
* 19 Ilarley Street, Cavendish Square, W, :
♦December 2";, 1889.
' My dear Haweis,— Mr. Augustus ^^owdl';
simply says : " I must regret that circumstances
compel me to withdraw the invitation I sent you to
lecture at the Lowell Institute."
' I do not mind it at all. I had written a letter to
Lowell, in which I said, " I viight be able to give one
or two lectures," but I did not actually accept the
invitation, so that the slight to me is not so great as
it might have been. When I see you I will tell you
what I think are the circumstances which have led to
this collapse.
' The first day you are in the neighbourhood I hope
you will look in.
' Yours always,
'MoRELL Mackenzie.'
Before my seconJ visit to America I received
another graceful note from Abram Hewitt, who
maintained his friendly relations with Mackenzie
down to the last, and often spoke of him with
admiration.
Abram Hewitt writes :
♦ New York :
• September 8, 1S93.
• Dear Mr. Haweis, — Your note reaches me just
as I am leaving town, but even if I had time I am not
well enough to call to see you to-day. Pray give my
kindest regards to Mrs. Haweis, and tell her how
much I regret that I am deprived of the pleasure of
extending a welcome to her and to you ; but on your
return to the city if you will kindly notify me of your
arrival, I hope I shall be well enough to manifest in
New York
91
some way the pleasure which a renewal of our
acquaintance will give to me and my family.
' Sincerely yours,
'Abram S. Hewitt.'
The wreck of the ' Oregon * liner on the coast of
New Jersey will long be remembered. It was one of
the finest Cunarders, and no lives were lost. Some
of the mail bags were, however, lost at first, but they
were afterwards, strangely enough, washed up on the
New Jersey coast. One of them contained a letter of
mine to Abram Hewitt, which was duly delivered — a
little late.
He wrote me the following interesting letter :
'House of Representatives, U.S., Washington, D.C. :
'May 3, 1886.
' Dear Dr. Haweis,— The delay which has taken
place in replying to your letter of the 14th of March
is due to the fact that it went to the bottom with the
steamer " Oregon," and was picked up on the shores
of New Jersey, many miles below the scene of the
disaster. Although somewhat discoloured, it is quite
intelligible, and as it may interest you to possess such
a reminder of your visit to America, I send it back to
you as a curiosity.
* I am glad to learn that you and Mrs. Haweis got
safely home, and think well enough of America to
entertain the idea of coming back again. In regard
to the subject matter of your letter, you will remember
that when you were here the Cooper Institute was in
process of reconstruction. It will be quite finished by
next autumn, and I should be very glad to have you
give a lecture there, but you will have to elect between
, I
t:
II
m
(,' ■ 1 1
It
i
92
Travel and Talk
avarice and ambition. The lectures given by the
trustees to the pubh'c are free. Of course such a
lecture would yield you no profit. If, on the other
hand, you choose to hire the hall and pay for the ad-
vertising, you may charge such admission fee as you
may see fit. Sometimes a very large audience will
attend a lecture to which an admission is charged,
but it is somewhat of an experiment. On the other
hand, for a free lecture you will have an enormous
audience, and of the best kind. I must leave you to
choose between the two alternatives if you should
decide to come.
* My family are in Europe, at present in Venice.
They will be in London some time during the month
of June. If you should be at home, I will remind
them to let you know of their presence. They usually
stop at the Bristol Hotel, not far from your church.
* We are nearly in as much confusion here from
labour troubles as you are with your Irish difficulties.
I think they are largely due to the same cause, but
we have no Gladstone to offer any remedy, and per-
haps it may turn out that remedies are not needed so
much as submission to the will of Providence and the
order of progress. Our President has sent in a Labour
Message, which you may have seen, but which will
not instruct you much on a difficult problem, which
even Presidents do not always understand.
* I pray you to make my kindest regards to Mrs.
Haweis, and both of you to be assured that if you
come to America you will have a cordial welcome at
Ringwood, if you like the climate and the dairy.
' Very sincerely yours,
'Abram S. Hewitt.
'The Rev. R. IL Haweis,
'London.'
New York
93
^T.
I have had letters delivered under odd conditions
— one from a balloon which escaped from Paris
during the siege; one which I posted myself whilst
in a free balloon up in the clouds and sailing
over Kent — it fell into some hedgerow or chimney
stack, or on some roof, but it was conscientiously
posted, and reached its destination not long after my
aerial voyage ; but I think on the whole the ship-
wrecked letter from the ' Oregon ' mail bags, returned
to me by Abram Hewitt, was perhaps the most phe-
nomenal of the lot.
XX
Charles Sumner is one of those men who live
for ideas. Such people seldom make successful politi-
cians, but they are of the stuff of John Stuart Mill,
who, though they can never retain place and parlia-
mentary pc'/er, invariably leave their mark on a de-
bate, and sacrifice themselves for causes which time
alone can insure the triumph of The Right Honour-
able James Stansfeld in England is a noble type of
this high class, but he is exceptional in being able to
claim many political triumphs. Charles Sumner has
always been a fighter of monopolies and jobs, and
monopolists and jobbers have revenged themselves
upon him by shutting him out of office when they
could. But somehow there is a vitality about in-
tegrity and pluck, and only last year (1895) Sumner
went to Washington and defeated a pretty little
Southern Pacific job at the instance, and to some ex-
tent under the aegis, of my good friend Mayor Sutro
of Francisco.
Sumner's name will for ever be associated in the
i I
94
Travel and Talk
!l ■'
:
■; ^
IK
American politics of the nineteenth century with the
noble fight he made against the postal and telegraphic
monopoly scandals. He is a typical American
speaker, and extremely eloquent and effective — col-
lected, smart, deliberate, and full on occasion of
caustic humour, peculiarly his own. When he was
over here for the first time I took him to a great
public dinner, when he was unexpectedly called upon
to return thanks for visitors and foreigners present,
and I shall never forget the quiet composure with
which he at once rose and delivered, without a
moment's time for preparation, by far the most telling
speech of the evening. This struck me as the more
remarkable because most American dinner and break-
fast impromptus are carefully prepared, and not seldom
learnt off by rote. Emerson's were usually read
— cleverly, no doubt, the manuscript being concealed
behind his dessert plate, under cover of some vine
leaves, but delivered with quite impromptu grace.
I still remember Sumner's warm grip and moist
eye as he shook me by the hand in 1893 ^t Francisco
after my last sermon at the Golden Gate Hall. * If
we never meet again on earth, may we meet yonder,
friend,' said he, with a ring of genuine emotion which
deeply touched me.
Sumner was in England in 1883, and before leav-
ing he came to St. James's, Westmoreland Street, one
Sunday morning, but was unable to effect an entrance.
He seems to have stood jammed up in the crowd at
the door, and after several futile attempts to get
through, wrote the following message on his card,
which I only got after the service (I have his charac-
teristic card now) :
New York
95
1 the
aphic
jrican
— col-
Dn of
: was
great
upon
esent,
3 with
out a
telling
more
break-
eldom
^ read
cealed
le vine
Lce.
moist
mcisco
«lf
'onder,
which
e leav-
et, one
ranee.
)wd at
to get
card,
harac-
' 10-50 A.M.
• Porch of St. James's :
•June 17, 1883.
' As I can obtain or retain neither seat nor stand-
ing room, I will retire in good order. I am sorry that
I could not hear you. I congratulate you on your
crowded congregations. We sail Thursday, xxiv.
Thanks for your courtesies.
'Charles Sumner.
•To Rev. Mr. Hawels.'
XXI
The Hon. John Bigelow, formerly American
minister at Paris and Berlin, is one of those men
whose high character and solid attainments would
mark him out in any country for the most responsible
offices in the State. But Bigelow is a fastidious and,
I should say, not an over-ambitious man. Those who
are most wanted to serve do not always most want to
serve. For a short time in later years he held the
treasurership of New York, but I am not aware that
he has since accepted any office.
I well remember his wife, the fascinating Mrs.
John Bigelow, since dead, making her way through a
crowded reception given to me in New York, and at
once inviting me and my wife to stay at West Point,
her beautiful summer residence on the Hudson River.
What a river ! with its huge steamers, and its large
fish, and its shores almost out of sight.
John Bigelow, seen in his home, is a fine type of
the quiet, courteous, and somewhat reserved Ameri-
can gentleman — with that rare simplicity and native
modesty which add such sweetness and charm to
the truly refined and eminent American.
;ii
I
' If I i
m
j
I
l^
96
Travel and Talk
As I walked about with him in his grounds h'sten-
ing to his talk on the trees and flowers, he stopped
occasionally to pass a cheerful remark to some negro
or half-caste engaged in not unwilling toil, and I
fancied it might have been thus that Washington
moved about, treating as equal, in spite of the pre-
valent slavery, every brother man, and great only in
his manhood.
! I,
At Bigelow's house in New York I dined with
Conkling, the crack lawyer, talker, and I should say
characteristic wind-bag of the period. Two more
typical American contrasts than Bigelow and Cork-
ling could hardly be imagined. Conkling seemed to
me an insufferably vulgar, loud, clever person — utterly
conceited and self-centred. If there could have been
two Conklings in one, they would have been like double
stars and kept revolving incessantly round each other !
Smartness and self-consciousness raised to their
highest power are not an agreeable combination,
especially when coupled with small regard for others.
Conkling talked through you and over you and all
round you, and quoted poetry whether you wanted to
hear it or not, and answered his own riddles and
asked questions which he never meant you to answer,
being of the nature of Cicero's rhetorical inquiries in
the Verrine or Catiline orations. I can recollect
nothing that Conkling said — only the abiding flavour
of his arrogance and conceit. I remember, too, being
much tickled by the smart way in which Mrs. John
Bigelow, with whom he bandied words, put him down
with her merry slapping repartee and sly rapier
thrusts, which somehow made their victims instantly
ridiculous without ever exciting anger, for they usually
J
oined in the laugh.
w
New York
XXII
97
Mrs. Bigelovv. — No one who ever met Mrs. John
Bigelovv is likely to forget her. She retained the marks
of that brilliant beauty which dazzled the court circles
at Paris and Berlin more than thirty-five years ago,
where her unconventional sincerities alternately
alarmed and amused the old-world aristocracies, her
wit and her personal fascination always saving her .so
as by fire, though it is said the Emperor never forgave
her for sending her servants to the Imperial box at the
opera, which he had placed at her disposal. Still, no
one in any quarter of the globe ever got the better
of Mns. John Bigelow ; she remained to the day of her
death a sort of social enigma and wonder.
She delighted in extricating herself from almost
impossible situations ; and often when she had di*; cd
everyone into supposing her to be a ncglectible
quantity, she would suddenly turn the tables on the
company, and then laugh in the most genial and for-
giving manner at their discomfiture.
I am bound to say that her habits were extraor-
dinary. She came over to England on board the Duke
of Sutherland's yacht. She went to court, and nearly
slapped the Prince of Wales on the back. She
chaffed the German Prince Imperial, afterwards the
Emperor Frederick, and rallied him on the old Berlin
days when her beauty and singular bonhoiiiie and un-
conventionality had made the solemn Germans sit up
and stare with bewildered amusement at her ways and
her wit. * The Americans, my dear ! ' she used to
say plaintively with an odd little twinkle, 'horrid
VOL. I H
X
IV
\
-» »
f • ■
i
'4 I, i*
U
n
I
'l
(
98
Travel and Talk
Americans — so vulgar! Now, I like the English,
they're so nice — nice dear girls ; and the men, all so
kind too. Oh, you know I'm partly English ; I'm
a Poultney, Poultney of Bath, you know, and my
son is Poultney Bigelow, great friend of the Prince
Imperial [now Emperor, which was quite true].
* Now, my dear, what a lovely hat ! No, I never,
never saw such a feather. Oh ! and it suits you — you
look quite lovely. Do you know that sweet little poem ?
You remind me of it. It was written by — I don't
know, I can't recollect their names, so many poets
now.
' Now come and take a little walk ; I want to tell
you, oh ! such a story, a whole history ! — Who's that
man — spiteful-looking man, isn't he? But of course
you know I take such fancies. I dare say he's verj/
nice, quite nice. Now he's coming along ; now you
must introduce me ; ' and presently you would see
her absolutely absorbed in some total stranger, who
would listen quite bewildered to her rattling, brilliant
talk, but also quite fascinated.
One day she would dress quite shabbily, the
next in heavy velvet or satin. * I'm going to Syden-
ham, and I'm going third. I love the third class,
you see so much life. I like seeing and talking to
the people, they're so amusing, quite charming *«
England. The dear people ! I quite love them. I
can't bear to go back to New York. I'll come and
stay with you just for a day or two, or a week, I
don't mind ; not if it's inconvenient, of course. Oh,
you can turn me out if I'm in the way. I've got
such lots of friends ; everyone is so kind and obliging.
Now, dear Dr. Haweis, you'll take me to the sta-
New York
90
tion ; there's your carriage at the door ; it won't be five
minutes out of your way ; not if it's inconvenient, of
course — there, now, I'm such a nuisance ! — I wouldn't
for the world — you kind man ! thai.k you ! I must have
my bag.' (No, I shall not forget that bag, a regular
carpet bag. She opened it everywhere ; string, poma-
tum, slippers, curios, handkerchiefs, I know not what
besides, fell out and were bundled in again.) So at last
she was off to the underground station in her shabby
gown, carpet bag and all. Of course we are late.
Mrs. Bigelow was always late ; she had no sense of
time, and forgot half her engagements, or pretended
to. The train was just starting. She clutches hold
of a porter — he shakes her off; then she seizes the
guard, who is just about to whistle.
* I must get in ! I must get in ! '
* Too late. Get away from the door ! Can't you
hear ? ' The guard looked round sharp and angrily
at this shabby third-class panting female, but some-
thing in her eye fixed him. She is quite unflurried
now, and suddenly has the air of a duchess, a duchess
born in the purple, but casually in distress. In the
middle of the scrimmage she looks the guard — the
whistle at his mouth — from head to foot. Really she
is quite royal now. ' Well,' she says, * you arc an
unkind man ! ' I never saw anyone so knocked over.
I have had some experience of railway guards, but I
never saw a guard so struck all of a heap. The
whistle dropped from his lips and hung by a string ;
the man looked back at this royalty in disguise, and
looked again, as if he couldn't take his eyes off her.
She had a little offended pout on now like a belle out
of humour (she must have been near sixty), but she
said not another word, she had said enough. * I — I
H 2
! k 1
i
\
\\ '
ix-'
it
n
.'J
i:
U '*:
•■'I
V
lOO
Travel and Talk
beg your pardon, mum— my lady ; ' and he lifted his
hand, delayed the trr.in, opened a third-class door.
Mrs. Bigelow stept in like a tragedy queen, gave him
a faint appreciative smile, I handed in her bag, and
the train started.
Whether she hypnotised people or arrested them
by her pure eccentricity, and then fascinated them
by an indescribable mixture of sympathy, many-sided
experience, knowledge of the world, artistic percep-
tion, and quick-wittedness, I could never make out.
\\
Mrs. Bigelow was a person not to be analysed.
She got the entree wherever she meant to, from the
court to the kitchen, and was quite as much at home
with a queen as with a cook. There was no one to
whom she could not tell something about their own
business which they did not know before, no one whom
she could not advise pithily and often wisely. She
read off people, took their measure, and giggled or
cried with them. A mixed, stilted, prejudiced company
were like a pack of children in her hands in a quarter
of an hour.
* ii'
N- i
I remember her at a large luncheon party at
my house. She began by making herself almost
impossible. She spoke, or rather shouted, across the
table — attacking sometimes me, sometimes my wife.
Gradually conversation flagged — everyone was getting
wretched — she was so loud, sudden, irrelevant, v/hen
all at once she jerked out, with quite a wounded ex-
pression (dramatically irresistible) : * I dare say you
think me very odd ' (then pensively, almost to herself) :
" one of those horrid, vulgar Americans," you say to
yourself So they are ! ' But in another moment the
New York
lOI
whole table was listening to an exquisitely funny
story of a vulgar Englishman who was mistaken for
an American, and had been lately making a fool of
himself in Paris. We were all convulsed, her mimicry
was so good. She had won. She had got the com-
pany at last at that particular angle where her incom-
parable gift as a graceful and witty raconteuse could
come into full play ; and from that moment everyone
seemed to unbend.
When we got into the garden after lunch, she
was already (this more than middle-aged woman
with only the traces of her dazzling complexion
and finely chiselled features left) the heroine of
the afternoon, and she did not wait to be chosen
— she just chose which of the company she liked
to talk to, and walked up and down the gravel
path, and it seemed at last as if everyone was just
waiting for his or her turn to walk and talk with
Mrs. John Bigelow.
S fc
:y at
most
ss the
wife.
tting
v/hen
d ex-
you
rselO :
ay to
lit the
She did one more daring thing that afternoon
— she planted herself after tea on the lawn in the
moFt comfortable chair. A few people were sitting
about. Suddenly she exclaimed, 'Come closer' — she
ordered them all about, and they obeyed like lambs.
Then she made me get some more chairs and collect
some more people; then in aloud voice, 'Now I'm
going to repeat a little poem — a quite beautiful poem.
I'm sure you will like it ; ' and almost before we had
grasped the situation, or even sat down, she was into
the middle of the first stanza. I can't recollect what
it was all about — I had never heard it before — but
soon everybody was listening, absorbed and delighted.
She was certainly an accomplished reciter, with the
*» 1
^ I
4 1
102
Travel and Talk
i[
'K
II
t \,
I I
ll
1
pi
i - I i
ars celare artem, and above all the 'one touch of
nature which makes the whole world kin.' When
she had done, there was just a little dimness in many-
eyes. She jumped up suddenly, like one half scared,
looked at her watch, said she had missed two appoint-
ments, begged me out loud to give her everyone's
name and address, declared she had had such * a lovely
time ' — never met such lovely people, such dear kind
lovely people, and so nice of everyone to receive
her so kindly, and she only an American, a vulgar
American ; and would I have a hansom called — and
her bag, yes — ' thanks ! good-bye ! au revoir ! ' — and
she was gone like a flash.
When she was at Florence, I am told that she was
bent upon seeing * Ouida,' but that lady is averse to
being pestered with visitors. However, Mrs. Bigelow
of course got in — and sat down. Ouida — so runs
the tale — at last put in an appearance, and intimated
somewhat candidly that of all people who bored her,
Americans were the worst. * Well,' says Mrs. Bigelow,
* that I call downright mean and ungrateful of you,
when the Americans are about the only people who
buy your disagreeable, immoral books.'
Ouida seems to have been knocked over as com-
pletely as the railway guard. Mrs. Bigelow's faculty
of putting anyone in the wrong box when it suited
her was certainly phenomenal.
Genius, of course, is interesting, but it is (diplo-
matically) embarrassing ; and it has been rumoured
that the American Embassy in London would have
been open to John Bigelow had it not been for the
eccentricities of this most fascinating but somewhat
embarrassing lady.
New York 103
XXIII
Mrs. • Columbia.'— It was sad to find how many
dear friends, alive in 1885, had passed away, when I
visited the States for a second time in 1893 and
again in 1895. Dean Gray, Asa Gray, Courtlandt
Palmer, Henry Ward Beecher, Walt Whitman,
Mrs. John Bigelow, Conkling, and soon afterwards
Phillips Brooks and Oliver Wendell Holmes, Principal
and Mrs. Barnard, Miss Wolff — all gone.
In the following letter from the Hon. John Bigelow
this rather extraordinary mortality is alluded to :
' " The Squirrels," Highland Falls, N.Y. :
' July 8, 1893.
' Rev. and dear Sir, — I was pleased to learn
by your favour of — without date — which reached me
a few days ago, that you and Madam Haweis medi-
tated another visit to the " States." Though you will
miss some, you will find many here ready to welcome
you. I hope you will advise us of your return to New
York after your visit to Chicago, where I possibly
may meet you early in October.
* We are proposing to spend August and September
at St. Andrews in New Brunswick, and under the pro-
tection of her Imperial Majesty your Queen.
' Yours very truly,
'John Bigelow.'
Among the numerous kind attentions I was
favoured with and somewhat embarrassed by was the
assiduous hospitality of another singular lady, also
since dead. I allude to Mrs. Barnard, the wife of
the venerable Principal of Columbia College, a well-
\\
t^.
I >\
1,
1)1
\ '\ '
1 J
U: ^
<' -^
\<\.
104
Travel and Talk
known and admirably appointed educational institu-
tion in New York.
This good lady was bent upon our staying at
the college, and hunted us from house to house
until we took up our abode with her ; and I confess
that I found her rather amusing at first, and I am sure
she meant most kindly. She was a great talker, and
when she got on the war between North and South,
she being at the time down South, her stories were
very stirring and graphic. But there was an incon-
ceivable fidgetiness about her, and an incapacity to
let people alone, or even listen to anything they
said in answer to her questions, which poured out as
from a quick-firing gun, that became at last intoler-
able — she got on our nerves. Then her arrange-
ments were of such a complicated and at the same
time urgent nature that no one in the house knew
from moment to moment what they might or might
not be expected to do. You had to be down to break-
fast to the minutCj or a message came up that you
were not to hurry — only everyone was waiting. If you
took tea, why did not you take coffee — did you not like
coffee ? or vice versa. You must take certain things
in the right order, or you must not take something
without taking it before or after taking something
else. Then after breakfast at ten o'clock you must be
ready to go out, to inspect this, that, or the other. The
Principal wanted you to go over the college. Non-
sense ! the Principal always wanted people to go over
the college, there was nothing to see, you could do it
any time ; besides, you had to go with her at once some-
where else. But you had an engagement at twelve.
What was the use of that when you had to be some-
where else ? You could not be everywhere. She was
Nkw York
105
going to introduce you to some friends of hers ; and
then you had to be back to lunch at a quarter past
one, because at half-past two you were due, &c. &c.
Worn out in the middle of the day, my wife had
retired for a little rest, but a sharp knock at the door
roused her. She must get up at once ; some one down
stairs who had read 'Chaucer for Children' and 'The
Art of Beauty' had called to see her. Then, at
half-past three, mind, there was a reception — a large
reception — all the clever people in New York were
coming. Professor this, and Dr. that, and Madame
some one else, and Conkling, and Mrs. — — , the
authoress, you know ; and at last came dinner, usually
tete-a-tete with Mrs. and Dr. Barnard, who was a very
agreeable and scholarly man of cultivated tastes
and habits, but who being very deaf could only com-
municate through a trumpet attached to a hearing tube,
which reached a good way and could be taken up by
anyone who wished to speak to him. We conversed
in this way without difficulty, but seldom got far
before Mrs. Barnard, impatient at the exclusion, seized
the tube through which her husband was listening or
speaking, and laying it down on the table, broke
up the conversation.
One day — the second or third, I think — my wife
confided to me that she could bear it no longer.
It was seven o'clock in the morning. I descended
stealthily before the breakfast hour, and went out and
made my way down the street to my good friend Dr.
Guilbert and his amiable stepdaughters, the Misses
Storm. They seemed to understand the situation ;
it was a case of being saved from one's friends. After
I
m
J
io6
Travel and Talk
breakfast I intimated that our engagements compelled
us to take up our abode elsewhere, and with profuse
thanks on our side, and reproaches and even threats
on the side of our warmhearted hostess, we left
the too oppressively hospitable precincts of Columbia
College with a hearty hand-shake from the dear old
Principal, and embraces — positively embraces — from
the excellent Mrs. Columbia as we always afterwards
called her — never, never to return !
Kindly souls ! — both are in their graves — and they
meant to do us honour — only our nerves were weak !
P
No 1 I cannot leave out my first experiences — since
renewed happily in 1893 — of the American schoolgirl
and girl graduate of ' sweet seventeen.'
ha
XXIV
* Ogontz ' is the name of a palatial establish-
ment, situated in a manorial-like park, not far from
Philadelphia.
It is an establishment for young ladies, very select
young ladies, who can afford to pay two or three
hundred a year in exchange for the benefits of such a
cultured course of refined teaching as the genius of
the lady principal, Miss Bennett, has devised for the
future mothers of the great American people.
Miss Bennett herself is a stately but withal most
genial and handsome person, * about the same age as
other people,' as the lady said who was asked her
age by the Government officer for the census.
She has travelled, read, thought, and, above all,
observed. She is eloquent in class, affable at table,
delightful as hostess, and she governs, like all real
New York
107
governors, more by silent influence than by words or
rules. All the girls, from the youngest, aged about
twelve, to the eldest, just passing out of her 'teens,'
know exactly what she wants and what she means.
They know they must not be late, nor slovenly, nor
inattentive, nor boisterous, though a merrier and
less constrained set of young ladies I never encoun-
tered : laughter is not checked, a run is not reproved,
even out of the gymnasium. They lived, I thought,
almost needlessly surrounded by home luxuries ; some
even had their carriages and horses, and generally any-
thing they could afford. As in most American esta-
blishments, the girls are largely self-governing. The
upper class provides the standard for demeanour, st}'le
and tone. The monitors and blue-ribbon girls virtually
govern. The ' Blue-ribbonites ' can do practically what
they please, and have even a sort of discretion with
regard to personal liberty about attending classes and
taking outdoor exercise alone ; but the lovely park,
formerly the property of a rich merchant, who named
it ' Ogontz ' after a great Indian chief friendly to him,
is amply sufficient for all such purposes, and I did
not gather that the girls ever cared much to stray
beyond its happy precincts.
Into this terrestrial paradise I entered for about a
week. I was invited by Miss Bennett, who had fre-
quently attended my church in her summer trips
to England, to give three evening lectures in the
school theatre to her young ladies. Several out-
siders, professors, clergy, and others from Phila-
delphia, were also invited.
Handsome guest rooms were placed at the disposal
of myself and my wife, whose book * Chaucer for
I ■■■
( I: \
m ,i
!• I
C
^.
■fit
1 08
Travel and Talk
Children ' was much used at Ogontz and other
American colleges.
Whether or not there were extra half holidays
during my stay at Ogontz, I cannot tell ; but I never
descended into the reception rooms or passages without
finding young ladies at leisure to do the honours, and
make time pass quickly. I was much struck with the
absolute difference between the American and the
English girl's view of the to Trpsirov, or the fitting
and the unfit. The Ogontz girls invited me into
their class rooms, practising rooms, and even their
dormitories — prettily fitted up, and used for sitting
rooms during the day.
Here you saw the individual taste and feeling of
the young ladies. Some had a piano, some a banjo, a
guitar, a violin. Pretty Japanese screens hid the bed,
and decorative devices the wash-hand stand ; the toilet
tables had just as much on them as was required to
look neat and artistic by day ; the fireplace was
decked with flowers or forest leaves ; the mantelpiece
would contain those china or silver baubles, old
Christmas cards, relics with ribbons, Dresden poodles,
gold figured Munich glass, even a stray doll or wax
Cupid, and such-like Christmas-tree survivals of the
nursery, still dear to the heart of budding womanhood.
Above were photographs — seldom a man's unless
brother or father, but hosts of girls, mothers, sisters,
aunts, and a few of those special friends whose
' eternal friendships ' are apt at a certain age to be
exchanged for similar ones equally passionate while
they last, and equally ephemeral 1
Ah ! what havoc will marriage and the ' Vandal
years' between sixteen and twenty-five make in a
sirl's female attachments I
Nkw York
109
The dormitories occupied a long wing of the
great house, and opened one out of the other, each
room being owned by two — seldom, I think, more-
girls.
Still some of the rooms were more spacious than
others, and here several girls would congregate, and
I would read and talk to them. But I was put on
my mettle, for they knew too much. I had my
dates corrected and my geography set to rights ; and
in chemistry I confess they were far ahead of mc,
though in range of literature I scored a few points,
and I was a little surprised at their small acquaintance
with leading American authors like Emerson, Oliver
Wendell Holmes, and even Howells. They knew more
of George Eliot and Thackeray, and less of Tennyson,
than I should have expected. The American girl does
not read much poetry, and not half as much theology
and goody-goody books as our English girls ; but
then she is very wide awake about Rome, Florence,
and globe-trotting generally, and eager to know
about everything outside her own country, especially
all English manners and customs, and all about the
Royal Family.
Dear me ! and in such a republican country to
find them all so anxious to know what our beloved
Queen does, and so excited to learn that she drives
about in a Bath chair drawn by a donkey, and
reads Marie Corelli. The girls had quite a Marie
Corelli fit after that. And then the Princess of
Wales ! — how the royal girls at Sandringham were
brought up, and why they dressed so plainly, and
whether they played lawn tennis and could skate.
Ah ! what a poor companion I was for these quick
mercurial American maidens, such an odd mixture of
ill
I
fl
: I
no
Travel and Talk
||!'
k
simplicity and advanced experience ; for American
girls know most things, • you bet ! ' and half of them
only just out of the nursery, in some ways so far down
the valley of life, in others so fresh and ingenuous.
Well, we walked about the park in little groups
of threes and fours underneath the yellowing trees
and beside the autumnal hoar frost on the brown
ferns ; and when I had cudgelled my brains about the
Queen, told them how she looked when I kissed her
hand ; and the Duke of Edinburgh, and what he said
at Marlborough House when he lent me his fiddles for
my Royal Institution lecture ; and the Princess Louise,
Marchioness of Lome, and what she said and how she
received me when I had failed to bring Wagner to
Lord Houghton's one night, &c. &c. Of course I did
my best to do this sort of * Court Circular ' chat, which
is not quite in my line. Had I been Mark Twain or
Artemus Ward, I should have had no difficulty in
inventing long conversations between myself and the
Prince of Wales, anecdotes of my singular influence
with her Majesty, of the Prime Minister's devotion
to me, and my confidential relations with the Lord
Mayor ; but although I sorely wished to please my
eager listeners, the longer I went on, the thinner grew
the narrative ; in good sooth 'twas very poor gossip,
and it too soon became painfully apparent that I knew
very little personally of the Royal Family, and had
had next to nothing to do with any of them. At
which point I artfully turned the conversation upon
Rome. I fancied I knew something about Rome. I
had been there many times. I had lectured there
twice on Garibaldi and Mazzini (worse luck ! they
cared not a jot for Garibaldi or Mazzini), I had worked
up the catacombs, the galleries, the churches, the — no
i.'i'
■.»|;i
Nkw Yokk
1 1 1
matter what. Will it be believed that I had not gone
far before I made a slip about a Bronzino which I said
was in the Corsini when it happened to be in the
Borghese, or vice versa ? I was caught out instantly.
The girls had been to Rome and got up the
galleries with Murray. My coup dc grdce came
when one of them inquired whether I had seen the
Roman bath in the Strand. It was an awful temi)tation,
but I felt I could not lie, and after a brief but, I am
glad to say, a decisive struggle, I frankly admitted
that I had not so much as heard that there was a
Roman bath in the Strand ! On re-entering, a guide
book was, of course, produced, and a description of the
fine specimen of Ncronian brickwork still to be seen
in the Strand, on what was formerly a portion of the
Earl of Essex's house, was read out for my instruc-
tion. I was by this time quite chapfallen, and I think
we conversed no more that day, as writes Abclard or
Heloise or some such pathetic personage.
1 !
I believe these kind girls, who seemed to entertain
an opinion of me far above my deserts, thought I
was shamming to please them and draw them out,
and that I only pretended not to know this or that,
but really knew all about it ; but, alas ! I didn't.
I have often noticed in this world that if you get
any sort of reputation in one line, people are apt
to give you credit for it in some other. When I
was a young curate in Bethnal Green, I was supposed
to direct a penny bank, and on certain nights, with
the assistance of two friendly coadjutors, the green-
grocer and the tax collector, both my devoted parish-
ioners, I appeared to be casting up the accounts. My
results were so frequently at variance with the others,
I
i i,
i i,
112
Travel and Talk
^
If
,i ,
which usually tallied, that at last I admitted, what is
perfectly true, that I was a very poor accountant ; but
nothing could persuade these dear people that this
was the simple truth — why ! had I not drawn the
church full ? My additions seemed wrong, no doubt,
but they merely thought this serving of tables was too
far beneath my attention, and that I would not take
sufficient trouble, and at last they always did it for
me, accepting my earnest assurances that I could not
possibly do it up correctly in the time with a respectful
but incredulous smile.
XXV
In the School Theatre.— A truce to digres-
sion. Ogontz is lighted up ; the girls are coming out
into the passages in their white muslins and pretty
ribbons and flowers — 'tis half-past-six — they are com-
ing into the dining saloon. I shall not be there. I
shall be upstairs in my cosily furni.^hcd sitting-room
meditating, over a cup of tea and a poached egg, my
lecture on the * Rationale of Music,' which I am to
deliver in the theatre at eight o'clock.
The hour strikes. I enter from behind some
ornamental canvas trees on one side, and a conven-
tional cottage facade with an open flap window.
(For stage elopements ? — impossible ! 'Tis a well-
regulated seminary — and then we are told that
American girls are not romantic !)
I am saluted with well-bred applause. The foot-
lights leap up full. I advance and survey my flower
garden of young, fresh, eager listeners, who settle
themselves smiling with expectancy, with a touch
of critical discernment about it such as becomes an
New York
"3
advanced and fastidious assembly, accustomed to
nothing but the best.
Never did I have a more genial and appreciative
audience, and I am bound to say the applause was
unstinted, and at the close as unrestrained and tumul-
tuous as was consistent with the elegant discipline of
'Ogontz' — a name which to all Philadelphian initiates
suggests the quintessence of character and culture.
The school kept early hours, and even the subse-
quent dissipation in honour of the visitors, consisting
of tea and light refreshments, was not prolonged past
eleven.
XXVI
Farewell, Ogontz. — On my last evening my
nerves were rudely tried. It was on this wise.
At the close of my lecture, amidst a very flattering
display of enthusiasm (for I was now thoroughly at
home with my audience and had the egotistical satis-
faction of feeling that, although unacquainted with
the Roman bath in the Strand, I was considered
an authority on Richard Wagner), just as I was about
to retire from the stage, amidst the 'applaudissements
frenetiques,' I remarked an unwonted stir — the whole
room seemed about to rise, whilst two of the tallest
and strongest girls advanced in front of the stage,
bearing a huge basket of towering flowers, orchids and
roses and lilies, and ferns and dazzling autumnal
foliage. This expensive but perishable trophy was
with some difficulty heaved up to me over the foot-
lights, and, feeling rather like an inexperienced porter
at a railway station, I wrestled with it for an anxious
moment, and finally landed it with a stagger on the
stage. The ladies had already retired, blushing. I
\'0L. I I
I
I "
I
/ I
A
114
Travel and Talk
1 ■
< .
stood looking I dare say very pleased and foolish by
the side of my embarrassing and pyramidal green-
house assortment. In a voice * hoarse with emotion ' I
believe I faltered out something about the * most
affecting moment in my life/ and I then gave the
audience to understand that I intended firmly but
hastily to retire before my feelings completely over-
came me.
Next morn, in the grey dawn, a few girls only
like belated angels hovering dimly about the passages,
I left * Ogontz.' 'Twas better so. I am told that
tears were shed ; my own thoughts, like those of the
man when he looked on * the meanest flower that
blows,' were * too deep for tears ; ' naturally, as all the
flowers in my basket were anything but mean^ and
really as expensive as money could buy. What was
I to do with them .'* I could not take them with me —
I was going straight to New York. I unwound the
soft moss-green ribbon that was wrapt round their
stems. I have it now. On my way out I cast a farewell
glance at the trophy, deposited on the entrance hall
table, and thereby hangs a talc.
Several weeks after leaving Philadelphia, I had a
letter from Miss Bennett, the charming lady principal.
She said ' I was ' — well, no matter — ' that the girls '
—pshaiv ! Anyhow it amounted to this — that the
flowers had been on the hall table ever since, that
they were naturally withered and smelt abominably,
but that every time she had proposed to remove them
there had been such an outcry in the school that she
allowed them to remain. Ye stars and stripes ! And
then they say that American girls have no sentiment !
A year afterwards a detachment of Ogontz girls
New York
"5
came over to England, as they arc often wont to do,
with a travelling governess. They came and took
afternoon tea with us at Queen's House, Chelsea. I
showed them the moss-green ribbon. They smiled —
I sighed — and we parted !
But again I must protest that this is not an auto-
biography, merely holiday * talk.' I pass on.
XXVII
Cornell. — Yes! I arrive at Cornell. I have
been appointed select University preacher there.
Cornell University is exquisitely situated on high
land overlooking the lovely lake of Cayuga. It
boasts of Professor Corson, a great friend of Miss
Bennett, and a great favourite at Ogontz (where he
has delivered several professorial lectures on English
literature). Young men and girls are received at Cornell
to a joint education. They have class rooms, sitting
rooms, and a dining room in common. There are no
restrictions on their terms of association ; they can
walk and talk and sing together, and sit where they
like in hall or class ; only — only the sword of Damocles
is over them all, and they know it : a breath of
suspicion, a sign of real irregularity, and off they are
packed without explanation, and without delay, and
there is no appeal. This seems quite a sufficient
check, and within rather wide bounds there is extra-
ordinary liberty, which is hardly ever abused — the
students have been known to offer flowers and even
organise a serenade to their favourites with impunity.
In fact the boys and girls, ranging from sixteen to
twenty-four, are all treated like grown and responsible
I 2
n6
Travel and Talk
sv i- it!
men and women, and they are expected from the first
to act up to this sober and discreet estimate.
Cornell University, like Stanford and Leland in
California, and Vassar College, Poughkeepsie, is one of
those splendid private benefactions to the nation for
which America has become famous. The endowment
is so large that the heads are independent of the
college fees, and can afford to treat quite independently
with the students. At Cornell and Vassar (unlike
Ogontz) the Cornell students are not generally rich ;
they have come for serious study to fit themselves
for an educational or professional life ; but to this
there are, of course, many exceptions.
At Cornell University there is perfect freedom of
thought. There are no religious tests. No one need
believe anything ; no one need go to church. Indi-
viduals may be at war with current religion in its
many forms ; but as all forms are tolerated, it would be
rather difficult for any one member to be in active
opposition to all, nor would it much matter if he were
— except to himself The effect of this laxity and
apparent official indifference to orthodoxy is just the
reverse of what might naturally have been anticipated.
There is a certain amount of religious indifference,
no doubt — there is that everywhere — but there is little
religious bitterness, for as every sect has its turn in the
University pulpit, no one has a right to complain.
The Episcopal Church is generally the most fashion-
able in the towns, and stands highest socially ; but there
is real religious equality, and as the Episcopal Church
is not allowed to domineer in the name of the State or
an assumed orthodoxy, there is far more real fraternity
if not much more co-operation amongst the various
Ii I
New York
117
ministers in America than there ever can be in England
until the Church is disestablished, the good and evil
of which this is not the place to discuss. My own
personal feeling in the matter I have more often ex-
pressed than defended, and it is this : that could the
Episcopal Church in England become national in fact
as it is in name, could it really represent by its power
of restatement, as well as by its breadth, the complex
religious beliefs, religious aspirations, and progressive
thought of the age ; then the occupation of Dissent
would be gone, since every form of dissent is merely
a witness to some truth neglected or forgotten by the
National Church, or the breaking forth of spontaneous
piety which finds no established or recognised channel
in which to flow.
The Cornell pulpit is prepared to witness to every
kind of truth which by any stretch of liberality can be
associated with Christianity, and it is doubtful whether
any of the doctrinal cults of the day, including Posi-
tivism, Theosophy, Spiritualism, Christian Science, not
to speak of Unitarianism and Roman Catholicism,
would be excluded from the Cornell pulpit, providing
the * ism ' could be hitched on to some text and uttered
by some one in the habit of writing ' Rev. ' before his
name ; even as to * Rev.,' many sects have dropped
the title, and Henry Ward Bcecher openly repu-
diated it.
Amongst its preachers, the Cornell University has
included Lyman Abbott, Heber Newton, Phillips
Brooks, Dr. Huntington, Bishop Potter, Dr. Momerie,
and myself. Cornell did not even draw the line at the
Roman Catholic bishop, but the bishop drew the line
at Cornell.
Under all these circumstances I considered that
•,(•
.1
3
Ii8
Travel and Talk
a cosmopolitan sermon in the morning, in which I
would cause a panorama of the world's religions to
pass before the congregation, taking good care to
emphasise the unities underlying them all and
minimise the differences, might be a profitable sub-
ject of meditation ; and in the afternoon I selected
the * Rationale of Prayer,' a sermon which I have
found to be generally helpful, and which has been
amply reported and circulated throughout America
East and West as well as all over the Australasian
colonies.
XXVIII
Cornell Chapel. — On one Sunday late in
November 1885, I looked out of my University
rooms towards the little chapel, far too small for the
congregations that day.
The town lay far below and was reached by
trams and carriages uphill, for the noble pile of widely
disposed buildings, interspersed with lawns and here
and there embowered in foliage, overlooks from a
height the clear waters of the beautiful Cayuga lake.
A winding procession of pedestrians came up the
hill, and the students had already turned out and
taken possession of their seats long before the service
began.
When I arrived there was not standing room any-
where, and I was with difficulty got into a dark sort
of cupboard, where I had to robe ; for although told I
might officiate in my frock coat if I pleased, my pro-
fessional instincts were in favour of at least wearing
my M.A. gown and my Cambridge M.A. hood. I stood
New York
119
at a sort of raised reading desk, and after giving out a
hymn I recited a collect or two, then another hymn,
and then the sermon.
At three o'clock I preached again, but this time
vehicles of all sorts made their way up from the town,
and swarms of pedestrians arrived long before service,
only to find the chapel (which I suppose did not
hold more than 400) already crowded. The morning
sermon was well reported ; and to show the smartness
of the American operations the MS. from shorthand
notes was handed to me in the afternoon, and a
version wired all over America, so that in Boston,
New York, Chicago and Philadelphia, reports of it
appeared in the Monday morning papers.
6!
I was much amused to receive in the evening a
visit from a professor of elocution, who asked me to
favour him with the name and address of the gentle-
man who taught mc elocution. I assured him that I
had never received a lesson in elocution in my life,
that I knew nothing about the art, and that I had
often been told that my own method of speaking,
whatever it is, was most imperfect.
The Professor shook his head incredulously, and
put up his note book sadly ; he came evidently
hoping to detect the secret of drawing large con-
gregations ; whatever it was, it could doubtless be
imparted, and would be useful to his pupils, and
probably turned on some trick of voice production
or oratorical device which could be learned. I assured
him I was innocent of all such arts, that I was
incapable of committing much to memory, that I
prepared my thoughts as carefully as I could, but
seldom any set phrases. * Take care of the thoughts,
I
^/,
120
Travel and Talk
If
1*1
1:
and the words will take care of themselves,' was my
motto ; and as to poses or dramatic action, I left all
that to take care of itself, and never thought twice
about it — certainly not when preaching.
The Professor seemed much disappointed.
* Couldn't I give any hints ? ' I did try, but I was so
poor an analyst of my own methods that he soon rose
and took his departure, thinkifJg me a wily and deep
person, who would not be drawn. The rooted belief
that every success is due to some trick or system that
can be taught is as pathetic and quite as common as
the gambler's notion that there is a fixed and certain
way to win at games of chance, or a royal road to
fortune. Success has its laws, no doubt, and there is
very little chance about it — work, capacity, oppor-
tunity, arc all ingrcdiciiLs ; but there is ever some-
thing like the pinch of metal that the cunning bell-
founder throws into his cauldron, just at the last — he
hardly knows why — something which cannot be
analysed, and upon that something turns the whole
difference between success and failure.
I remember a good clergyman, one of those
excellent conscientious plodders whom Phillips Brooks
called 'moth-eaten old angels,' wrote to me — under-
standing my Sunday collections were large — and
begged to know the exact form of words I used every
Sunday to extract these sums. His disappointment
was great on receiving the exact formula, from which
I never deviate : T/ie usual collection at the close of the
service.
But as this is not a general clerical autobiography,
I will here insert my Cornell University sermon ' On
the Religious Consciousness' (1885), to serve as a
sort of pendant to my Chicago speech * On the
New York
121
Influences of Music ' at the Parliament of Religions
(1893), both of which the reader may skip if he
pleases, and pass on.
XXIX
Religious Consciousness. A Sermon preached nv
THE Rev. H. R. Haweis, M.A., before the Cor-
nell University [on the Dean Sage Foundation].
When I was invited by your late excellent President,
Dr. White, to address you, some months ago, I said
I would speak to you upon the unity and solidarity
of the religious consciousness in man.
Need I take a text ? Well, a text won't make a
sermon without the spirit of the Bible, and if you
have that you can get on without chapter and verse.
The religious consciousness breathes with the Bible
spirit. The soul's life permeates the Bible from be-
ginning to end. Religion saturates human history
because it is involved in the constitution of human
nature. This is to me the most restful and faith-
compelling of all thoughts. I look for rest in my
religion. Some of us make our religion a mere battle-
field ; opposing sects bite and devour one another. But
I hear the voice of Jesus across the ages : He says,
'Come unto Me, and I will give you rest' I fall back
again and again upon the spiritual elements which
do not change : God, the inevitable recurrency, com-
munion with Him, the Divine soul-hunger. Here I
find a unity and solidarity of religious consciousness.
l/mij/ implies a similarity of ideas. For instance,
you find among savage tribes in remote ages the
custom of appointing delegates or representatives.
t
^/
" I,
■i<"'».
122
Travel and Talk
'■'tV I
W
i '»i
and you find in Washington or at London of to-
day M.C.'s or M.P.'s sitting as representatives of the
people. There is the unity of representative govern-
ment.
So/i'ifan'/jn.mpMes a certain continuity and identity
of purpose and effect. So when I dig up in England
a coin of Edward III., who reigned 500 years ago,
and the coin has the king's head on it, and I find
that it is still legal tender, or can be exchanged for
legal tender, in Victoria's reign, I say there is the
solidarity of the currency. So throughout the religions
of the world I find similarity of ideas, identity of
purpose, unity and solidarity of the religious conscious-
ness. God has never left Himself without a witness.
Religion did not begin 1,900 years ago. It has always
been. God, the Oversoul, is superincumbent upon
man's soul, as the atmosphere presses at all points
upon the surface of the earth. The Divine fact and
the human response, these two twin stars, ever revolve
round each other ; they constitute the unity and
solidarity of the religious consciousness. You may
comedown anywhere within 5,000 years in the history
of man, and you will find those ideas cropping up.
You may go to India, Egypt, or China, or Greece, or
Rome, and you will find them ; ay, and you may
come on individuals thrown together by chance any-
where to-day, and you will strike the same funda-
mental notes, the sweetest and purest in the low,
sad music of humanity — God and our communion
with Him.
The other day a friend of mine was travelling in
the desert on his way to the Pyramids. He looked
down upon the poor Arab donkey driver beside him,
IK
Ni:w York
1^3
and the feeling came over him, 'This patient, toiling
man, a human being like myself, yet so different from
me I I feel kindly toward him, and there is something
in his face that draws me to him, something in his
lowly condition and serenity that moves me.' So my
friend touches him on the shoulder. Me could not
speak much English, and my friend did not under-
stand much Arabic, but he wanted to communicate
with him. And the heart has a language of its own,
and the lips are sometimes but stammering utterers.
As Longfellow says, there are thoughts which
' Words are powerless to express,
And leave them still unsaid, in part,
Or say them in too great excess.'
So my friend touched the Arab and said : * You be-
lieve — you believe Allah }' The man looked round,
astonished : he understood, and said, * Yes ; me be-
lieve Allah.' * y believe Allah,' said my friend. Pre-
sently he touched him again, and pointed to the clear
skies above them, and said, ' You pray Allah .'' '
The man said, nodding his head delightedly, * Yes :
pray Allah.' Said my friend, * /, too, pray to Allah.'
They could not get on very fast because they did not
understand one another's language. But he touched
him the third time on the shoulder, and said, ' You
love Allah — love Allah ? ' and the man, now with
much gesticulation, assented, * Yes, yes ! ' for he was
in sympathy with my friend, and caught his mean-
ing : ' Yes, me love Allah.' Then my friend stretched
his hand out and grasped the swarthy Arab's in
his grip, and said : 'You, I, brothers ; you, I, believe
— pray — love Allah I ' The man nodded, and his
face grew radiant, and both drove on in silence.
lb
^'.
124
Travel and Talk
Now, .it the end of that journey, that poor Arab,
without a word, took all the backsheesh money that
had been given him, and pushed it back into my
friend's hands. He would take no backsheesh from a
man who loved Allah. That is a modern illustration
of the unity and solidarity of the religious conscious-
ness. God writes His name not once on stone tables,
but in all ages and climes upon the fleshy tablets of
all human hearts.
Nor was this teaching ever more needed than at
the present day. Why ? Because modern science
has attacked the object of religious consciousness,
saying that we do not require mind governing matter,
that we can explain the phenomena of creation with-
out any appeal to the Oversoul or self-conscious,
governing Mind. That Jias been the tendency of
modern science. It is no longer quite so much its
tendency. The word agnosticism is gradually be-
coming fashionable, in lieu of the word atheis^ "a, or
negation. Science now hardly says out lou( ith
the fool, * There is no God, there is no object oi reli-
gious consciousness ; ' but science now says, ' We
don't know.' Amid the rush and splendour of new
scientific discoveries we lived about ten or fifteen
years ago in the reign of raw atheism before the flaw
in the * no God ' argument began to be seen. That
flaw was revealed to me when I heard Professor
Tyndall say that *we must fundamentally change
our conception of matter before we could get out of it
the promise and potency of all life.'
Well, if you can make up the universe without
God, do so, by all means. Let us try. Says Philo-
New York
1-5
sophcr No. I : * Give mc matter, and I will produce
the world as we know it, without God.' Says Philo-
sopher No. 2 : ' 1 don't want matter. I know of
nothing but force.' * Hut,' objects Philosopher No. 3,
* force must act on something ; it must have a nidus
— be locally lodged. I must have both matter and
force before I can begin to operate.' ' But,' remarks
Philosopher No. 4, ' I must have a particular kind of
matter, made up of atoms grouped into a peculiar
sort of molecules, one inorganic, like a steel filing, and
another organic, like a jelly speck, with the odd pro-
perty of turning itself inside out.' Well, we give him
all that. • I think I can do it now,' says he, * but —
but — I must have sixty-three different kinds of atoms
before I can get along.' * You seem to want a good
deal,' I reply. ' You have got matter and force — two
kinds of matter — made of sixty-three different sorts
of atoms, and then you say you can get on. Get on,
then.' Our philosopher pauses, and, in the words of
Mr. George Lewes, ' I believe,' he says, * I want matter
and force specially determined under peculiar and
complex relations.' I begin to lose faith in the
philosophers. I feel t'^ey are taking unfair advan-
tages. I have been standing ready to be converted ;
but now I can't help cutting in with a remonstrance :
' You vvant matter and force specially determined,
under peculiar and complex relations ; or, as Professor
Tyndall says, " You want to change fundamentally
your conceptions of matter, and then you can get the
promise and potency of all life." No doubt ; but how
do you get these specially determined, peculiar, and
complex relations ? Where does it all come from .''
What so specially determines matter and force, I
should like to know ? ' Says the philosopher, with
ii
('
126
Travel and Talk
i:. ,»
u
%
calm magniloquence, * Causality.' Of course, causality ;
but, the fact is, you have put into matter and force all
that you want to get out of it. It is the old hat
trick ; you put into the hat what you afterwards
extract. The scientific hat is called Evolution. You
have popped sixty-three times behind the curtain, and
the whole thing has been so honestly done that you
have not cared to conceal one of your peculiar and
complex moves. The process of filling the scientific
hat may be called causality, or anything else ; and
causality explains everything, no doubt. But in the
universe causality is nothing but mind immanent in
matter. The Unknowable is a bad word for God,
Force for Omnipotence, and Adaptation for Wisdom ;
and
* Behind the dim Unknown
Standeth God, within the shadow.
Keeping watch above His own.' (LoWELL.)
Science, then, cannot, after all, discredit the object
of our religious consciousness. God or mind govern-
ing matter cannot be got rid of The universe cannot
be made up without Him ; and because mind is homo-
geneous, essentially of the same kind, if there be mind
in God and mind in man, the rationality of intercourse
is evident. The witness to the reality of that inter-
course is to be found in the unity and solidarity of
the religious consciousness.
The religions of the world are much more alike
than they at first seem. Let us take a few parallelisms,
to show by one sentence after another, removed a
thousand or five hundred years from each other, how
we arrive at the same result. What do I find in India
two thousand years before Christ ? I find the devotee
on the shores of the Ganges at the rising of the sun.
New York
127
praying : ' We meditate upon Thee, the desirable
h'ght.' I read elsewhere, ' God is light, in Him is
no darkness at all.' Another ancient prayer, fifteen
hundred or more years before Christ, reads :
* Who is the God to whom we should offer sacrifices?
He who brightens the sky :
He who makes firm the earth :
He who measures the air :
He is the God to whom we shall offer sacrifice.
Who is the God to whom we should offer sacrifice ?
He who looks over the water clouds :
He who is tJie only life of the bright earth :
He who kindles the altar flame :
He is the God to whom we shall offer sacrifice.'
Hundreds of years later, listen to other seers in other
lands : ' Offer sacrifices unto the Lord your God,' and
' In the beginning God created the heavens and the
earth.'
Here is an ancient creed, one thousand years
before Christ. Kreeshna is the divine friend of man.
He is the Hindu Emmanuel. He is God with us, the
one who had an understanding of man's affairs, and
who gave him counsel, and was near him in the hour
of trouble and in the moment of death. And Kreeshna,
the divine friend, speaks : ' I am the worship, I am the
sacrifice, I am the fire, I am the victim, I am the
father and mother of the world : I am the living way,
the comforter and witness, the friend and asylum of
men.' Will you go over those sentences once more ?
I am the worship — * How amiable are Thy courts, O
Lord of Hosts ! ' I am the sacrifice — * Yea, the Lamb
slain from the foundation of the world.' I am the
fire — ' Our God is a consuming fire.' I am the victim —
* He hath made Him to be sin for us who knew no sin.'
((
a t
128
Travel and Talk
f
1 1
'is '
Do you not recognise those words ? I am the father
and mother of the world — ' Surely Thou art our Father,'
• When father and mother forsake thee, the Lord
takcth thee up.' I am the living way, the comforter ;
yea, * The way, the truth, and the life.' Do you remem-
ber who said, ' It is expedient for you that I go away
for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come
unto you ; but if I depart, I will send Him unto you,
even the Holy Ghost ' ? 'I am the friend and asylum
of men.' Is there any friend like God ? Is there any
friend to whom we can go at all times, and be so
perfectly understood ? Is He not the friend that
sticketh closer than a brother? Is He not my rest
and asylum, protector and shepherd ? * The Lord
is my shepherd : I shall not want. He maketh me
to lie down in green pastures ; He leadeth me beside
the still waters.' There is here solidarity between
Hebrew and Hindu.
Take the Egyptian religion. Then the Chinese
or Greek. Monotheism lies at the root of each. In
the Hindu the attributes of these religions are mono-
theistic. All believe in one God, There Brahma, the
one source, was symbolised by Fire God or Water
God, but Agni could not burn without Brahma, nor
Indra pour without Brahma. In Egypt the myth is
arrested halfway between the symbolism of India
and the anthropomorphism of Greece. The animal-
headed god is more than a symbol and less than a
man. If you doubt the essentially monotheistic essence
of Egyptian religion, turn to its ancient credo, thou-
sands of years before Christ : ' Hail, Thou great God,
who concedest this hour, Father of all fathers, God of
all gods, watcher traversing cternit)^ the roarino- of
New York
129
thy voice is in the clouds, Thy breath is on the
mountain tops. Heaven and earth obey Thy com-
mands. God of terrors, bringer of great joy. Thou
fillest the granaries, Thou carest for the poor ; Thou
art not graven in marble. Thou art not seen by mortal
eye — Thine abode is not known — no temple can hold
Thee ; Thy name is not spoken in heaven, vain are all
Thine images on earth. Hail to Thee, Mighty God ! '
I read elsewhere, ' The Most High dwellcth not in
temples made with hands — heaven is my throne, and
earth is my footstool — what house will ye build Me,
saith the Lord, and where is the place of my rest ? '
Passing to China, we find Shang Ti is not quite a
personal God — the Chinaman is cautious about the
invisible world. Shang Ti is a personal heaven — a
something in the unseen that has affinity with man.
He places ' the moral law in the heart of man, and,'
adds the practical philosopher, * sets a governor [the
Emperor] over him to see that he keeps it.'
Passing to Greece, polytheism there seems to reign
triumphant, but on nearer inspection it is reduced to
something like monotheistic order in Zeus, king of
the gods ; and a higher unity still is reached in Moira
(Fate) and Anangke (Necessity) to which even Zeus
must bow. Eternal, divine, irreversible law is seen to
lie at the foundation of all things, having its home, as
says the 'judicious Hooker,' in the very bosom of God
himself. Thus, in India, all is Brahma ; in Egypt all
iiows from Ra, the Sun ; in China all bows to the
Personal Heaven ; in Greece and Rome all is sub-
ordinate to Zeus or Jupiter, both summed up in the
unity of supreme law — law, Anangke, controlling mar
and bringing him into sympathy with God.
VOL. I K
r
I ;
'•. (i
130
Travel and Talk
It remains for me to say to you a word on the Bible.
The key of the Bible lies in a perception of the pro-
gressive nature of the religious consciousness. Once
grasp that position, and no so-called attacks on the
Bible will do you or it any harm. The Bible has
been wounded in the house of its friends : a kind of
verbal inspiration value claimed for it which it no-
where claims for itself. It is the history of an inspired
people rather than an inspired book. The word of
God is in the Bible, but all that is in the Bible is not
the word of God. It represents the highest levels
of religious thought reached in the different ages by
the most spiritually gifted people in the world.
But the spiritual and moral development of the
Jews was gradual, and the steps are recorded. You
can give the ridiculer of the Bible all his points and
beat him. Says he, I find poor morality in Moses,
and you say, So do I. We have got on a little since
then. * I find scientific error in Leviticus, and ques-
tionable history in Exodus.' * No doubt,' you reply,
for men spoke as they thought, and their knowledge
of history and natural law was the knowledge of their
age, not ours. Their view of the Supreme Being was
at first childish ; the prophets mended upon Moses,
and Christ superseded, or, as He says, ' fulfilled,' both.
The theological conceptions which clothed the religious
consciousness were progressive. You do not speak
of the Almighty now as He is spoken of in Genesis.
You don't suppose that He walks about in gardens in
the cool of the day as if He could not bear the heat
of the sun ; or that He comes down attracted by the
smell of roast meat, as He is said to have done when
Noah sacrificed. You do not even paint Him as
Giotto did with perfect reverence in the middle ages
i**', i
New York
131
— an old man with a long white beard, and the Son a
younger man on His right hand, with a dove flying
from beneath their feet. Each age has its symbols,
and the religious consciousness embodies itself pro-
gressively. The God of Adam and Noah is hardly
the God even of Joshua and Caleb. In David wc
have a transition God — one moment He is a mere God
of battles, an aider and abettor of pagan spite and
violence, and at another a God of mercy and loving
kindness, of purer eyes than to behold iniquity. In
Ish, He is at once sublime and tender — the High and
Holy One inhabiting eternity, and the tender Friend
and Protector of man : * In all their afflic'-ion He was
afflicted, and the angel of His presence followed them.'
But in Jesus at last, in the fullness of time, the religious
consciousness finds its perfect rest and realisation ; the
moral and spiritual, the intelligible side of God stands
at last revealed under the limitations of humanity.
All the scattered lights of the ages — Brahma, Kreeshna,
Ra, Zeus, the Personal Heaven — meet in Him who is
the Light that lighteth every man that comcth into
the world. No note of ancient religion that vibrates
still but finds an echo in the heart of Jesus — the Rc-
velator of the Father ; the Educator of the soul ; the
Saviour from sin ; the High Priest touched with the
feeling of our infirmities ; the Alan of Sorrows, ac-
quainted with grief, who knows what is in man ; and
therefore the righteous Judge of all the earth.
XXX
Vassar. — At Vassar, Poughkeepsie, where I have
twice lectured and once preached, some of the girls
K 2
i
I
T
132
Travel and Talk
.!'. '
belonged to rich faiiiilies at Chicago and even Fran-
cisco. I found at Francisco in 1895 a Vassar guild
consisting entirely of Vassar students past and present.
They gave me a reception, and I had the pleasure of
seeing in 1895 several ladies — now mothers of families
— whom I remember as young girls in 1885-93. One
young lady, a Chicago girl, quite the pearl of
Vassar both in beauty and learning, in 1893 head
of the senior class, Miss Ferry by name visited me
later in London ; she was travelling with her family
As leader of her class, she invited me and my wife
when I was at Vassar to tea in her private sitting
room. I cannot recall how many times in how many
birthday books I that night signed my name. I
preached to the girls in their large college chapel on
Sunday morning a sermon on character ; it was a
most inspiring audience, for all were, as one may say,
at the ' meeting of the ways,' all eager, receptive, and
earnest ; many took notes. A governess reported to
me a conversation she had heard between two of the
girls — one boasted :
' I have written it all down ; I don't believe I have
missed out anything. Didn't you take notes ? '
' Notes ! ' said the other girl scornfully ; ' what's the
use of my taking notes ? Haven't I got every word of
it in my heart ? '
The good lady said she told me this because she
thought it would please me. It did please me — it did
more than please me, it helped me very much. At
the request of the senior class I wrote out the heads
of the sermon for the benefit of the college.
At night I preached at Poughkeepsie, three miles
from Vassar Park and College. Numbers of the
Vassar students walked in, and there was not stand-
^r^
ing room
New York 133
in the place. The good Archdeacon
Ziegenfuss, who welcomed me, is numbered now with
those who have gone to their rest since 1893. He
pointed to a shelf in his vestry containing a complete
set of my books —alas ! mostly pirated American
editions.
It is perhaps not unnatural that I should dwell
chiefly upon my last visit to Vassar in 1 893, as it made
the deepest and most pleasurable impression upon
me ; but I shall not soon forget my first introduction
to Vassar College on account of a certain incident. I
had hurried away one afternoon from a crowded re-
ception at Columbia College, New York — jumped
into the train and run some forty miles by the side of
the Hudson River down to Poughkeepsie, an old Indian
town three miles from Vassar. A rickety vehicle
rattled me off to the College, a most imposing
brick building, reminding one of an ancient Eliza-
bethan mansion on a huge scale standing in its own
park.
It was a quarter past seven, and I had to lecture at
eight. No meal had been prepared for me — I had not
dined — I was fagged out with shaking hands all the
afternoon.
A stately matron showed me into a vast apart-
ment, containing a vast bed. I was told in awed
accents that it was the Founder's Room, used onh-
for guests of the highest distinction. I said to the
respectable matron, feeling rather low and general 1)-
out of sorts, and having to meet my audience in
about half an hour :
' Have you a glass of sherry and a biscuit ? '
* I beg pardon } ' said the matron with a scared
i: ; f'
il
y
I.
t
134
Travel and Talk
and nervous look, as if she had suddenly come face
to face with an only partially reformed drunkard.
' A glass of sherry and a biscuit,' I said in a louder
and perhaps less patient tone of voice. She positively
started, and stammered out :
' I — I'm sure I don't know — I'll — I'll inquire,'
and catching my eye, which was by this time rolling
somewhat fiercely with debility and exasperation, she
made a bolt for the door and disappeared. I saw her
no more, but in about ten minutes there was a knock.
I had thrown myself prostrate upon the enormous
bed, for just five minutes' repose before dressing.
* Come in ! ' I roared, and a spruce Irish damsel
entered bearing a tray with tea and a bit of toast.
Tea, did I say ? No, a sort of green decoction which
tasted like verdigris. Of course it was half cold. I
could hardly swallow it ; but it was all that I was
going to get. In that vast establishment, in which
there was sleeping accommodation for 300 girls and
a full staff of teachers, there did not appear to be a
glass of wine or any sort of stimulant. The sequel
surprised mc, and I make a present of it to all good
temperance and total abstinence folk.
I went down positively shaking and sick at heart
with the conviction that I was about to be a complete
failure.
The hall was crowded with hundreds of young
girls, teachers, people in from the neighbourhood and
clergy from Poughkeepsie, to hear ' the Lowell Lecturer
of the year.' The /ocum tenens Principal, a kindly
old gentleman (since superseded by the vigorous and
able Dr. Taylor), was in the chair, and introduced me
whilst I sat looking out with haggard eyes and a dropt
New York
135
jaw upon my festive crowd, my pulse beating slower
and slower. When, however, the old Principal quoted
a passage which he attributed to me out of a book I had
never written, and which he said bore my name (some
pirated American hash, I suppose), I was so tickled
that the blunder provided me with my opening
remarks, which set the people off laughing. I then
pulled myself together, and I think I was quite up to
my usual mark. Indeed, the old gentleman, who I
think had slept fairly well during the last part of my
oration, waking up to the sound of somewhat up-
roarious applause at the end, rose and said that I had
entranced everybody by my eloquence for two hours.
I was of course very glad under the circumstances
to hear it : certainly I had done very well without the
sherry, and it only proves how the nervous system is
capable of picking itself up without stimulant. * After
all,' I said to myself, ' there is nothing but Mind in
the Universe, which is just as well, as there is not
always sherry.'
As the excellent professor of music, who was very
sympathetic to me (and by no means a total abstainer),
drove me back to the station, wc discoursed of many
things, not forgetting the Spartan morals of Vassar
College. When I told him about my glass of sherry
— or I should say the absence of it — he stroked his
beard laconically and remarked, ' You take it far
more philosophically than Canon Charles Kingsley
who came to lecture here.'
• How so ? '
* Well, Kingsley did not require any stimulant
before his lecture, but he called for some hot whisky
and water afterwards. It seems that the eminent
' 1 1
136
Travel and Talk
I
I
author of "Westward Ho!" frcnerally took a night-
cap of this description (from my kno\vledg[e of
Kingslcy's practice at our Engh'sh universities, I can
confirm the truth of this), but there was no whisky nor
any other stimulant to be found on the premises.
And Kingsley was so indignant at what he considered
mean and disrespectful treatment, that he went off
in the middle of the night, carrying his own carpet
bag all the way to Poughkeepsie. He bade no one
farewell, and so he vanished.'
Let no one imagine that I was disappointed with
my reception at Vassar either in 1885 or when I
revisited it under Dr. Taylor's new regime in 1893.
It was on this latter occasion only that I preached,
and I will close the Vassar episode with the subjoined
kindly letter from Principal Taylor :
r .'
V
>i -ii
' Vassar College, Poughkeepsie, N.V. ,
* President's Office : Nov. 6, 1893.
' Mv DEAR Dr. Hawels,— Let me send you a word
of farewell, or better good-bye, which is a far better
wish, x^nd I will add, cordially, Auf Wiedersehen !
' No, my dear doctor, no courtesy led me to say
what I did. Your visit aroused a genuine interest in
truth, and your sermon especially seemed to strike
the needs of our students. I have heard of it very
frequently since.
* I need not add, after that, that we shall welcome
you to America again, and to our college.
' With every wish for a prosperous voyage and a
happy winter, and with our cordial remembrances to
your wife as well as yourself,
' I am, faithfully yours,
' J. M. Taylor.'
Nkw York
13;
XXXI
American Girls.— Whilst in the neighbourhood
of Philadelphia, I visited Ikynmavvr, another larj^e girls'
college, originally a Quaker establishment, but now
conducted on the most enlightened and liberal prin-
ciples, even theatrical entertainments on the premises
not being tabooed. I believe that Brynmawr, for a
course of settled and somewhat severe study, now bears
the palm over all establishments south of New York.
I travelled with one very charming young lady from
Chicago to San Francisco, who was being taken away
from Brynmawr by her mother for a year's rest, on
account of her having over-studied, and I can testify
to the enthusiasm and love of knowledge with which
Brynmawr inspires its students. Yet this girl was as
sweet and unaffected and gentle, and alive to all
outward interests, as anyone not a bas-blcu. \ may
here say that, during my three visits to America,
in which I have overrun the Southern and the
Northern, the Eastern, the Central and the Western
Pacific Coast States, I had singular opportunities of
observing the ways of American girls, especially school
and college girls. I have stayed for days at their esta-
blishments, notably Ogontz, Vassar, Cornell, Stanford
and Leland,and the Irving Institute, San P>ancisco. I
have .seen and addressed them in class, in chapel, in
their theatres and music rooms ; I have walked and
talked freely with all sorts and conditions of them ;
and I deliberately say that the American girl in her
teens is much more interesting, more well-informed,
and better able to take care of herself than the average
W i-
lit
I
'I
138
Travel and Talk
English girl. She is more refined and much more
highly educated, as a rule, than the man she
marries. Her superior refinement is readily acknow-
ledged, and she is a goddess in the house. This
throws some light upon the reason why Englishmen
like to marry American girls. It is not only
because they are rich — which they often are — but
because they are better informed, more amusing,
quite as affectionate, and much more conversable and
generally able than most young English girls. And
the reason why American girls like English men is
not because they have all got titles, but because our
gentlemen are, as a rule, more cultivated, better edu-
cated, and less speculative than the average New
Yorker. I neither wish to butter my countrymen
and cheapen my countrywomen, nor to flatter
American girls and disparage American men. I
speak very generally, and I qualify my statements
with the observation than whilst nothing can be more
fascinating than the perfectly well-bred and well-
educated American gentleman — he has a grace and
openness seldom found even amongst the aristocracy
here, for he is warm and they are generally cold —
on the other hand, can there be anything more ap-
palling than the loud barking and snapping American
woman, only comparable in offensiveness to the
traditional John Bull on the * Continong,' or 'Arry
let loose on the ' Bulleyvards ' }
The regret which belongs to lost opportunities is
often poignant, like that of the man who, looking very
much cut up, admitted that he was brooding ov lir
folly of not having had a second cut of r
incomparable leg of roast mutton thre -*ii.. fore.
i
Nkw York
139
I record with perhaps deeper remorse that I never
went to see Carlyle or Maz/ini when both were still
living in London, or Madame George Sand when I
was in France, or Longfellow when he passed through
England.
1
XXXII
Walt Whitman. — I did not miss poor Walt, so
roughly handled by all sorts and conditions of men
because so needlessly frank and utter in his word-
painting ; indeed, words were to him mere symbols
for atmospheres, emotions and temperatures or planes
of thought.
But even the great masters looked askance at him
as they had at Edgar Allan Poe, a far less reputable
person.
Emerson and Longfellow would none of Walt
Whitman. He was too uncouth, too rough, too form-
less. William Michael Rossetti, with the independent
instinct of genius, edited an expurgated edition of his
• Leaves of Grass.' But when all is said and done,
honest Walt had a dash of peculiar genius and a sort
of fearless and prophetic strength which belonged to
none of his distinguished critics, great princes of
American literature as some of them were.
No one, not even Emerson, has so seized the spirit
of vigorous New America, dashing old precedents to
the ground, trampling on effete institutions, bound-
ing towards the future like a wild horse of the path-
less prairies revelling in its unconquered strength and
freedom.
* I will throw my barbaric yawp
Over the roofs of the world,'
♦
I40
Travei. and Tai.k
shouted Walt, and he immediately proceeded to throw
it ; and men wondered, smiled derisively and then
passed by on the other side. But presently it came to
be felt that in Walt Whitman was to be found what
Diogenes failed to discover in all Athens — a man ;
one who risked his life fearlessly on the field of battle,
who nursed the sick and wounded with the tenderness
of a woman ; who shared his crust with the pauper
and parted with his coat to the naked, and was
ready to console and hearten up all fainting hands that
hung down, protect little children, and consort with
outcasts as those who also had the Divine, the to
Qfiov^ in them. And so, as he mellowed with the
years, all men knew the honest, kindly face, the
man who cared not for money or luxury, only for
all men, women and children, who passed to and
fro on the Philadelphia ferry boats for thirty years,
a familiar figure conversing and chatting with the
lowest of the people, and quite simple and open
and friendly with every human creature, high or
low, who happened to address him. A reputation
world-wide, unique and sympathetic had gradually
grown up round Walt Whitman, who veered and
trimmed to no man's fancy, and accepted all, even
those who hated and reviled him, and at last they
called him 'honest Walt,' and as he grew infirm, and
his hair whitened, ' dear old Walt' When it became
known that he could not work remuneratively, and
li\ed precariously on the limited sale of his scanty
books, his friends subscribed to keep him out of
poverty, and they gave him a pony carriage. Was
not Walt an institution ? — and he took their money
with a kindly heart, but without great thanks. Had
he not ever been open-handed ? Did he esteem that
r
Nlvv York
141
a merit ? Was it a virtue even to die for his country,
or to risk his Hfe freely, as he had so often done to
save others ? Not at all ; a man should blush to be
praised for such things. They were the prerogatives
of all true Humanity. Did they wish to be esteemed
other than human — divinely human ?
So Walt took their money and his pony carriage
just as simply as he would have given them, but
without many thanks— and so died.
It is easy to scoff at his formless poems, at his
want of technique, at his singular prose ; but the fact
remains — Walt Whitman's description of President
Lincoln's assassination in the theatre by Booth (the
celebrated actor's brother) remains a piece of prose
almost unequalled in American modern literature ;
and his poem to a lady singing in the prison is cer-
tainly one of the tenderest, most pathetic, and most
noble-souled pieces of poetry in the English language.
XXXIII
Walt at Homk. — I had got thus far, when I
remembered that ' way back,' as the Americans sa)-,
in 1885 (just ten years ago, 1895) I had written
some lines a few hours only after conversing with the
venerable Walt. I think it better to insert them
here just as they are. They seem to have the con-
temporaneous touch about them :
It was on a dull December day in 1885 that, ac-
companied by my wife and two other ladies, I made
a pilgrimage to Camden (Philadelphia), just across
the ferry, to see the famous and eccentric Walt
Whitman.
^r '
'
^1
I
;•!
142
Travel and Talk
I had never joined in the general vituperation
which greeted ' Leaves of Grass' when it appeared in an
EngHsh dress, under the auspices of William Michael
Rossetti. Much as there was repulsive even in that
expurgated edition, there seemed to me flashes of
genius and clear insight which no age, least of all our
own, could afford to despise. The man who wrote
'Whispers of Heavenly Death' was not a mere
licentious charlatan. The revolt of Whitman against
rhyme is like the revolt of Wagner against stereo-
typed melody, and in his way he seemed to me to be in
search of a freer and more adequate art method for
conveying the intimate and rapid interior changes of
the soul. Over and above this Whitman's wild stanzas,
with their lists of carpenters' tools and * barbaric
yawps,' their delight in the smoke and roar of cities
as well as in the solitudes of woods and the silence
of mountains, and seas and prairies — seemed to me to
breathe something distinctive, national, American — in
spite of a strange confusion of mind. I could hardly
read his superb prose description of the Federal
battlefields, and those matchless pages on the assas-
sination of President Lincoln (of which he was an
eye-witness), without feeling that Whitman was no
figure-head — one more monkey, in fact — but a large
and living soul, with a certain breadth of aboriginal
sympathy, too rare in these days of jejune thought and
palsied heart. In Camden the old man lived quietly
and inoffensively. The people liked him— he had
survived calumny and abuse. The gentleness and
ease of his disposition endeared him to all who came
habitually in contact with him ; but he sought no
one, was in failing health, and lived poorly, but not
uncomfortably. He loved the streets, the market
New York
143
place, above all the ferry-boats. He spent hours watch-
ing the people, and chatting, especially with the
common men and little children. On the whole, he
seemed to think Nature less spoiled and sophisticated
there than elsewhere.
We found him, late in the afternoon, just come
in from his drive — a rather infirm but fine-looking
old man, with a long, venerable white beard, a high,
thoughtful forehead, a great simplicity of manner,
and a total absence of posing. He received us with
ease and even grace, and one almost forgot that he
was himself only a poor peasant — a soldier in the
great war, and after that a ceaseless worker in the
army hospitals, and not good for much else in most
people's eyes.
Emerson and the Concord and Cambridge folk
had some hopes of him at one time, but they
ended by looking askance at him ; he was clearly
out of their orbit — out of everyone's orbit but
his own. In that content — quite unsoured by
abuse — plain in life — with a wide, shrewd outlook
at the world, and a great fund of what Confucius
called * Humanity.'
1
Walt sat in his arm-chair by the lamplight, look-
ing a good deal older than he was, for he was then
only sixty-six (1885).
' Tell me,* he said, ' about Browning. I have had
kind words from Tennyson and many of your people,
but Browning does not take to me. Tell me about
Gladstone. What will become of you all ? You arc
hurrying on, on, but to what kind of a democracy
are you hurrying ? *
He seemed more anxious to hear than to speak ;
f I
''^^1r.. /
■Ij
t
I '
I
I
r
f{
I
i!'
t- '
144
Travel and Talk
Once or twice he alluded
he made us talk to him.
to Emerson.
' I saw him quite in the last days, when his
memory was gone,' he said.
* Was not that painful } ' I asked.
' No, no ! ' he said, with a glow in his eyes, and
leaning forward in his chair. * It seemed to me just
right ; it was natural ; Nature slowly claiming back
her own — the elements she had lent — he himself did
not seem to feel it painful. I did not ; it was all as
it should be — harmony, not discord. As he lived, so
he died ' — then more slowly, and the old habit of
thinking in pictures came back to him — ' like a fine
old apple tree going slowly to decay — noble work
done, getting ready for rest, or ' — and he paused and
seemed to be thinking of days long past — * like a
sunset'
But I soon found there was not much to
gather from the Aftermath of Walt Whitman. He,
too, seemed going slowly the way of the old apple
tree. His brain went very leisurely — with only an
occasional flash. He gave us one more image, I
thought a powerful one. I was alluding to the un-
known, immeasurable public which seemed to engulf
immense cheap editions of books.
' Who buys, who reads these tracts, tales, poems,
sermons, which circulate in millions, and which we
should never care to open ? '
* You forget,' said Walt, * there is a sea below the
sea. We are but on the surface.'
It would have been difficult to hit upon a more
graphic image, or one more nicely to the point. I
think Walt, as he likes to be called, was tired, not
very communica Jve at all events — or perhaps we had
New York
145
not the power of drawing him out. He was, however,
very gentle and courteous to the ladies, and before
we left, gave us two pamphlets, one containing a
few poems, and another in prose. He wrote his
name in each, and, as he seemed to be suffering
physically from rheumatism, I rose to go. We left
with a pleasant, genial feeling of having been con-
versing with an agreeable and thoughtful old man
but scarcely with the Walt Whitman whose name
has been for thirty years notorious rather than famous
throughout the civilised world, and whose works have
been freely extolled, execrated, and ridiculed, but
probably little bought and less read.
XXXIV
Niagara ! From Walt Whitman to Niagara ma}'
seem rather a jump, nor is there any connection
between them except that Walt is a sort of Niagara
of American literature, and that I visited the Falls
soon after leaving Philadelphia.
Until then Niagara was jobbed and sold like a
peepshow to every tourist armed with the requisite
number of dollars. The State of New York at last
bought out the speculators who farmed the banks
and tollgates on the American side, and the Canadian
Government has followed suit ; for, although the Cana-
dian prospects have always been nominally free, the
* Rapids ' and the ' Whirlpool ' were for long private
property, each worth a dollar a head per peep — an
arrangement as discreditable to Canada as it was
inconvenient to the visitor.
Hut nothing can mar Niagara. Nowhere in the
VOL. I L
146
Travel and Talk
!iv
m
world docs it so little matter what man is or what
man does. Man can do nothing with his hotels,
bridges, and shanties, or even his advertisements ol
soaps and liver pills on the precipitous rocks — nothing
which in the least affects the Niagara torrent. It laughs
boisterously at his puny inventions ; it simply swamps
him and passes by. Like the sea in width, turbulence,
size : and yet like no sea, for the boiling flood comes
howling and leaping over different levels, twisted and
tossed, hurling tons of water to right and left, yet ever
rushing on like the waters of no other tide or river
upon the earth.
I came upon these rapids above the falls a second
day in clear warm air. The rain was gone. The
light lay low on their deep green eddies, and flashed
upon the stormy breakers' snowy foam. The wooded
islands looked like painted scenes, jewelled with the
autumn tints. The sky was of Italian softness^the
strange secret of these rapids was revealed in a
moment. They belong to a stormy sky, but are the
same in all weathers. Such a terrible sea is never
seen with such a sky and such light and colour as I
now beheld — such peace on the banks close to such
boiling fury ! The contrast was unreal, magical,
beyond words.
I
I
Driving over to Canada side, in the middle of the
suspension bridge, the immense Horseshoe (Canada)
and American falls, separated by a lovely island (Goat
Island), come into view. I was not disappointed. A
nearer sight of the falls, such as I got with a ven-
geance when we passed underneath, with the spray of
millions of tons drenching me as I clung to the slippery
rock — such a view was more appalling in its way, but
h
New York
147
I
not less magnificent, than the combined vision of the
two mighty cataracts, with the swelling clouds of
vapours for ever rising out of the abysses below.
The store of Mrs. Captain Webb opposite the
bridge led me to fall into conversation with the driver,
who had seen poor Webb go down in the rapids
July 2, 1883.
We drove towards the very spot.
* Yonder, sir,' said the driver, ' the water is quiet
on the Canada side. Webb started from the Clifton
House. Come over this side 'cos American police
would not allow him to take the water from t'other ;
no, nor wasn't an American boatman would put off
with him.'
' Wasn't he advised ? Did he make no trial ? '
' Advised ! lor' bless you, sir ! everybody told him
he'd never come up alive. But he'd swum the worst
waters in the world, and meant to swim Niagara. Ho
made no trial ; come down 'ere and went in straight.
Says he to the Canada boatman what rowed him into
yon smooth water, " I made 25,000 dollars by the
Channel and have spent 10,000 of them." "Then,"
says the boatman, " I advise you to go home and spend
the other 15,000, and not drown yourself You'll
never come out alive, you bet." " Done," says the
capt'n, "and I'll meet you at Clifton House to-niglU."
Wall, sir, afore the pore feller went over, that boatman
was reg'lar overcome with his foolhardy pluck, and he
felt for the galliant man : he took him by the hand —
" I'll row you back, sir ; don't you try it, you'll never
come through." " I don't mind the rapids," says Webb,
" but I ain't so sure about the whirlpool, 'cos of the
undercurrent," which was the last words the capt'n
ever spoke.
L 2
«
i
^z:
148
Travel and Talk
; H
I
* 1 seed him ^o in, and presently he touches the
breakers. Why, sir,' and he pointed with his whip to
the boiling eddies beneath us, 'you go down to the
brink presently, and you'll wonder any man in his
senses dared such a thing. Wall, he breasted them
for a bit, and thought he could go through the waves
like he did in the Channel, but the tons of water smote
on him right and left and all ways— they mashed him
up. The current sucked him under ; his body came
up again and again. I guess the life was pretty well
beat out of him afore ever he came to the whirlpool.
Me threw up his arms, turned his head to the Canada
shore, and went under. We never .see him alive again.
He was pretty well mashed about when we picked
him up six miles down the river, and they give him a
fine funeral, and did summat hand.some for his wife
and family. No, she wasn't there : she never sec the
falls afore he died. She thought he was going to get
through, and fancied he must have struck a rock ; but
lor' bless you, sir, them tons of water war enough to
pummel him to a jelly without e'er a rock : and so
they did. You minded Mrs. Captain Webb's store
up yonder ? She don't live there, pore soul ! and
she's sold the store ; but the name draws custom.'
When I got to the hell of waters where poor Webb
was last seen, the boiling fury of which no language
can describe, the suicidal madness of his attempt was
evident. The whole bulk of water that sweeps over
the Horseshoe and American falls here comes roaring
by over deep sunken rocks at a maximum of twenty-
seven miles an hour compressed into a channel of
about 2,000 feet wide ; clouds of foam rose, and the
spray as of a wild sea was tossed high over our heads
and descended in showers of glittering rain.
,i
New York
149
XXXV
The Cave of the Winds. —Niagara had but
one more experience to offer me more appalliiiLj
than this unutterable flood. It was the Cave of the
Winds. On reascending the river to Goat Island,
I entered the little wooden shanty embowered in
trees on the ridge of the cliff. I little knew
what I was in for. I was warned to change all my
clothes for the flannels and grotesque yellow oil-
skin provided for the descent into the Cave of the
Winds — coarse flannel slippers tied on with string
replaced my boots ; my wife accompanied me in
similar apparel. In our huge oilskin helmets we
looked like two divers. A steep staircase brought us
down some 170 feet, and we came out on a ledge of
the rock, and picked our way towards the cloud-
enveloped pool of the huge cataract. The grey rocks
above us hung loose ; mighty fragments, five tons at a
time, fall in winter over the path we trod, and fragmetits
shatter every day after sunset, as the air cools.
Our guide led us on, down and down over slip-
pery rock, till on a sudden turn I looked up and saw
the whole volume of Niagara, descending apparently
on our devoted heads. The spray, in effect, dashed
in our faces and stung us terribly.
* Breathe through your mouth and tread firm,'
yelled the gu'de, and seizing one hand with a strong
grip, he pulled us over a narrow plank drenched and
shiny with spray. A bend brought us out on the
rock.
The chasm beneath us was sheer, the roar of
ISO
Travel and Talk
waters deafening ; for a moment we could realise
nothing. I was blinded and soaked — in front of me
I at last saw through my drenched eyes the mighty
mass, a million of tons a minute, pouring and dashing
down its mountains of foam between me and the outer
world. It drove the wind like a cannon ball against
my breath, and seemed to force open my mouth and
swell my lungs. We groped through somehow to the
other side and came round on to a jutting rock stand-
ing up from the abyss into which fe.. the deluge.
I had passed between the fall and the rock, and
now I was right in front, but still close to the tre-
mendous volume of water. I looked up, and through
the dazzling spray I saw the top of the fall, like huge
masses of white carded wool against the blue sky, and
at that moment the sun peeping out I beheld for the
first time the perfect rainbow — a complete huge circle
painted on the falls ; the bottom of the circle was
close to mc, and I dipped my feet in it.
To this sublimely beautiful moment succeeded one
of what seemed to me considerable risk, and I shall
certainly carry the awful experience to my dying day.
We came to another slippery wooden plank bridging
a watery chasm, but the plank was misplaced and
aslant, and the handrail rocked and swung between
the shattering spray and the beating wind ; a slip, a
giddiness or failure of nerve must, so it seemed to me,
have hurled us inevitably into the whirling waters
that roared from above to below ; the shock of the
wind, as it was, beat me violently against the rickety
rail, and I was too blinded with stinging spray to see
my feet. Another moment I got again on the rock
and we clambered up the slippery ledges somehow —
New York
151
tugged, pushed, lifted by our guide, till we regained
the narrow, rocky path beneath the overhanging, ever-
dropping cliff leading to the precipitous wooden stair-
case.
The guide assured us that all was perfectly safe
and that they never had any accidents. I should like
to know about that. I will sa)-, however, that had I
known what was meant by the ' Cave of the Winds ' —
that hollowing out of the rock beneath the downpour
of Niagara— I should never have invited my wife to
accompany me, nor should any lady unless of iron
nerve and a steady head venture down. I can imagine
the shock to the system from mere terror at cer-
tain points most disastrous to a delicate organisation.
Only two things seem to counteract it — ignorance of
what is to come, and intense excitement when it
comes. You cling and slide and gasp and blink and
pant, and suddenly, when the worst is over, you begin
to realise what you have gone through. I am told
that Professor Tyndall took great interest in the Cave
of the Winds, and went down in far stormier weather
He predicted that the curious action of the wind would
hollow it out far more deeply before long. I do not
know whether the prophecy has been verified.
M,
XXXVI
Lecturers and Acjents.— Before I leave the
American frontier and cross to Canada, I think that
a word about 'American boomings,' 'American lec-
turing.s,' and * American reporters ' will not be out of
place.
!|*t,
'il !
''V
I
152
Travkl and Talk
It is sometimes curious to get behind the scenes,
and look at the lecturing in America from that point
of vantage. Face to face with sober fact, the inflated
newspaper paragraplis have a marvellous tendency to
shrivel up, liUe Cinderella's coach, and the professional
circulars to hide their diminished heads when the
swans turn out geese. The truth will emerge. I'eople
- good, bad, and indifferent go over to America to
show themselves and speak a piece. If they have
any sort of name, or have written any sort of book,
or if they have made themselves ridiculous or subliine
in any sort of way, they expect an audience and cash.
With a little manageinent and ready money, the
lecture bureaus work up a man's reputation, ' grease
it, and make it run,' as they say. Newspaper pars fly
about.
The great Macjoncs, it appears, is suffering from
a sore throat in London. The great Mac is well, and
will leave for America. Prescntl}' he arrives : he is
interviewed ; a hall is engaged, he appears — the
attendance is bad ; Jones tries elsewhere, the attend-
ance is worse ; Jones has another sore throat, and
returns to England.
But sometimes it is .some one a grade above Jones.
Some gosling poet, who has got hold of a few press
wires, is asked over to discourse on other poets of the
past, and run down his contemporaries generally.
This is a Lyceum or University lecture-hall affair ;
then it dwindles into a .sort of drawing-room business
— seats being paid for by any scratch admirers or
gobemouchcs who can be got together. Then Poetaster
comes home, and perhaps oven his best friends do
not know exactly how much he is out of pocket.
And sometimes it is a greater than Poetaster. A
New York
153
ny
"the
A
Matthew Arnold, for instance, thinks it important
that America should sec him, if not exactly hear him,
and American dollars also happen to be of some
importance to him. Accounts differ, but in one
respect they afjree — that, excellent as might be the
matter, there was room for improvcincnt in the
Apostle-of-C iilture's manner.
Matthew Arnold told me he was always wretched
on the platform. He went there avowedly to make
money, and made about 800/. I^ut he was out of
his clement. Any one who has hctxni the late poet,
philosopher, and theologian in the Royal Institution
or elsewhere is lucky, for he was generally in-
audible even there.
After his first appearance in America, he took
elocution lessons, and was heard a little better.
' What I most enjoyed,' he said to me--and I (juitc
sympathise with him--' was talking to school girls at
several great schools and colleges. The girls I thought
(juite charming and so intelligent, and I felt so
perfectly at my case, which I never do on the plat-
form.'
' Malt,' as he was often called lovingly, was very
modest and diffident about his own performances,
though somewhat severe, as became the prince of
critics, on other people.
Bradlaugh, who certainly was the very opposite
in all ways to Matt Arnold, informed me that he
had had a marvellous reception in America. He
said he had addressed immense and excited crowds,
which warmed his blood by overwhelming enthusiasm.
I think I took some of that cum grano, but barring
h's (he very oddly substituted y's), Bradlaugh was a
great orator. I remember hearing quite a grand
154
Travel and Talk
'I
11
i
Id
>}\l
It:
rhetorical apostrophe a little spoilt by this defect. ' If,'
he exclaimed triumphantly, ' I 'ave taken away your
y-eaven, I 'ave also taken away your y-ell.' Thus
causing his Christian * enemy to blaspheme.'
The late George Augustus Sala was only a
moderate success, but he made money. Charles
Kingslcy was not a good lecturer, but there was
great eagerness to see and hear him.
Charles Dickens, although he made enemies, at-
tracted huge audiences. America and th'2se lecturing
cami)aigns arc credited witii providing both Dickens
and Charles Kingsley with their i'oi(/>s de grdce.
Strange to say, the late Mr. Brandram, our most
popular Shakespearian recitalist, was such a failure
that he had to cancel his engagements and come
back ; they simply would not hear him.
Archdeacon (now 13ean) Farrar was perhaps the
greatest success that has been known as a lecturer,
although I have heard him declare that ' wild liorses
should not drag him through it again.'
Me wrote his lectures on lirowning and Dante
very carefully, and wiis always altering and re-altering
ihern fastidiously, although IMiillips Brooks, who was
(jften in the chair, told him they would do very well, and
I believe advised him to leave them alone. But the
eloquent and experienced Canon probably knew best.
The money he is said to have made, like the
proceeds of his books, was variously estimated ; but
about 2,000/. within a year, I fancy would not be far
wide of the mark.
Something fabulous was offered Spurgeon 22,000/.
I believe — for a preaching tour ; but the great Non-
conformist rejected the offer with scorn, accompanied,
it is said, with a hasty reference to Acts viii. 20 in
rather doubtful but cjuile Spurgeunesque taste.
New York
155
was
XXXVII
Profits. — I am often asked with reference to
lecturing in America about the probable chances of
success, the profits, the way to proceed, and the sort
of fatigues encountered ; and it is a little difficult
to answer or to advise.
The chances of success depend not upon what
you know, but whether you know how to say it ; and
not only that, but whether the people want to hear what
you have to say, and that depends again a good deal
upon who you are, and further whether your person-
ality and your voice will command the market always
everywhere, like Dickens, or whether you are only
marketable for a time on account of recent exploits,
like African Stanley, for if the public mind gets off
Africa it gets off Stanley.
Of course great oratorical power like that of Annie
l^esant or Charles Bradlaugh vvill always command a
public, and great preachers and great statesmen if they
choose to turn out will never fail to attract ; but personal
distinction, like that of Matthew Arnold, or Stanley,
Dean of Westminster, will not neces.-^arily thaw con-
tinuously either here or in America, unless it In-
coupled with exceptional gifts of oratory antl thai
odd indefinable quality calleil personal magnetism for
which there has yet been found no real name or
analysis.
People in London, for instance, will go and hear
an eminent man once or twice on his own subject
but they will not continue to go if they caimot hear
what he says, or understand it, or be made to feel
interested in it.
156
Travel and Talk
Our Royal Institution has afforded piteous in-
stances of men of supreme scientific importance
floundering helplessly about with inaudible talk and
unintelligible experiments, and only getting to the
threshold of their subject when th<' signal bell rang
and their time was up, and they had got off" little or
nothing of what they came there to say.
This sort of thing will not do for America, and it
is of no use fur an author or an authority of any kind
to try and fly there unless he has tested his wings
elsewhere. His fate will be that of Icarus.
No one who has not tried, even if he has what is
called the gift of the gab, can estimate the difficulty
of keeping the absorbed attention of an audience for
half an hour at a stretch. Remember, you may have
too much gab as well as too little it is upon the
qualit)' and the style of the gab that success depends,
r'or once ' the readiness is (not) all.' Hut this does
not profess to be an essay on public speaking.
I pass on to the question of profits. These depend
ccctcris paribus on the method adopted — there are two
methods to choose from.
You can go over by invitation from the Lowell
or any other institute, and your fi.xcd fee will then
vary from lo/. to 20/., or possibly at the Lowell 30/.
Institutes cannot afford more (schools seldom more),
than 10/. ; or you put yourself in the hands of Red-
path or Major Pond (II. VV. Beechcr's agent) if you
can get them to take you on any terms, and then
your profits will depend upon how you * draw.'
Large halls are engaged ; you take half the gross
or three-quarters of the net if you can get it. Your
hotels will not be p.iid, but you can generally get
iiospitality if you arc eminent enough (and if not you
11
Nfav York
15;
5 in-
:ancc
: and
3 the
ranij
tic or
Ltid it
' kind
wings
hat is
ficulty
ICC for
y have
DP. the
pcnds.
s docs
lepciid
uc two
l.owcll
1 then
ell 30''-
more),
f Red-
if you
d then
c gross
Your
Ally get
lot you
had better not go) ; )'our rail fares will probably be
paid, but you must make the best terms you can
about hotels and railways. If you are a draw, you
ought to make from 20/. to 100/. a night ; if you are
not a draw, you need not trouble yourself, for j'our
agent will soon drop you.
It does not at all follow that if you are not of the
lecturing calibre to succeed as a personally conducted
agent's lecturer, you may not do very well in schools
and private houses, institutes and lyccums, which the
great agents usually dislike and leave untouched.
If you think yourself a sufficient celebrity on
account of some book, like 'Ginx's Baby,' or some
casual exploit, like swimming the Channel, you travel
with your own agent, and if he doesn't expect to be
paid much, you may cover expenses and enjoy your-
self fairly well ; but the only two safe ways are to deal
with institutes and schools for fixed fees, when with
luck you may average 100/. a month for about six
months in the year, or el.se get managed by a well-
known lecture bureau or established agent, who will
put you through the big halls in the big towns, when
if you are at all a success you should clear 1,000/. in
about nine or ten months. Great hits have cleared
double that amount.
The fatigue ami strain of lecturing in the States
must, of course, vary. They depend chief!)- upon three
things — whether you work easily or fret and worry,
and are nervous and anxious — in a word, whether you
evjoy your work or not ; whether travelling, reduced
as it now is to a fine art, fatigues and tries you ;
and, above all, whether you can sleep and eat and
think comfortabl)' en voy<7^<^i\
Personally, travelling does not fatigue me at all —
n
1 1
"*•»»•«•
158
Travel and Talk
it rests mc ; and to run two thousanH miles at a stretch
day and night, and arrive just in time to slip on a
dress coat and turn out on to the platform, affects my
nerves and faculties no more than to step out of my
study and drive to the Royal Institution at home, or
to enter my pulpit on Sunday. But I know that so
experienced a speaker as Dean Farrarfelt differently,
and it greatly shook both Thackeray and Dickens.
I shall have something more to say on this subject
when I come to my pioneer and general lecturing
experiences in Australia, Tasmania, New Zealand and
Ceylon.
xxxvrii
Reporters. — I can speak with some experience,
as they contrived to make from two to four columns
a day at Montreal out of me in one week, and published
reports of all my lectures, speeches and sermons, not to
say conversations, in P»oston and New York, for about
two months. In Francisco they kept taking snap-
shots at me all through the seimon, and I appeared
in grotesque attitudes, illustrated by verbatim reports.
I had sent me, in the Eastern States alone, about
eighty columns of these literary curiosities, besides
innumerable paragraphs, some of a wildly imagina-
tive character. In reporting any speech or lecture
dealing with technicalities, your average shorthand
man is as hopeless as most other reporters, and .'is
absolutely unconscious of his shortcomings. He
will write down Homer for Herodotus, or Plutarch
for Petrarch. He will put Brittany for Britain, and
describe events as happening at the North Pole
which could only occur at the Tropics, and vice
i
Nkw York
159
versa, with calmness and even jrusto ; but I must
admit that he is rrcnerally eager to pjct his copy
corrected if he can ; but copy he must anyhow make
— if not at his own expense, then at yours.
There arc, however, reporters and reporters, and
every now and then you get a man who happens to
know something about your special subject, and you
may be thankful ; only then he is apt to put into
your lecture, not always what \ou said, but what
he thinks you ought to have said. The most bare-
faced bit of reporting I experienced in America wp.sa
professed report of a lecture I ga.cat Vassar College.
The reporter had not only not been there, but had
evidently not even got his information from any
one who had ; but he had seen a report of a sermon
} had preached in New York a week before. This
did. And so he chopped up phrases from that sermon,
interlarded with a few sentences of his own, and the
report of a Vassar lecture, the very subject of whicli
he was ignorant — le voilii !
The American IVess is also unscrupulous in
asserting the arrival or presence of people who don't
arrive. I was amused at reading accounts of my
appearance at the Newhaven Church Congress, when
I was at Montreal. I never went to the Newhaven
Congress at all.
As regards the wishes o. reporters to know my
'-'* opinions, I never disguised them or threw obstacles
in the way. M)' great object in life is to get my
opinions known and promulgated. What other object
can a reasonable ma.i have who believes in his opinions,
and wishes to see them operative ? Why do the people
who make speeches and write books pretend to be
i,
■J*
,■: B
160
Tkavkl and Talk
shy of being reported and interviewed ? I have no
patience with people who shut out the reporter to
save themselves trouble, or sneer at the newspapers
merely from a sense of superiority, which seldom
belongs to those who most affect it. If they arc
sincere and know their business, they ought to seize
every occasion for the most correct and widest dif-
fusion of their views. The reporter places him-
self in your hands : lends you a vast machinery
which you could not, perhaps, otherwise, or in
so effective a manner, command ; gives you in a
day the publicity of a dozen expensive and tedious
public meetings ; and you, instead of controlling and
directing, as you are invited to do, the march of the
opinions dearest to your heart, bolt your door, toss
your head, or blush like a schoolgirl !
For my part, although my opinions may be of
little value to the world, I am only too glad when
they excite any public interest, and am thankful to
all reporters and editors who will allow me to control
their diffusion. If, in addition to this, anyone takes
a friendly and nearer interest in my own humble per-
.sonality, I feel very much flattered, and I hope I am
properly grateful, as everyone should be, for all such
expressions of kindly feelings. Who am I, or any
other man, that I should refuse to say where I was
born and how old I am, if it makes any human being
happier to know it }
'fl
II
Montreal
i6i
lave no
)rtcr t<^
spapcrs
seldom
icy arc
to seize
est dif-
;s him-
chinery
, or in
lU in a
tedious
ing and
I of the
)or, toss
ly be of
id when
ikful to
control
le takes
ble per-
pe I am
all such
or any
re I was
n being
-'I
MONTREAL
XXXIX
Canada. — I have taken two snap shots at
Canada : West, from Vancouver to Winnipeg, in 1895 '■>
East in 1885, Montreal to Kingston. Both were due
to impromptu rushes of travel, or what I might call
railway parentheses. The records of these journeys
may be slight, but I do not regret having made them.
As a newspaper correspondent — and I almost
always travel in thr.t capacity — I have necessarily ac-
quired a certain literary effrontery which makes it
natural for me, like other globe-trotters, to rush in
where wise men fear to tread. But only thi".I: what
the wise men miss ! How much escapes them — how
much is lost because they despise whipping out a
pencil, or taking a dry-plate snap shot ! I have some-
times thought that an impressionist sketch, without
being as intrinsically valuable as a finished picture, is
often more suggestive. Still I plead guilty to having
pushed the theory to extremities, and I confess to a
fiiint deprecatory blush when the editor of the ' Con-
temporary' printed as a serious article under the
title ' Vignettes in Spain ' some pencil notes (in-
tended for an evening newspaper) which I had scrib-
bled hastily en route whilst looking out of the railway
carriage between Barcelona and Cadiz.
Curiously enough the first editor of the ' Contcmpo-
VOL. I M
'''^.
r '!
162
Travel and Talk
M
II
rary,' Dean Alford, ^avc mc a similar surprise, when he
clapped into bijj type a few paj^cs on Hcethoven (since
reprinted in * Music and Morals ') which I had written
for the ' Notices of Hooks ' then usually printed in small
type at the end of the number. Jkit this is not a
literary biography.
When I come to write t/idi, many editors will 'sit
up,' from the editor of the ' Times ' who - (but Delanc
is dead) -to the editor of 'Punch.' Honest Mark
Lemon {(/e mortnis !)
As to Sir Arthur Arnold, the first editor of the
' Echo,' we could tell pretty ' literary shop ' of each
other, and thank God we are both alive and as fast
friends, I hope, in i S95 as we were in 1875 {O labnntur
auni\) when we sat in adjoinini^ rooms up in the
'Echo' office, Catherine Street, Strand : he as Editor,
I as a ' Freelance ' leader writer.
Rut to Canada !
My first Canada snapshot was on this wise. I
arrived in America very nearly a fortnif^ht before
I had to deliver my first Lowell Lecture at Boston. I
was then informed that no Lowell Lecturer was allowed
to open his mouth in America before he had delivered
his official course at the Lowell Institute.
I at once started for Albany, and made straight
for Montreal, and there, with the British flai,*^ instead
of the stars and stripes floating over mc, I prated at
my ease.
Smallpox was raj^in^ at Montreal. We were
examined, revaccinated, fumigated, disinfected, suffo-
cated, and everything else that science required, and
so passed into the city.
The disease raged chiefly amongst the French, who
I !
MONTRKAL
163
hen he
I (since
A'ritten
n small
i not a
/ill 'sit
Delane
1
t Mark
of the
1
of each
as fast
■;
abiintur
in the
\ Editor,
1
1
1 ■
wise. I
->
: before
)ston. I
allowed
clivered
straight
►
instead
(rated at
/c were
(1, suffo-
4
red, and
nch, who
'«
are numerous at Montreal, though of course not so
numerous as at Quebec. The Montreal French live in
the low quarters of the town. They arc mostly poor,
ignorant, superstitious, and e.Ktremely dirty people.
They did not attempt to guard against or check the
smallpox ; the)' even spread it, especially amongst
the infant population. They had some muddled idea
of a divine dispensation coimected with the manufac-
ture of angels, so the blessed babes died right and left-
My wife and I were received very warml)'. Trade
was languishing ; tourists and visitors were shumiing
the city. We were hailed by the papers as fearless
compatriots. We stayed in the house of Canon
Ellegood, kindest and most genial of hosts, who took
care that we lacked for nothing, and saw ever)'thing
and everybody worth seeing.
All the time I was at Montreal the papers managed
to spin from three to four columns a day out of me
and ni)' wife The society and dailies swarmed with
such important and choice pieces of information as
follows:
'A lady, on seeing Mrs. Ilawcis, e.xclaimed, " Can
it be that this youthful little creature is the great
Mrs. Ilaweis, who wrote &c. &c. ? " '
Or:
' Mr. Ilaweis seemed to have great delight m
meeting Dr. Stevenson, with whom he, together with
Canon lillegood, had an animated conversation. The
three great dt'vincs {sic) &c. &c.'
Or:
' Mrs. Haweis presented a friend at Cote witli a
silver S hook."
M 2
s
r'. h
tl
164 Travel and Talk
And:
* The Rev. Mr. Ilaweis dined with the Honourable
J. J. C. Abbott on Thursday.'
' Reception to Mr. Ilawci.s at the Queen'.s Hall.
About 1,500 invitations were issued, and over 1,000
guests passed through the assembly. Our reporter,
who stated 200, was forced to leave early, &c.'
The reporters, interlarding the more piquant
remarks, no doubt, with the * best butter,' were
rather rough on my personal appearance. One de-
scribes me at Kingston as ' a man below medium
si/c, with a chubby countenance and a peculiarity
of manner which would single him out as a tra-
velling ph)'sician, not as a musical savant or
an Anglican clergyman. The moment he reached
the platform he captured the b'hoys with a witty
sail)', &c.' Another thought my face ' shrewd and
keen ; ' another considered my expression ' gentle
and benignant ; ' and altogether I had a good bit to
live up to - or down to, as the case might be.
'i
mn
!Ji
XL
KlNHSTON. Before leaving Canada, I paid a
flying visit to Kingstcrn, whither I had been invited
by President Grant, of Kingston University, to address
the student?. I was much struck by the almost
austere and old-world simplicity of the president's
household — the evidently deep but unaffected piety,
the regulation chapter from the Bible before breakfast,
the heartfelt prayer, the gentle, serious courtesy, the
atmosphere of plain living and high thinking that
i
Montreal
165
Durable
s Hall,
r 1,000
^porter,
piquant
,' were
3ne dc-
nedium
uliarity
a tra-
vi/// or
reached
a witty
wd and
' gentle
d bit to
paid a
invited
1 address
almost
esident's
;d piety,
eakfast,
tesy, the
ing that
stamped the university, and was evidently inspired
by its official head.
How vast is the influence wielded by such men
throughout America and Canada ! Happy indeed
the land in which an ever-increasing number of
these 'universities' flourish. No doubt the passion
for these collegiate establishments has crcjsscd over
from the U.S.A. to the * Old Countr) ,' the term of
filial endearment still commonly used on the frontier.
lUit many of these so-calleil 'universities' corre-
spond rather to our great public schools than to
our universities. They are more what Oxford and
Cambridge were meant to be, and actually were, in
Chaucer's time. The students were mostly boys,
or little more, and .so they are at Kingston.
When I was ushered into my Kingston lecture
hall, I was greeted by not very respectful shouts
clapping of hands, and a few cat-calls, which pro-
ceeded from hilarious juveniles in the gallery. I
saw at once the mi.xed hit with which I had to do,
and accordingly addressed my.self, as every lecturer
who hoi)es for mercy must, to the unruly element,
which always has the pcjwer to enjoy itself whilst
spoiling the pleasure of all the rest. I managed
to bandy a few words with them at the begiiming,
and finding themselves overmatched in rei)artee, and
the laugh turned good-humoured ly against them,
they grew tame and converted their sarcasm into
uproarious applause at such intervals as I found it
expedient to prepare occasions for them.
IMAGE EVALUATION
TEST TARGET (MT-S)
<9
1.0
|4_5
liO
1^ IM
1^ 12.2
I.I I '^ 1^
1-25 i 1.4
1.6
V3
"a
^/.
^\
Hiotographic
Sciences
Corporation
23 WEST MAIN STREET
WEBSTER, N.Y. 14580
(716) 873-4503
m
iV
iV
N>
?v
f/j
f
Bi
1 66
Travel and Talk
XLI
The Honourable John Abbott, late Premier
of Canada, and legal adviser to the Canadian Pacific
Railway, and Sir William Dawson, the eminent natural
science philosopher, were by far the most important
persons I met during my flying visit to Canada. Mr.
J. Abbott was a portly man, with broad, square fore-
head, and solid every way in mind and body. I met
at his hospitable board many of the leading people
in Montreal ; but as I had then no project of chroni-
cling my Canadian tour, I have unfortunately not
retained their names.
It was Mr. Abbott who inspired me with that
supreme confidence in the future of the Canadian
Pacific Railway that no variation of its stocks has
since shaken. With the C.P.R. England girdles the
globe, and the vast expanse of country opened up by
it on either side, right away from the Atlantic to the
Pacific — from Montreal to Vancouver — is destined,
unless our inconceivable folly and apathy stand in
the way, to be the future — why not the present ? —
safety valve of our surplus population and our over-
production. Mr. Abbott was most anxious in 1885
that I should be amongst the first to traverse the
new line from coast to coast, and was willing to place
every facility at my disposal, but at that time I was
due at Boston to deliver the Lowell Lectures. Since
then, in 1895, I took a flying journey from Van-
couver to Winnipeg and back, whereof more later.
Soon after I left America in 1885 the last spike
was driven, the last rail laid, of that great north-west
Montreal
167
1885
e the
place
I was
Since
Van-
er.
spike
i-west
aitery of ccinmercc, the Canadian Pacific Railway.
The discovery of a pass through the Selkirk Moun-
tains, and the completion of a Canadian line clear
through from Montreal to the coast of British Columbia
opposite Vancouver's Island, at once raised burning
questions of emigration, traffic and Imperial policy
which tend considerably to cheapen the political and
commercial importance of the Suez Canal itself
We can now get from Liverpool to Montreal in
less than eight days, the Canadian Pacific Line
will take us on to Vancouver in a few days
more — and then ? Stand at Vancouver and look
across the Pacific towards China, and the road lies
open to Hong Kong. The British Government
contract steamers bring our mails from Hong Kong
via the Canadian Pacific to Liverpool in less time
than we ever got them before, and without even
touching alien soil ! Look again, and the road lies
ope. '■■'. Anstralia, and a wire connecting Australia
througi. he Sandwich Isles may be taken up along
the track of the Canadian Pacific, uniting Australia
with Liverpool.
Canada thus gives to England a traffic and a tele-
graphic route between China, Japan, and Australia,
which makes us largely independent of the Suez Canal
We can go round the world on our own rails and
wires. No one can pull up the first or cut the second ;
and we are sometimes told that our Canadian colony
is of very little use to us, and that Federation would
be a mistake! If this be so, it is because we do not
know how to develop our Canadian resources or ap-
preciate Canadian loyalty. But Canada gives us her
loyalty, and, while chafing bitterly at our apathy and
indifference, actually develops her railways in the teeth
r ULJHM&
W'
i68
Travel and Talk
I ^ • S J 1'
1)11 '■ '
of our sneers and discouragements, and places them
and the virgin wealth opened up by them at the dis-
posal of the Old Country. Depend upon it, if we do
not draw closer to Canada, others will. The French
are our rivals at Quebec. Shall the Germans be left
to enter into the new heritage opened up by the
Canadian Pacific line ?
Not so long ago Canada approached the British
Government with the following statement and proposal,
made through Mr. Stephens, Mr. Abbott (counsel),
and others, the president and the directors of the
Canadian line. In effect this is what they said : ' We
are about to open up Canada from shore to shore ; we
carry our line through i,ooo miles of richly timbered
land from Montreal to Winnipeg ; then through i,ooo
miles of prairie arable land from Manitoba to the
Rocky Mountains ; then through the Rocky Moun-
tains to British Columbia, which is boundlessly fertile.
Doubts of the cultivable nature of some of the prairie
land were raised. Well, we tried rough ploughing and
planting at intervals of twenty miles along our line,
and found an abundant harvest result in each case.
We now offer to place as many plots of i6o acres at
the disposal of as many farmers as choose to come
out. Our agent will superintend their settlement.
We will put down a log house and stock with a pig,
cow, and sheep, and break up the land. Send us
people ; advance a million or part of a million to pay
the initial expenses. We will give you good security
— a lien on the land, shanties, and products, and we
will withhold the deeds from the occupants till they
have refunded all. You have thousands of dock
labourers in London and Liverpool starving, thousands
of farmers at their wits' ends — we offer them and
-*i,
Montreal
169
5 them
he clis-
we do
French
be left
by the
British
roposal,
:ounsel),
i of the
id : ' We
lore ; we
timbered
igh 1,000
a to the
:y Moun-
,ly fertile,
le prairie
hing and
our Hne,
ach case.
acres at
to come
ttlement.
/ith a pig,
Send us
on to pay
d security
ts, and we
till they
of dock
thousands
them and
their families immediate and certain maintenance,
and in a few years wealth.' That was the Canadian
Railway's offer to England. The Government did not
see its way to meet this large, statesmanlike, industrial
and commercial proposal. Private enterprise did.
The Tuke Fund has done something. Lady Cathcai t
eighteen months ago sent over some of the Scotch
crofters, and more are on their way. These have
already largely repaid the outlay, and are fast growing
fat. The Marquis of Lome told me in 1886, I think,
that some of his crofters had done very well. In a
few years along the whole line thousands more will
doubtless be at work in the virgin forests that
stretch 1,000 miles east to west and 300 miles north
to south. Thousands will be breaking up the fertile
prairie land of equal extent between Manitoba and the
Rockies. This must and will come to pass in time.
But why should it not come now ? And why should
Canada be overrun with foreigners reaping benefits
blindly rejected by us ?
If the Government, instead of struggling with the
difficult and complex problem of improving the
dwellings of the poor by practically sinking the public
money, left that business to private enterprise on
commercial principles — for example, the lately opened
model lodging-houses at Chelsea — an " took a large,
far-seeing view of the colonial emigrant question, why
it might help at once to place the surplus inhabitants
of these islands in a position where they could not
only repay what was advanced, but land themselves
in prosperity while developing the sources of our
colonial wealth. People the forest, prairie, and moun-
tain track of the Canadian Railroad, and Fcdcra-
I
X
I
* *!>•. w
I70
Travel and Talk
tion would soon be brought within measurable dis-
tance, because the wealth evolved would be worth the
notice of the Imperial tax gatherer.
Since 1885 thousands of English tourists, finan-
ciers, and politicians have passed over the great newly
opened North-western line. They have seen with
their own eyes and been able to judge of the truth of
what I say. Such an opportunity for a Government
to draw closer the ties which bind it to one of its most
faithful and richly endowed colonies has not occurred
since the days when George III. stiffened his neck and
hardened his heart to the just demands of what are
now the United States of America. The Canadian-
Pacific offer, I am given to understand, might still be
renewed if there were the smallest disposition on the
part of the English Government to close with it.
With rich lands and a hospitable and loyal * Dominion *
on one side of the Atlantic, with starving paupers and
overcrowded cities on the other, England's motto
should be now more than ever, 'Settle and cement.'
Canada offers us her virgin wealth, her millions
of cultivable, ore-producing, and fertile territory.
* You may have it,' she says, ' almost for the asking,'
and no one takes the least notice. No one steps
forward to claim our colony for ourselves. The
Canadians want our dock labourers and our teeming
pauper families. We shut our eyes, raise the poor
rate, enlarge the workhouses, tinker up the dwellings
of the artisan, and solicit alms from the benevolent
in the winter.
I received, soon after my return in 1885, two
remarkable letters, one from Sir Charles Nicholson,
Bart, formerly Speaker of the Australian House
w
a
Montreal
171
3 dis-
th the
finan-
newly
1 with
ruth of
rnment
ts most
ccurred
eck and
rhat are
tnadian-
t still be
1 on the
with it.
ominion '
ipers and
's motto
ement.'
millions
territory,
asking,'
one steps
es. The
teeming
the poor
dvveUings
iDcnevolent
1885, two
Nicholson,
ian House
(Sydney), who knows as much as anyone about our
great southern colony, and one from the Hon. Mr.
Abbott, leading counsel to the Pacific Railway, who
knows as much as anyone about our great northern
colony. Both these criers in the wilderness said the
same thing from their different standpoints both
implicitly charge the mother country, so selfishly
wrapped up in home politics, with not knowing the
things which belong to her peace.
* There is a freshness,' writes Sir Charles Nicholson
to me, * vigour, and heartiness amongst these young
communities that you fail to find in the old European
societies. I fancy the secret of this is in a great
measure due to the fact that the men who betake
themselves to the colonics have a larger amount of
innate vigour of mind and body than the mass who
remain struggling, starving, and multiplying at such
a fearful rate in this country. When one recollects
that nearly 1,000 people are added to the population
of these little islands every day, one can only ask how
long this is to go on ? And yet sad it is to see that not
a single statesuian of atiy weigJit or character has yet
come forward, amidst the rival political factions that
now plague the world, to tell the people of the Empire,
of all classes, that the only remedy for the evils under
which they are suffering, and which are likely to go
on increasing, is emigration.^
As regards Canada (and now I turn to Mr. Abbott)
it may be asked : What is the Government expected
to do?
I reply: First, to recognise the situation; and,
secondly, to aid and abet instead of snubbing or
w.
172
Travel and Talk
ignoring any sound movement for transferring English
hands to Canadian homes. In time, no doubt, private
enterprise will rush in — probably German and French
enterprise. Many Canadian towns are now half French,
and many American towns arc half German, not to say
Chinese. The messes of political pottage for which
our party men are content to sacrifice real Imperial
interests must be regarded — as each opportunity is
allowed to slip by — as so many blots on our parlia-
mentary scutcheon. And remember, each time Canada
gets a British kick or snub of neglect. Uncle Sam roars
across the boundary : England don't care for you :
why don't you join us ? Has not Mr. Lowell himself
sung :
' God means to make this land, John,
Clear thro' from sea to sea ' ?
Ml
XLII
Mr. Abbott, in urging on a policy of immediate
emigration, innocently exposed Canada to the next
British kick in the following simple and pathetic
words contained in a letter to me :
' It must surely be interesting to farmers paying
high rents for land in England, to know that many
million acres of the best land in the world are offered
to them in fee simple, free upon settlement, in lots
of 160 acres. The Government of England must
certainly be interested in the fact that there is now
a route to Japan, China, Australia, and India, entirely
over England's own territory, as I suppose we must
consider the sea to belong to her. And merchants
and manufacturers must also be interested in the
Montreal
^73
i,v\
igUsh
rivatc
rench
rcnch,
to say
which
iperial
nity is
parHa-
J an ad a
m roars
)r you :
himself
creation of this new Canadian Pacific route, as render-
ing them, in case of war, independent of foreign
nations in transmitting their goods and receiving their
imports from those countries. The enormous magni-
tude of the work that has been done in four years and
a half may also be worth a remark, though not going
home to people's interests and pockets, as its material
advantages must do.
' From the emigrant point of view I entirely failed
to recognise the value and importance of the country
along the Canadian Pacific route until I saw it myself,
which I hope you will do next year. And if you go,
you should try to do so early in August so as to see
the crops, and the country at the best period for esti-
mating it at its true value.
' The advantages proposed to be offered to immi-
grants are very great. It is true the company them-
selves have used their lands as a basis for a bond
issue, and therefore cannot give them away ; but the
Government grants i6o acres of land, as a. free home-
stead to every bona fide settler. The idea of the
company was that the British Government should
make advances to people coming out to settle on these
lands, who would, of course, require a small capital,
say from lOo/. to 200/., in order to make an advan-
tageous beginning. To encourage such advances the
Dominion Land Act allows liens to be created on
homesteads, to secure them. Now the company pro-
posed to your Government to make such advances to
the amount of, say, a million sterling ; which advances
the company would manage and would cause to be
secured upon the homesteads, so that in the end the
advances would be repaid to the Government. This
seems to be so favourable and advantageous a mode
Ijl
■a
174
Travel and Talk
of providiiii,^ fur suri)lus population, that I can hardly
doubt that it will be sooner or later adopted, and there
would be no difficulty in arranging details in such a
manner as to make the advances as safe as could be
wished.'
And now, where is the statesman who will touch
this immense proposal for the alleviation of misery,
and the cure rather than relief of pauperism, with one
of his little fingers ? And echo answers ' where ? '
No. Canadian emigration can't be made immediately
an electioneering cry, and so it may be safely given
the go-by.
Of course, private enterprise has already struck in
to some extent. The ('anadian I'acific Company has
proved the fertility of the soil it offers by planting
experimental crops at intervals of twenty miles along
the line. Emigration has since been desultory. Ca-
nadian grain has superseded English produce, and is
in demand on account of its hard quality. Our
Government seems alive to the advantage of bring-
ing Canadian crops to British mouths. The other
experiment — in the long run infinitely cheaper — of
bringing British mouths to Canadian crops, has still
to be tried.
i :, l[
XLIII
Sir William Dawson and his charming daughter
(who married in England and has since died) visited
me at Oueen's House in 1886. The Earl of Dun-
raven, so familiar with Canada, and a mighty moose
hunter, lunched with us, and we had some most
interesting conversation about some recent discoveries
of prehistoric man. Sir William Dawson is one of
MONTRKAL
1/5
irdly
there
Lich a
Id be
toucli
liscry,
h one
icrc ? '
liatcly
given
uck in
ny has
anting
; along
'. Ca-
and is
I Our
3ring-
other
t)er — of
as still
LUghter
visited
Dun-
moose
most
overies
one of
the most delightful companions, and a scientific cice-
rone who might well be compared to the late erudite
and eloquent Sir Richard Owen or the clear and
facile Professor Sir William Flower. It has been
my privilege to number the last two amongst my
warm friends of many years' standing. To listen to
Owen in the IJritish Museum ; to Mower at the
South Kensington and in the College of Surgeons ;
to accompany Dawson through the Montreal geo-
logical and natural history galleries, have been
amongst the great privileges of my life.
In 1886 the British Association secured as their
president in Sir William Dawson certainly one of
the most sagacious, learned, and personally estimable
scientific men of the day. The following brief bio-
graphical summary may prove interesting to his
many admiring friends in England.
Sir William early accepted his vocation. As a
boy at Picton College, Nova Scotia, where he was
educated, he was devoted to the study of nature, and
was famous for his extensive collections of such
minerals, stuffed creatures, and skins of animals as
belonged to his native province. He not only accu-
mulated, but he early assimilated his knowledge. He
loved it, and one of his great educational missions in
life has been to make others love it. Needless to
say that he soon branched out into fields of original
exploration and inquiry which have made his name
famous throughout the civilised world.
He was born in 1 820. At the age of twenty-two
he fell in with Sir Charles Lyell, and in 1842 he had
■| 1
^r
L
im
•Hi
/.I
1 7^
Tkavkl and Talk
^ \
1 1
r
the j^ood fortune to be his travelling companion dur-
ing a scientific tour in Nova Scotia. They devoted
themselves especially to the carboniferous rocks and
such vestiges of the animal creation as were to be
found in them, in 1846 we find him at the Edin-
burgh University studying chemistry; and in 1850
he returned to Nova Scotia to apply his cxpci imcntal
knowledge to geology. His name is associated with
the first Normal school there, the New University of
New Ikunswick, and since 1855 with the McGill
College and University at Montreal — a truly palatial
establishment, chiefly erected by the munificence of
Mr. Redpath — over which Sir William presides as
l*rincipal, and Professor of Natural History.
No one who has had the advantage of even a
short chat with Sir William in the midst ^f his neatly
arranged and well-lighted specimens at the Montreal
museum can fail to understand the singular charm
and power which, as a teacher and lecturer, he exer-
cises over all who are desirous, or Cv^en willing, to
learn.
The most quiet and unassuming of men, as fossil
after fossil caught his eye, a kind of interior illu-
mination seemed to take place. He began leisurely,
but with a sort of mental absorption, and almost
reverence, which was most contagious, to trace back
the history of the embedded mollusc, fern, or lizard,
until the days of Creation were rolled back in our
presence, and the eye seemed to take in the majesty
of extinct forests, the primeval marshes, the tepid
seas, and tangled islands swarming with the antedilu-
vian reptiles, and immeasurable rank prairie lands
trodden by the ungainly megatherium or the prodi-
gious stag. Suddenly, with all courteous considera-
Montreal
^77
iur-
)tcd
and
) be
,din-
1850
cntal
with
ity of
xGill
ilatial
icc of
Ics as
;vcn a
neatly
Dntreal
charm
; exer-
ing, to
fossil
)r illu-
isurely,
almost
le back
lizard,
in our
Inajesty
tepid
itedilu-
lands
prodi-
isidera-
tion, would Sir William then break off, just when he
had got settled comfortably far back of the Flood
or even of Adam and ICvc, et id genus omnc, and
apologise for losing himself in his favourite medita-
tions, what time the passing visitor might be waiting
for lunch, or anxious to catch some despotic train.
Sir William, though ecjually able and interesting,
differed from Professor Owen in his scientific talk.
Owen was always consciously in personal touch with
his audience — he spoke to them ; Sir William is
more absorbed in his meditation — he speaks in their
presence. To listen to him is like listening to one
who is thinking aloud. He expects and wins from
all who are worthy to listen to him the absorbed
attention he himself brings to his subject.
Thorgh an active educational administrator, Sir
William Dawson has never for a moment relaxed his
scientific studies, and these have been from time to
time marked with many original discoveries, any one
of which would have created an ordinary student's
scientific reputation. The discovery of the Dendrer-
peton acadianiiui and the Pupa vetusta remains is
inseparably associated with his name. The Dendrer-
peton was the first reptile found in the coal formation
of America, the Pupa vetusta the first known Palaeo-
zoic land snail.
In 1863 Sir William issued his ' Air-Breathers of
the Coal Period,' which is a complete account up to
date of the fossil reptile and other land animals found
in the Nova Scotia coal. His discovery and exposi-
tion of the EozoQu Canadense was another striking
addition to science. This fossil was first proclaimed
VOL. I N
H
y
178
Travel and Talk
i'
1-
'4
to be foraminiferous by Dr. Dawson. He revised
the scientific nomenclature, for previous to this the
rocks of the Laurentian age were beh'eved to be de-
void of animal remains and called Azoic. Dr. Dawson
was now in a position to substitute the term Eozoic.
In his * Notes on the Post-pliocene of Canada,' pub-
lished in 1873, he raised the number of known species
of post-pliocene fossils from about thirty to over two
hundred. In 1882 Dr. Dawson became the first Pre-
sident of the Royal Society of Canada, and was then
created C.M.G. In 1883 he appeared at Southport
at the Briti::h Association meeting; in 1883-4 he
visited Egypt and Syria ; in 1884 he was one of the
presidents of the British Association which met in
Canada, and he then accepted the honour of knight-
hood. His later works are chiefly on carboniferous
reptiles and fossil plants.
It would be difficult to enumerate all Sir William
Dawson's published contributions to science. He has
for more than forty years been an indefatigable writer
and lecturer in Canada and the United States. He
has also lectured at our Royal Institution. Among
his better known works may be mentioned : * Hand-
book of Geography and Natural History of Nova
Scotia ;' his * Archaia,' or studies of creation in Genesis ;
his splendid work, 700 octavo pages, * Acadian Geo-
logy,' enriched by numerous drawings from his own
pencil ; and his * Dawn of Life.' Sir William early
imbibed from Sir Charles Lyell certain conservative
tendencies in science which at the meeting of the
British Association led to some controversy. His
presidential address dealt with the sea-bottom of that
vast ocean which, if it separates Canada from England,
Montreal
179
•I
iscd
the
de-
vson
lie.
pub-
ecics
two
Pre-
thcn
hport
-4 be
Df the
net in
nigbt-
ifcrous
is also the means of uniting England to her vast,
important, and most patriotic colony.
Sir William is opposed to the thorough-going Evo-
lution theories of Huxley and to the contemptuous
treatment of Bible science fashionable in advanced
scientific circles. We gather from his works, in fact,
that there is a good deal of rough truth to be found in
the general outlines of the Mosaic science. There is
much more of the reverent, reticent, cautious tone of
Darwin about Sir William than the eager, offhand
generalisation which belongs to some of Darwin's more
confident and omniscient followers. That reverent-
mindedness and suspension of judgment for which
Faraday and the late Sir William Siemens, among
others, were so conspicuous, is certainly not the least
striking characteristic of Sir William Dawson, No
man ever felt more deeply than he does that the
wisest of us are but children picking up pebbles on
the seashore of the great ocean of rime. No one ever
scrutinised nature in his laboratory with more awe, as
one who felt himself moving about in worlds not
realised. No man was ever more eager to find out ' the
invisible things of Him from the creation of the world,'
by a patient and tireless examination of ' the things
which are made.' No man has a greater and devouter
sense of the infinity of the universe, or a deeper reve-
rence for facts.
Such was the President of the British Association
at Birmingham in the year 1886; and that such
a man should have been chosen with one accord in
an age which is supposed to be, if not atheistic, at
least agnostic, is an event of good omen for the future
of science and for the religion of England.
N 2
ml
•^1
i
m
w
'i
ff
(I '
1 80
Travel and Talk
An equally good omen is it that we should be able
to cull from the greatest poet of the last half of this
century a motto which Sir William Dawson would not
be ashamed to adopt as altogether fit and pertinent
to the work of the illustrious Association over whose
deliberations he was in 1886 summoned to preside:
* Let knowledge grow from more to more,
But more of reverence in us dwell ;
That mind and soul, according well.
May make one music as before,
But vaster. . . .*
I
It
■■
ill
i8i
CHICAGO
XLIV
What is America ? — He who has once been to
America is almost certain to go again.
The Americans are drawn to the Old World, but
the Old-Worlders are drawn to the New.
The mushroom cities, the boundless prairies — now,
alas! barren of the buffalo — the untrodden moun-
tains, the lakes into which you might almost drop
the whole of England, the rivers, with invisible
shores, upon which navies and argosies can float as
on oceans, the stir and rush of a mighty cosmopolitan
population, careless of precedent, with its face set to
the future, all this intoxicates the man of * use and
wont,' the man of routine who crowns his king
regularly, swears by 5 per cent., wears a tall hat on
Sunday, and still on the whole believes in the law of
primogeniture and the House of Lords.
'M
^1
■\ 5
PI
But America ! What is America ? I have never
yet found anyone who knew. To all the world
France means Paris ; but does New York mean
America? Does Chicago, does Philadelphia, Balti-
more, Washington, New Orleans, or San Francisco,
or Sacramento ?
And how about Salt Lake City — Utah and all
its works? The people are not the same in these
m
182
Travel and Talk
I
J
: -4
widely separated states , their tastes and opinions
differ, even their marriage and drink laws vary. A vein
of corruption runs through their state and municipal
legislatures, and this is about all they have in common
except an undefined appetite for Canada and the
President ; but the more the President meddles with
the internal affairs of the States, the more evident it
is that the cohesion of the States is rather mechanical
than patriotic or politically organic. Why, the States
North and South have only just made up their minds
that, on the whole, they would postpone political
dislocation and live together ; but that vexed question
will be again on the tapt's if the President should
propose too frequently to put down local strike riots
with national troops, or go in for jingoism.
The old difficulty of holding an immense empire
or republic together, even with our modern rails and
wires, is recurring. The interests are too diverse, the
distances too immense, the sympathies too vague, the
habitual absence of all outward pressure from foreign
nations which would force political and military com-
bination, is too complete. Then the so-called * Ameri-
can ' is half Spanish here, half Irish there, diluted with
German, Swede, French, and oddly mixed in some
places, as in San Francisco, Los Angeles, and on the
South Californian frontier, v\ ith Mexican blood, and
at New Orleans with African, and up North even with
Indian, until the old settler blood from Massachusetts
and Pennsylvania is as a few drops in the cosmopolitan
ocean, and the perfume of the ' Mayflower ' is almost
lost amidst the wildly luxuriant native growths that
abound.
And still we speak of America ? Well, after all,
Chicago
183
that is right ; the Anglo element rules anyhow, even
when it is Scotch or Irish in flavour. The language
rules, whatever the accent may be, and it is even urged
that ' Americanese ' is really, both as regards the very
words as well as the twang with which they are
uttered, much more like what Elizabethan English
was than anything to be now heard in the old country
The early settlers, we arc told, brought out their
words (many of which the old country has dropped)
as well as the right way of pronouncing them, so that
it is cur English which has really changed and
degenerated, whilst Americanese is Shakespearian
from the pure wells of English undefiled !
But * Revenons nous muttons '(j/V), as poor Artemus
wrote.
XLV
My Second Voyage.— On leaving America for
England in 1885, after my excursion into Canada,
my visit to the Eastern Universities, and my delivery
of the Lowell Lectures at Boston, I fully meant to
return. But I required some sort of call. In 1893
that call came. I received one morning a strange
circular of a more or less Utopian character. It
was signed by the Rev. John Henry Barrows, a
Presbyterian minister at Chicago.
Chicago was preparing for her big World's Fair.
It was, without exaggeration, to be, in the words of
the late Mr. Barnum, ' the greatest show on airth.'
It occurred to Dr. Barrows that a * Parliament
of the World's Religions,' to meet in the heart of
Chicago, would be a suitable counterpoise or counter-
demonstration to the great Parliament of Commerce
i :
w
(1
Hlfl'
/ -^Tl;
U
flit
iij
I
1
I
• ■'ii
ji;
y
./
^
t
J
184
Travel and Talk
that was to show off its wares in the fairy city seven
miles distant on the shores of the Michigan Lake. I
was invited to be one of the Anglican delegates in
that strange Parliament — whereof more anon.
I decided to go. This was to be my second
voyage across the Atlantic, and it was to take place
just nine years after my first.
Mindful of the * Germanic ' White Star ship, and
of all the comfort provided for myself and my wife on
board that noble vessel of some 7,000 tons, I con-
cluded that the psychological moment had arrived
for paying Mr. Ismay a visit at Liverpool, so I looked
in at the White Star office. This time I was resolved
to try one of the largest ships, and to sail on the
'Majestic,' twin to the ' Teutonic,' 10,000 tons.
Mr. Ismay is a cheery man ; he evidently enjoys
the ocean wave himself, and has certainly done his
utmost to enable anyone with a reasonable stomach to
do the same.
I found Mr. Ismay seated quietly in the midst of
his official business, but courteously ready to lay
aside his pen for a few minutes. I explained that I
was just on my way to the ' White Star ' quay. After
a few words about these colossal ships — ' ocean grey-
hounds,' as they have been called —
* It is a glorious thing,' said Mr. Ismay, leaning
back in his chair, ' to battle with the elements ' (peo-
ple's views of glory, I thought, differed) 'and to
triumph over them.'
* Yes,' I repeated thoughtfully, * to triumph over
them.'
The fact is, I had never triumphed over the ele-
ments, but they had frequently triumphed over me.
,1
Chicago
i85
;even
e. I
:es in
?cond
place
D, and
/ife on
[ con-
jrivcd
looked
solved
on the
enjoys
one his
nach to
lidst of
to lay
that I
After
m grey-
eaning
' (peo-
and to
ph over
the ele-
)ver me.
I did not feel that I was going to win this time ; and
my fluttering thoughts were already out on the rolling
Atlantic. Mr. Ismay, apparently inspired by his
subject, gave me a stirring description of a cruise he
had had in a steam yacht.
* We put out in a terrific gale,' he said, cheerfully ;
* the sea mountains high. I was on the bridge along
with the captain ; never had a finer time ; glorious
sight. Arrived at Holyhead in a regular hurricane,
and soaked right through to the skin. Never felt
better in my life ! '
' It is a question of the inside,' I answered, faintly.
He saw the subject was unpleasant, and so we changed
the conversation.
' You have been connected with shipping all your
life } '
* Yes. I had largely to do with the mercantile
marine long before I became managing owner of the
Oceanic Steam Navigation Company, better known
as the " White Star Line." '
* What do you consider your distinctive feature in
relation to the Cunard, Inman, Anchor, Guion, and
other oceanic companies ? '
' I think,' said Mr. Ismay, ' it must be allowed that
we made quite a new departure in ocean travelling.
We aimed at comfort ; that was our speciality. Wc
were the first to place our saloon in the centre of the
ship, where there is least motion. We set up smoking
rooms, bath rooms, a barber's shop, unlimited supply
of fresh water, easy revolving chairs, and all sorts of
novel appointments, which have, of course, been adopted
by the other liners. No, we are not the quickest ( 1 893),
and we are not the biggest ; our tonnage is 10,000,
the Cunard goes into 12,000, and that company is
l(i
I
,■ i
', I
V
k
7^
■«■■
it
1 86
Travel and Talk
11
' ).*
the oldest, and also remains the quickest ; but our
ships have all the latest improvements, and are admi-
rably designed and built regardless of expense. The
fastest steamers are still on their trial as regards
commercial success — they arc experiments. Peril is
reduced to a minimum. We also have lost one.
The chief danger is not from icebergs, as some people
think, but from collisions with other ships.'
* If there is a rule of the road, how can this occur ? '
* Why, in a fog, or by an error in estimating the
approach or position of lights at sea. As long as men
are human. and fallible, accidents must happen ; look
at the accidents which happen on shore.'
* I notice a man died last week on board — not on
one of your ships — from sea sickness. Do you recall
any such cases ? '
' None have come to my knowledge as happening
on board, but no doubt there are deaths due to
exhaustion and inability to take food. Such fatalities
usually occur afterwards, and to people otherwise
rickety.'
* I have heard a good deal about the smaller
steamers riding over the waves with less friction than
the big ones which cut through them. What do you
say? '
* Why, undoubtedly, the bigger the ship the less
motion there is : the smaller ships take longer getting
over the water, and of course toss more. It is simply
a question of degree with the big ones, and the biggest
arc probably the least trying to bad sailors.'
* What do you think of the American ships ? '
' They formerly beat us in wooden sailers ; but
from fiscal reasons, and the American imposts, Jihey
have not as yet competed successfully with us in
^ \
Chicago
187
L our
idmi-
The
gards
eril is
; one.
people
ccur ? '
ng the
IS men
1 ; look
-not on
u recall
ppening
due to
atalities
:her\vise
smaller
ton than
do you
the less
r getting
s simply
e biggest
ps?'
ers ; but
)sts, chey
ith us in
the hirge iron craft. You ask about paddles : the
screw system as now understood is much superior.'
Mr. Ismay is still apparently in the prime of life,
with a robust constitution, and he is eminently a man
whom Liv^erpool delights to honour. In an age of
chicanery and unscrupulous speculation, his aims arc
simple and straightforward, nor is the influence he has
won with the outside public, as well as the shareholders
of the ' White Star ' and the many other companies
with which he is connected, to be wondered at.
' I confess,' he said to me,* money is not and never
has been my first object ; nor are those who think
most about it and toil most for it the happiest. I have
always had other aims in viev\% and worked for them.'
For a man so little given to talk about himself, so
unostentatious and modest, thesj words mean a good
deal ; and at the great Liverpool meeting, when his
friends, and among them the shareholders of the
'White Stcir' line, presented Mr. Ismay with a
service of plate, it came out in the speeches how well
and disinterestedly he had done his work as manag-
ing director for sixteen years. It seems that in 1881
a proposal was brought before the shareholders to
increase Mr. Ismay's managerial salary and that of
Mr. Imrie, his esteemed partner and coadjutor. This
offer was declined on behalf of the firm by Mr. Ismay,
and then the general feeling of respect took the grace-
ful form of a present of plate to Mr. Ismay, and of
two splendid pictures by the late Lord Leighton and
AlmaTademato Mr. Imrie.
' I understand,' I said to Mr. Ismay before we
parted, * that the " White Star " business is only a
part of your work?'
f ■
F
tmm
i
i88
Travel and Talk
': i ■#
' That's so ; * and after detailing a few of his occu-
pations connected with other companies, he added,
* Parliament has had no attractions for me ; but the
fact is I enjoy a quiet life. I think nature intended
me for an idle man.'
Mr. Ismay's * idleness ' consists, among other
things, in a large, enlightened, and to him highly
recreative interest in the poor, the labouring classes,
and the squalid population of the docks and slums of
Liverpool.
* I assure you,' he says, * a good deal is done in
Liverpool for the poor, and let me tell you that the
poor do a good deal for each other. The poor and
needy more than the well-to-do arc knit together, and
arc often full of goodness and helpfulness which it
is wonderful and instructive to notice.'
I asked about the condition of sailors on their
return, and about the land sharks who prey on
them.
' All that is much changed now. You see, steam
has revolutionised the social habits of sailors. Thou-
sands of them are backwards and forwards once a
month or so, who in the old days of sailing ships came
back only once in six months or a year. The conse-
quence is they can marry, are received by their wives
and families on landing, and have a definite motive for
saving their money and keeping themselves straight.
Some years ago a company with which I was asso-
ciated was started in Liverpool, which now owns fifty
public-houses on the temperance system. Some of
these are down by the docks. They afford good
lodgings and provisions for sailors, and are highly
esteemed by them. We thought we should sink our
capital, and we went into it out of philanthropic rather
Chicago
189
occu-
dded,
It the
ended
other
highly
:lasscs,
urns of
lone in
hat the
Dor and
ner, and
vhich it
on their
prey on
;e, steam
Thou-
s once a
lips came
ic conse-
Lcir wives
notive for
straight,
was asso-
Dvvns fifty
Some of
brd good
ire highly
d sink our
>pic rather
than commercial motives ; but wcgot our 10 per cent.
— the thing is a great success.'
Another bit of Mr. Ismay's ' idleness ' is the Liver-
pool training ship ' Indefatigable.' This brings him
directly into contact with the waifs and strays of the
city — their haunts and their families. Boys are taken
at the age of twelve, and receive a thorough training
for the national mercantile marine navy. The annual
working and expenses average 5,000/. a year, defrayed
by voluntary subscriptions, and the treble benefit — to
the boys, the town, and the mercantile navy — is well
worth all the money. But Mr. Ismay's * idleness '
seems mixed up with his office work in the most
genial manner, for while I was with him — wasting his
valuable time — there came in messengers and letters,
some of which he handed to me, referring to anything
but strict business : benefactions, requests, congratu-
lations, from which I inferred — and I do not think
that I am far wrong — that in Liverpool, at least, Mr.
Ismay is the friend of everybody, and everybody is
his friend ; still, as I was just going across, I should
have felt more completely in sympathy with him if
he had not called the equinoctial gales ' a little blow,'
and declared that he enjoyed himself vastly drenched
to the skin and hanging on to the bridge of a steamer
in a hurricane.
Since my conversation with Mr. Ismay in 1885,
besides other big ships the ' Teutonic,' the ' Majestic,'
and the ' Georgic ' have been launched. The
* Georgic ' is the largest carrying steamer afloat
(1896), measuring 557 ft. il^ in. in length, with a
displacement of 20,000 tons, and a dead weight of
12,000 tons. She has twin screws and a double set
V
tr.
t'l
^
190
Trav?:i. and Talk
I I
of triple expansion engines. The public ought to be
satisfied.
One word on supply. 1 could wish that some
system were devised by which the store of cock-
roaches and lavish waste of food on shipboard could
be diminished. It wants a woman to do it. No man
ever circumvented the rapid flea, the burly and pro-
lific beetle, nor probably did ever man compass the
full problem of a shilling's-worth for a shilling, on
which turn the true economics of housekeeping, and
why not shipkeeping } It wants :i woman to ob-
serve, to re-utilisc, to dovetail, and to conserve, and
why should not some master mind set an example
to other lines and create a new profession for women,
instead of allowing such a quantity of good food to
be flung to the fishes }
XLVI
On Board the ' Majestic,' September 1893. —
Fourteen hundred souls afloat — packed like herrings .'*
Not at all. I am one of them, and here I sit in a
gorgeous library, 30 feet long and 20 feet broad,
furnished with gilt oak and marqueterie writing
tables and bookshelves, and there is not a soul to be
seen. We are, in fact, on board the * Majestic,' bound
for New York, twin ship to the ' Teutonic ' (White Star
Line), which excited the German Emperor's special
admiration when he learned that in an incredibly
short time this gigantic liner could be converted into
a warship, and placed at an)' moment at the disposal
of the Government. For the time being the arts of
peace prevail — especially the gentle art of dining.
We sit down — 287 of us — in the state saloon three
t
rriicAc.o
191
to be
some
cock-
could
o man
d pro-
Lss the
ng, on
ig, and
to ob-
ve, and
xample
women,
food to
1893.—
errings ?
sit in a
i broad,
writing
oul to be
|c/ bound
hite Star
3 special
ncredibly
rted into
disposal
he arts of
3f dining.
oon three
times a day ; 92 1 steerage passengers and 209
second class and 350 crew do the same in their
respective quarters.
The consumption on board this floating hotel
seems to be something appalling. All do not eat as
much as the boy who sits opposite me, who bolts
porridge, mut<-on chops, ham and eggs, sausages,
melons, and coffee for breakfast alone, with tlic
rapacity of a shark, and keeps it up at each meal ;
but still, we do pretty well. People whu suppose
that sea-sickness paralyses the stomach may be right
in theory, but I will trouble them to explain tlic
following simple statistics !
We demolish daily (including waste) i ton beef,
i^ ton potatoes, 425 lb. mutton, 200 head of poultry,
1,000 eggs, 100 lb. ham, 200 lb. butter, a whole
Covent Garden of fruit, tons of bread and vegetables.
Tea and coffee — 35,000 gallons of water seem enough
for the voyage — but I draw a veil over the consump-
tion of other fluids, all of which seem to cheer, and
some of which have been known to inebriate. I went
through the steerage quarters with the captain one day.
Lavish profusion seems the rule, and everywhere clean-
liness, comfort, and content. Of the vexed question
of waste, I shall speak anon. Many of these poor
people have never fared so well before, and may never
fare so well again. Their diversions, visible from the
upper deck, are varied and peculiar. Men dance with
men, and women with women, till the strain upon
human nature is too great, and the couples re-assort
themselves ; then there is a rush for the pretty girls,
who after a day or two are usually found somewhat
apart behind kegs, ropes, or tarpaulin, with their
favourite swains, by a process of natural selection.
1
' i
Ilii
'
i^^
mim
,1 «
192
Travel and Talk
The same sort of thing goes on up above. The
English girls generally sit about on deck chairs till
imperceptibly congenial associates gravitate towards
them. The American girls are much more frank.
They are all over the place, and spend whole morn-
ings at the less frequented end of the ship, with the
men, not who select them, but whom tJiey seem to
select It is dangerous to draw national distinctions ;
but, were I asked, I should say that the English rule
was to every man a damsel or two, whilst the Ameri-
can system seemed to be to every damsel a man or two.
Apart from the deck recreations of ring-throwing
and perambulation, reading and flirting, the voyage is
monotonous, but not dull. A whale spouts, a school
of dolphins or porpoises leap. Here we are on the
most densely crowded ocean track — the ocean Strand,
the Atlantic Oxford Street — but so vast is the space
that a whole day passes and no ship is seen on the
horizon. Yesterday a large French steamer went by
and signalled * Have you seen any ice ? ' We signalled
back * AW That is a fai*' specimen of ocean conver-
sation. But being 1,558 of all sorts and conditions
of men, women, and children, we are not dull.
At nightfall 1,600 electric lamps make our ship
a floating blaze of light. The deck is draped with
flags, and beneath a wide awning a random dance is
started to the sound of three violins.
Our last evening was devoted to music and philan-
thropy. Captain Parsell invited me to preside over
the meeting — the duties of which consisted in sitting
in front of a large union-jack cushion, and announcing
the various singers and reciters who took part in
an entertainment on behalf of certain schools for sea-
Chicago
193
The
■s till
jvards
frank,
morn-
,h the
em to
:tions ;
;h rule
\meri-
or two.
irowing
Dyage is
I school
on the
Strand,
Ke space
on the
went by
signalled
I conver-
jnditions
1.
our ship
ped with
dance is
id philan-
side over
in sitting
inouncing
part in
s for sea-
men's orphan children in Liverpool and New York.
Most of the state-room passengers attended, and a col-
lection was taken up by six enterprising young ladies,
who boldly sallied forth, and seai ^hed the deck and
the smoking room, so that, let us hope, no one got off.
The collection amounted to 50/., and as the same
thing is done on every White Star voyage, these
deserving charities ought to score. I am told that at
times the amount of talent on board is startling. I
was rather startled by its absence. I will mention no
names, because everyone did his best, and, as the
itinerant preacher justly observed, ^angels can't do no
more!
My humble tribute and respects as a passenger to
Captain Parsell, late of the ' Majestic ' and most of the
other White Star ships for twenty years back : A
genial host indeed, with a smile and a word for all,
and tea parties for the ladies every afternoon — some-
times he is to be seen dancing the children, even kiss-
ing the babies, lending a kindly ear to a steerage
emigrant's complaint, going his merry rounds of in-
spection twice a day, with an eagle eye for order, and
such a nose for a smell, and a strict disciplinarian
withal — a man of law and order, half-philosopher,
half-patriarch, and whole sea-captain.
Only those who go down to the sea in ships know
how much the content, ease, and salubrity and good
morale of the voyage depend on the character and the
manner of the captain. Captain Parsell is not only
respected, he is beloved by all, and, as Mr. Toole
would say, * sarves him right.' We came in sight of
shore on our sixth morning. The sumptuous colla-
tion called breakfast is once more served — in vain for
VOL. I O
vw
tl
ij/^^i-*
am
I ; '
I '
194
Travel and Talk
one. I am glad to say that poor worm Nature has
at last turned. T/ie boy has ceased to eat.
Vox once New York was not to detain me. My
kind hostesses the Misses Storm, step-daughters of my
good friend Dr. Guilbert, received us most hospitably
for a few days. I preached (for the second time) on
Sunday for Dr. Huntington in Grace Church, and
then, accompanied by my wife, pushed on to the city
of the World's Fair and the World's Parliament of
Religions.
XLVII
Reflections. — It is wonderful how much better
cities are for being burned down occasionally. The
burning of Rome under Nero ; of London under
Charles II. ; and of Chicago under President Buchanan
— all go to show how excellent a thing it is to sweep
away a mass of old wooden tenements crowded to-
gether in narrow streets, and erect in their places
stately edifices of brick and stone.
Mr. Stead has asked, If Christ came to Chicago,
what would He be likely to say? And Mr. Stead
has answered that question in his own characteristic
manner. My own impression, after having been there,
is that if Christ came to Chicago, He would say neither
more nor less than He would say if He came to London,
Paris, Munich, Berlin, or any other of our great so-
called Christian cities. I don't believe that Chicago
is one whit worse. The real difference between
Chicago or any of our modern cities and the Sodoms
and Gomorrahs of the Old World is not that the crimes
and vices are absent from the new cities which were
rampant in the old, but that there was once no ap-
r
Chicago
195
; has
My
of my
itably
le) on
I, and
le city
ent of
t better
y. The
, under
ichanan
sweep
rded to-
places
hicago,
. Stead
icteristic
en there,
y neither
London,
jreat so-
Chicago
between
Sodoms
tie crimes
lich were
e no ap-
preciable public opinion against these corruptions,
whereas now Mr. Stead denounces them without being
immediately put to death. Ay, and thousands of
clergy and philanthropists are engaged before the eyes
of an admiring world in an active crusade against Tam-
many rings, prostitution and cruelty. Impure prac-
tices which in the Old World were regarded as sympa-
thetic and even graceful weaknesses are now punished
with penal servitude. Bribery for political purposes
or in the law courts is actionable. M.P.'s are habitually
unseated, and judges are permanently disgraced, for
what in old times was a mere matter of routine. I
am an optimist, I know : were I not, I could not bear
to live in such a world as this, but I believe in the
steady amelioration of it. I will not continue this
line of thought. Suffice it to say that in Chicago, as
in New York and London, there are Christian in-
fluences at work which, like leaven in the lump, are
surely if slowly permeating the whole mass. I have
drawn attention to this in detail elsewhere (' The
Broad Church,' * Is the Imitation of Christ possible? *
&c.).
Certainly, if Christ had come to Chicago in 1893,
and entered the Hall of Columbus during a sitting of
the Parliament of Religions, He would have beheld a
spectacle which His life and teaching has alone made
possible.
As a rule, whenever Christians assemble together to
debate their differences, even now they almost come to
blows, and formerly they used to burn each other. But
here at last in Chicago, in the year of our Lord 1893
under a Christian presidency, Hindu, Parsee, Chinese
Cingalese, Catholic, and Protestant met together for
the first time in history to rehearse their beliefs in-
■ ;l
o 2
„ml,
'1 I
196
Travel and Talk
stead of to harp on their differences ; to affirm, instead
of to deny ; to construct, instead of to destroy.
Although the notion that such a gathering was
merely an attempt to Barnumise reh'gion in the in-
terests of the World's Fair, is a view eminently cha-
racteristic of the insular conceit and ignorance of the
British clergy, yet the most enlightened and far-
seeing ecclesiastic could hardly have anticipated the
majestic proportions which the Religious Parliament
was destined to assume, and probably the acute Pope
Leo XIII. alone amongst the rulers of Christendom
rightly gauged the importance of the Parliament and
the necessity of the Roman Catholic Church being
properly represented there.
In reality the Parliament had nothing whatever
to do with the great show seven miles away. Its
deliberations belonged to a very different atmosphere ;
and certainly there was no remote touch of the In-
dustrial Exhibition or the * Plaisance ' about it, except
the crowds that swarmed to its sittings.
Let me try, ere the impressive vision fades entirely
from my mental retina, to recall a glimpse of one of
those memorable and spectacular debates.
XLVIII
The Parliament. — In the centre of the great
material, pork-purveying, money-grubbing city of Chi-
cago — seven miles from the World's Fair — is opened
the Hall of Columbus, where i/iree times a day an
excited crowd scrambles for the 3,000 seats, whilst
hundreds are on each occasion daily excluded, and
this continues for sixteen days without abatement.
Chicago
197
:ead
was
e in-
ch a-
)f the
i far-
id the
Linent
Pope
;ndom
at and
being
,atever
,y. Its
sphere ;
the In-
, except
entirely
" one of
he great
y of Chi-
s opened
a day an
ts, whilst
ided, and
ement.
An Episcopal bishop or a Presbyterian minister
is in the chair. As I sit on the platform I can see
through a window the dense crowds waiting outside
who will never get in.
At a signal all doors are closed, and the half-
hour papers and speeches, * Theology of Judaism,'
* Hinduism,' 'Existence of God,' 'Immortality,' &c.,
follow in quick succession. The Archbishop of Zante,
in flowing robes, gives an address on the Greek
Church ; a Catholic bishop, Cardinal Gibbons, shows
the needs of man supplied by the Catholic Church ;
the eloquent mystic Mazoomda in excellent English
pours forth a eulogy on the Bramo-Somaj ; the
Archimandrite from Damascus, who boasts that he
has never spent a penny, not only addressed the meet-
ing, but sat every day — sometimes, it is true, asleep
— through all the speeches. The names of Canon
(now Dean) Fremantle, Professor Max Miiller, Profes-
sor Henry Drummond, Lyman Abbott, Dr. Momerie,
and the leading lights of all the American universities,
sufficiently show the representative and influential
support given to the Religious Parliament ; but to see
the absorbed attention of these Chicago crowds day
after day riveted on the discussion of abstruse
religious and theological questions was a more im-
pressive sight even than the Orientals in scarlet and
orange-coloured robes and white turbans, or the
galaxy of distinguished speakers and teachers whose
names are known throughout the civilised world.
Nothing succeeds like success, and all of us
who attended these earnest and enthusiastic meet-
ings seemed to feel that the Chicago religious
demonstration, with its cosmopolitan cry for unity
f^ I
i.
!l
n
ik«ff *'
fii
198
Travel and Talk
and its practical plan for toleration, would leave a
mark upon Christendom resembling, though differing
from, the new departure created by the Protestant
Reformation.
In listening to the eloquent Dharmapala of Cey-
lon, and the subtle and incisive utterances of the
gorgeously robed Swami (Master) VivekAnanda, it
dawned upon many for the first time that so much
high Christianity having been taught before Christ
did not cheapen the Christian religion, but merely
pointed to the Divine source from which both it and
every other devout and noble teaching has come.
Clearer and clearer every day, as we listened to
the accredited teachers of the world's religions, did
we perceive the everlastingly recurrent ideas, pure
and simple, which underlie and vitalise all religious
systems — God, the Soul, Sacrifice, Revelation, Divine
Communion — clearer every day seemed to stand out
the supremacy of the Christian ideal, and the unique
work and personality of Jesus. A few notes of
discord served only to throw up into higher relief
the predominant keynote of brotherhood. The
Rev. Joseph Cook, of Boston, or, as some called
him, the Rev. * Cocksure ' Cook, in proclaiming his
' Christian certainties,' exhibited an almost archi-
episcopal scorn of, and indifference to, all other cer-
tainties and religions, but he carried little weight —
except that of his own dogmatism, which nearly sank
him. Another gentleman raised a storm by intimating
that polygamy was by no means an unmitigated evil.
He was nevertheless listened to and loudly applauded
at the close of his bold defence of Islamism.
Vivekananda, the popular Hindu monk, whose
n
kV
Chicago
199
ve a
^ring
stant
Ccy-
)f the
da, it
much
Christ
nerely
it and
le.
led to
ns, did
s, pure
iligious
Divine
ind out
unique
otes of
r relief
The
called
|ning his
archi-
;her ccr-
veight —
irly sank
timating
atcd evil,
pplauded
k, whose
physiognomy bore the most striking resemblance
to the classic face of the Buddha, denounced our
commercial prosperity, our bloody wars, and our
religious inconsistency, declaring that at such a price
the ' mild Hindu ' would have none of our vaunted
civilisation. The recurrent and rhetorical use of the
phrase * mild Hindu ' produced a very singular im-
pression upon the audience, as the furious monk
waved his arms and almost foamed at the mouth.
' You come,' he cried, * with the Bible in one hand and
the conqueror's sword in the other — you, with your
religion of yesterday, to us, who were taught thousands
of years ago by our Richis precepts as noble and lives
as holy as your Christ's. You trample on us and
treat us like the dust beneath your feet. You destroy
precious life in animals. You are carnivores. You
degrade our people with drink. You insult our
women. You scorn our religion — in many points
like yours, only better, because more humane. And
then you wonder why Christianity makes such slow
progress in India. I tell you it is because you are
not like your Christ, whom we could honour and
reverence. Do you think if you came to our doors
like Him, meek and lowly, with a message of love,
living and working and suffering for others, as He
did, we should turn a deaf ear t Oh, no ! Wc should
receive Him and listen to Him, as we have done
our own inspired Richis ' (teachers). I consider
that Vivekananda's personality was one of the
most impressive, and his speech one of the most
eloquent speeches which dignified the great congress.
This remarkable person appeared in England in the
autumn of 1895, and although he led a very retired
life, attracted numbers of people to his lodgings, and
t i(!
\\
I.I
S \
'ill
I 'I
r-
I! •
I
200
Travel and Talk
created everywhere a very deep impression. He
seemed completely indifferent to money, and lived
only for thought. He took quite simply anything
that was given him, and when nothing came he went
without, yet he never seemed to lack anything ; he
lived by faith from day to day, and taught Yogi
science to all who would listen, without money and
without price. His bright orange flowing robe and
white turban recalled forcibly the princely Magians
who visited the birthplace of the Divine Babe. The
Orientalists at the Congress supported each other
admirably, not only from a scenic, but also from a
controversial point of view.
Dharmapala, the Buddhist ascetic, in white robes
and jet-black hair, followed Vivekananda, and, speak-
ing in the same sense, denounced the missionaries.
This brought up a gentleman in Chinese costume,
an English missionary, who spoke up for his class with
great ability and fire, intimating at the same time that
the missionaries were far in advance of the missionary
societies who sent them out. These, he said, were
often narrow and intolerant ; but the true Christian
missionary knew how to value the native religions,
and went out, not to denounce them, but to preach
what was positive in his own, and to help the people
to better knowledge and nobler lives. His class
were, he declared, as a rule, not the idiots and self-
indulgent idlers that had been described, but God-
fearing and self-sacrificing men.
All the Orientalists fell bitterly on the pork
butcher of Chicago, and on meat-eating generally.
' If you cannot give life,' said Mazoomda, ' at least.
'i
Chicago
201
He
lived
hing
went
r ; he
Yogi
' and
: and
igians
The
other
rom a
2 robes
speak -
Dnaries.
Dstumc,
iss with
me that
jsionary
d, were
iristian
ehgions,
preach
2 people
is class
and self-
)Ut God-
the pork
enerally.
' at least,
for pity's sake, do not take it.' Their utterances,
however, failed to bear conviction to pig-killing,
sausage-loving Chicago.
But on the whole, the message to the world from
the World's Parliament of Religions has been peace
to all that are near, and all that are afar off.
Indeed, it is time to proclaim the essential unity
of all religions — they conflict only in their accidents.
The * broken lights ' bear witness to the true Light
which lighteth every man that cometh into the world
—nay, are parts of that Light as much as the colours
in the prism are parts of the sunlight. Henceforth
to accept Christ the rejection of all the teachers that
went before Him is not necessary, and to receive
Christianity need not carry with it the dogma that all
other religions are in all parts false.
Last, not least, people may feel together even
when they cannot think or believe alike, and there
may be * difference of administration,' and yet ' the
same spirit.' The brotherhood of man transcends all
the ' isms,' even as Christ is greater than Christianity,
and Religion than the Churches.
These are some of the voices from Chicago, which
no scorn of the world can daunt, and no indifference of
the Church will be able to silence.
XLIX
My Speech. — The humble part which I took in
these deliberations was essentially unpolemical. I de-
sired that this should be so, and the President readily
acquiesced. I spoke upon the connection between
religious emotion and music, the subject having a
'I
l!l
\ '< I
• t
1f j!
I'm
I
1
202
Travel and Talk
flavour of * Music and Morals,' the book which people
in America seemed most to connect with my name.
It wah on the morning of September 20, about
midday ; there was a lull in the proceedings ; some
speaker had failed, which brought on my turn sooner
than I had expected.
I cannot pretend that I was unprepared ; on the
contrary, I had ready the materials of a very care-
fully prepared speech, and had even brought some
notes, but the sight of a dense mass of 3,000 people
spreading away in front of me, and to right and left,
at once made me feel that they and not my notes
required all my attention. I therefore requested that
the reading desk might be removed, the platform in
front of the stage cleared of chairs, so as to allow me
to move more freely from side to side, and I then felt
that I had gained the most favourable conditions for
securing the attention of what was to me the most
interesting and cosmopolitan audience which I had
ever addressed, or perhaps shall ever address, in my
life.
The speech was reported verbatim. I give it at
full length at the end of this (Chicago) section as an
excellent specimen of American reporting. I was
enabled to watch the process from beginning to end,
and it was certainly smart.
This is how it was done. After delivering my
speech I went straightto the type- writingoffice. There
I found the shorthand writer already busy dictating
his hieroglyphics to a type-writing young lady : she
worked with the celerity of steam, and figured away
almost as fast as the shorthand man spoke. I sat at
another table ; and as the wet sheets rolled off the
k^'
2oplc
mc.
ibout
some
ooncr
in the
care-
some
people
id left,
' notes
sd that
Drm in
,ow me
len felt
ons for
e most
I had
in my
ve it at
1 as an
I was
to end,
ing my
There
ictating
dy : she
id away
I sat at
off the
Chicago
203
machine the)' were handed to mc to read and correct,
and it was all I could do to keep pace with my co-
operators.
So we three worked side by side simultaneously
for about an hour. I had ceased speaking about one
o'cl©ck, and soon after two a speech which took about
three-quarters of an hour in delivery was in the
printer's hands. So close was the reporting that I
found hardly anything to correct.
The next morning it appeared in the leading
journal verbatim, and in the place of honour, with m)'
portrait, a truly hideous presentment, more or less
sketchy and impressionist in style, straggling over half
a page. At first I felt some slight sense of injury, so
little 'speculation ' in the eye, so little 'genius and
sensibility/ in fact a complete absence of — indeed,
no suggestion or hint of that striking exp — that
powerful combin — But at this moment a glance at
some of the other portraits (all on a much smaller
scale, miJii solatium !) reconciled me. I felt positively-
grateful ; I had indeed been dealt tenderly with after
all. I said to myself, * Certainly there are guys and
guys ! ' I pardoned the odious leer, the exaggerated
signs of premature decay, I was prepared to meet
the condolences of my friends calmly with a shrug
of indifference, as if such trifles affected me not a
jot — of course they would all feel that so hideous and
degrading a misrepresentation of my physiognomy
was simply amusing, nothing more — when lo ! the first
acquaintance I meet thrusts the paper into my face.
' Seen your portrait .'* Isn't it splendid ? Very image of
you ! ' I stared at him for a moment, then I laughed
feebly, and passed on ; I felt sorry for him — I saw that
his intellect was impaired.
:|f
I
t ;
: \ mi
If
I
i
:|.
204
Travel and Talk
There were a few suggestive incidents at the
Parh'ament from time to time which it would have
been my duty to pay more attention to had I been a
local journalist. It was very amusing, for instance, to
hear the advanced Japanese theological professor get
up and deliver a speech on the retrograde timidity of
the English clergy, and point out for their benefit
that the Japanese, having read Colenso, * Essays and
Reviews,' Sidgwick, Herbert Spencer and John Stuart
Mill years ago, had entirely remodelled their Chris-
tian theology in accordance with the most advanced
standards of modern criticism, philosophy, and science.
The enlightened scholar from Japan seemed to look
down on our routine theologians with indulgent pity,
as upon people still wandering in Cimmerian dark-
ness ! He couldn't imagine why when things had been
shown to be untrue or unreasonable they should still
be seriously taught by the clergy. This quite unex-
pected attitude on the part of one who might have
been expected to play second fiddle to the accredited
theologians of the Old World very much tickled the
audience, and the Japanese professor was applauded
to the echo. I was invited to reply to him ; but as I
should have only been a sort of Balaam, I thought it
in better taste to hold my tongue, especially as what
the gentleman from the land of the Mikado advanced
was not only very sensible but unfortunately very
true.
The Roman Catholic Bishop's attitude was strik-
ing and effective. He appeared in full canonicals
at the opening, walked in procession, attended the
Parliament once, delivered his infallible message from
his infallible Church, and then went off to the World's
,H
^ I
the
lavc
:n a
e,to
get
:y of
ncfit
; and
tuavt
:hris-
mccd
iencc.
) look
I pity,
dark-
i been
d still
unex-
t have
-edited
edthe
auded
ut as I
ught it
what
vanced
very
LS
LS
strik-
lonicals
ded the
^e from
World's
Chicago
205
Fair to enjoy himself, and we saw him no more. His
absence was quite as impressive in its way as his
meteoric presence. He had told us the truth and
departed. It could not be of the smallest interest to
him or the Pope his master to know what anyone
else might have to say about religion.
I did not attend all the sittings of the great
Parliament. I was sorry to have missed Dr. Momerie's
paper, but I subsequently heard him read it at a
friend's house. He seems to me to possess an un-
rivalled power of clear statement, and he is certainly
a man whom the Church of England ought not to
dispense with, although he has shown some disposition
to dispense with the Church of England. That as he
grows old (like Dr. Johnson) he may grow peaceable,
is the devout hope of all Dr. Momerie's well-wishers
and admirers, and they are legion throughout England
and the colonies. Dr. Momerie did me the honour
of listening both to my address in the Parliament and
to the sermon I preached in Chicago. He himself
was not only a frequent speaker in the Parliament, but
preached to very large congregations in the city
before my arrival. Momerie in London is a sort of
Heber Newton. Fortunately the present Bishop of
London (Dr. Temple) is not a whit behind the enlight-
ened and kindly Dr. Henry Potter, Bishop of New
York, in discretion and statesmanlike forbearance, and
should these two up-to-date prelates still continue to
preside over the sees of London and New York respec-
tively, there is every probability that both Momerie
and Heber Newton will continue to find a sphere within
the pale of episcopacy.
The gravest blunder committed by the Parlia-
ment of Religions was the exclusion of the Mormons.
■ '.,
mi
i
it
N^^*^
206
Travel and Talk
A stout protest was raised against a step so arbitrary
and out of harmony with the spirit of the Parlia-
ment ; but for once Dr. Barrows was overruled, and
the Hall of Columbus was shut against the followers
of Joseph Smith. Many people thought this a little
rough on the Mormons, especially as they had built
Salt Lake City, colonised Utah, and shown them-
selves amenable to United States law ; whereas the
Mahomedans, who had neither renounced polygamy
nor done anything for the United States, were received
with open arms and heard with applause. So at the
eleventh hour the Mormons were offered the privilege
of reading a paper in one of the sectional rooms, which
they firmly but respectfully declined to do ; and this
most characteristic and phenomenal of all the religious
movements of the nineteenth century was simply
dropt out at the great representative Parliament of
the World's Religions.
But on the whole wonderfully few mistakes were
made, and next to no religious bigotry cropped up.
Speech [reported] delivered at the Parll\ment of
Religions in the Hall of Columbus, September 20,
1893.
* For more than twenty years,' said Dr. Barrows,
in introducing Rev. H. R. Haweis, of London, * I have
been familiar with the name and writings of the
honoured English clergyman who is now to speak to
us. He is one of the many representatives that we
have from the British Empire, one of the few we have
rary
.rlia-
and
wers
little
built
hem-
LS the
gamy
:eived
at the
vilege
which
d this
ligious
simply
lent of
;s were
d up.
ENT OF
IBER 20,
;arrows,
' I have
of the
Deak to
I that we
^e have
Chicago
207
in person from England itself. We are deiif^hted that
he has come to us. We believe that he will be heard
not only on this occasion, but in the churches of our
city and on other occasions here during the progress
of this Parliament.'
Mr. Haweis then rose, and spoke as follows :
' It would be very hard for me to try and live or
speak up to the kind words of your president. You
are very judicious to give me some approval before
I begin speaking, because it is impossible to know
what your feelings may be when I have done.
(Laughter.)
' My topic is " Music, Emotion, and Morals." I
find that the connection between music and morals
has been very much left out in the cold here, and yet
music is the golden art. You have heard many grave
things debated in this room during the last three or
four days. Let mc remind you that the connection
between the arts and morals is also a very grave
subject. Well, here we are, ladies and gentlemen, living
in the middle of the golden age of music, perhaps
\ ithout knowing it. What would you not have
given to see a day of Raphael or a day of Pericles,
you who are living in this great Christian age ? Well,
as the age of Augustus v/as the golden age of Roman
literature, so the age of Pericles was that of sculpture,
the Medicean the age of painting ; and the golden age
of music is doubtless the Victorian or the Star-spangled
Banner age. (Applause.)
MUSIC A GROWING ART
* Music is the only living, growing art. All other
arts have been discovered. An art is not a growing
li
l\
Ui
t V
' \
n
ll
•\
208
Travel and Talk
art when all its elements have been discovered. You
paint now, and you combine the discoveries of the past ;
you discover nothing ; you build now, and you combine
the researches and the experiences of the past ; but
you cannot paint better than Raphael ; you cannot
build more beautiful cathedrals than the cathedrals of
the middle ages ; but music is still a growing art. Up
to yesterday everything in music had not been ex-
plored. I say we are in the golden age of music,
because we can almost within the memory of a man
touch hands with Mozart, Beethoven, and Wagner.
We place them upon pedestals side by side with
Raphael and with Michael Angelo, yet we have no
clear idea of the connection between the art of music
and morals, although we place great musicians like
Beethoven on a level ^nth the great sculptors, poets,
and painters. Now let me tell you that you have no
business to spend much time or money or interest upon
any subject unless you can make out a connection
between the subject and morals and the conduct of
life ; unless you can give an art or occupation an
ethical and moral basis. You do spend a great deal
of money upon music. You pay fabulous prices to
engage gigantic orchestras, you give much time
to music ; it lays hold of you, it fascinates and
enslaves you, yet perhaps you have to confess to
yourself that you have no real idea of the connec-
tion between music and the conduct of life. An
Italian professor said to me the o'cher day, '* Pray, what
is the connection between music and morals ? " He
then began to scoff a little at the idea chat music was
anything but a pleasant way of wiling away time,
but he had no idea there was any connection be-
tween music and the conduct of life.
m
You
past ;
Tibine
; but
:annot
rals of
t. Up
m ex-
music,
a man
Wagner,
e with
ave no
■ music
ins like
;, poets,
have no
jst upon
^nection
duct of
tion an
at deal
)rices to
h time
tes and
nfess to
connec-
e. An
ay, what
?" He
lusic was
ay time,
tion be-
ClIICAGO
209
CONNECTION BETWEEN MUSIC AND MORALS
' Now if, after to-day, anyone asks you what is the
connection between music and morals, I will give it
to you in a nutshell. This is the connection : Music
is the language of emotion. I suppose you all admit
that music has an extraordinary power over your feel-
ings, and therefore music is connected with emotion.
Emotion is connected with thought. Some kind of
feeling or emotion underlies all thought, which from
moment to moment flits through your mind. There-
fore music is connected with thought. Thought is
connected with action. Most people think before they
act — or are supposed to, at any rate, and I must give
you the benefit of the doubt. Thought is connected
with action, action deals with conduct, and the sphere
of conduct is connected with morals. Therefore,
ladies and gentlemen, if music is connected with emo-
tion, and emotion is connected with thought, and
thought is connected with action, and action is con-
nected with the sphere of conduct, or with morals,
things which are connected with the same must be
connected with one another, and therefore music must
be connected with morals.
* Now, the real reason why we have coupled all
these three words — music, emotion, morals — together,
is because emotion is connected with morals. You
will all admit that if your emotions or feelings were
always wisely directed, life would be more free from
the disorders which disturb us. The great disorders
of our age come not from the possession of emotional
feeling, but from its abuse, its misdirection, waste or
perversion. Once discipline your emotions, once get
VOL. I P
• i
.
\k
\
%
I !
I !
i
1 1
i
m
y
S I.
j
f, \\
w
2IO
Travel and Talk
a good quantity of that steam power which we call
feeling or emotion and drive it in the right channel,
and life becomes noble, fertile and harmonious.
'Now, if there is this close connection between
emotion or feeling and the conduct of life or morals,
what the connection between emotion and morals is
that also must be the character of the connection be-
tween music, which is the art medium of emotion, and
morals.
? f
THOUGHT WITHOUT FEELING IS DEAD
* But there are a great many people who will say,
" After all, that art which deals with emotion is less
respectable than an art which deals with thought." I
might be led here to ask, " What is the connection be-
tween emotion and thought .'' " But that would carry
me too far. In a word I may say that thought with-
out feeling is dead, being alone. You may have a good
thought, but if you have not the steam power of emo-
tion or feeling at the back of it what will it do for you ?
A steam engine may be a very good machine, but it
must have the steam. And so our life wants emotion
or feeling before we can carry out any of our thoughts
and aspirations. Indeed, strange is this wonderful
inner life of emotion with which music converses first
hand, most intimately, without the mediation of
thoughts or words. So strange is this inward life of
emotion, so powerful and important is it, that it some-
times even transcends thought. We rise out of thought
into emotion, for emotion not only precedes, it also
transcends thought ; emotion carries on and completes
our otherwise incomplete thoughts and aspirations.
(Applause.)
...^I
Chicago
211
I call
inncl,
Avcen
orals,
•als is
)n be-
n, and
ill say,
is less
ht." I
ion be-
d carry-
it with-
; a good
if emo-
r you ?
, but it
motion
oughts
nderful
Ises first
tion of
life of
tt some-
Ithought
I, it also
mpletes
lirations.
' Tell me, when does the actor culminate ? When
he is pouring forth an eloquent diatribe ? When he is
uttering the most glowing words of Shakespeare ? No.
But when all words fail him and when he stands apart
with flashing eye and quiv'ering lip and heaving chest,
and allows the impotence of exhausted symbolism to
express for him the crisis of his inarticulate emotion.
Then we say the actor is sublime, and emotion has
transcended thought. (Applause.)
* Let me now ask, why has emotion or feeling got a
bad name? Because emotion is so often misdirected,
so often wasted, so often stands for mere gush with-
out sincerity, and has no tendency to pass on into
action. Hence the lady in Dickens who was carried
home in a flood of tears and a sedan chair, and others
who have the power of turning on the water-works at
any moment. '* Tears, idle tears." Tears which fall
easily and for no adequate cause. We do not respect
them, but there is no genuine emotion at their back.
There arc men who will swear to you eternal friendship.
You would think these men's feelings were at the
boiling point, but when }'ou ask them to back their
emotion with one hundred dollars, you find that their
emotion is of no use whatever. That is the reason
why emotion has got a bad name.
* But believe me, ladies and gentlemen, nothing
good and true was ever carried out in this world with-
out emotion. The power of emotion, ay, of emotion
through music, on politics and patriotism ; the power
of emotion, ay, emotion through music upon religion
and morals — that, in a nutshell, will be the remainder
of my discourse. What does a statesman do when he
wants to carry a great measure through our Parlia-
ment or your House of Representatives ? He stands
I' 2
ii
.1
t ,H
k^
|i ^^
' N
212
Travel and Talk
i^ r
i|i
1 I
1
!
1 !
1
s :
hL
i
up and says, " I want to pass this law," but nobody
will attend to him in Parliament. Then he goes
stumping through the country ; he goes to the people
and explains his measure to them, and at last he gets
the whole country in a ferment, and then he comes
back to Parliament or to Congress and says : " Gentle-
men, have you seen the newspapers ? — you see, the
people will have it. Their voice is as the voice of
many waters. It is as the roaring of the ocean, and
as irresistible." And the government cannot oppose
a law which has the emotional feeling of the country
at the back of it, and so the law is passed.
' Why, I remember in your great civil war that
Mr. Lincoln said that Henry Ward Beecher was the
greatest motive power he had in the North. (Great
applause.) And why ? Because he would go into a
meeting packed with Southerners or with advocates
of slavery and disunion, and leave that meeting roar-
ing for the liberation of the slaves and the preser-
vation of the Union. (Applause.) That was the
power of emotion. And I remember very well, be-
cause I was in Italy at the time, how when Garibaldi
came there at last to conquer — that was the third
or fourth time he had come over at intervals to en-
gage his people in the great fight for the freedom of
Italy ; he devoted his life to that mission — that he
fired the people with patriotism, and it was nothing
but the steam power of feeling and emotion which
carried that great revolution for a united Italy. It
may be true that Victor Emmanuel was the brain and
gave it its constitutional element, but it was Garibaldi
who aroused the great emotional feeling, and Italy
became united because he lived and fought, ay, and
fell.
body
goes
eople
; gets
;omes
entle-
e, the
ice of
1, and
)ppose
3untry
tr that
/as the
(Great
» into a
vocates
le roar-
prcser-
as the
^ell, bc-
ribaldi
third
to en-
dom of
hat he
nothing
which
aly. It
ain and
aribaldi
id Italy
ay, and
le
Chicago
NATIONAL MUSIC AND EMOTION
213
' And now for the connection between the national
music and emotion. There has seldom been a great
crisis in a nation's history without some appropriate
tune, hymn or march, which rouses the emotion of the
people. Well I remember Garibaldi's hymn. It ex-
pressed the essence of the Italian movement. Look
at all your patriotic songs. Look at
"John Brown's body is a-mouldering in the ground,
But his soul is marching on."
PATRIOTISM IN MUSIC
* I say, then, the feeling and action of a country
passes into its music. There is the power of emotion
through music upon politics and patriotism. I re-
member when Wagner, as a very young man, came over
to England and studied our national anthems. He said
that the whole of the British character lay in the first
two bars of "Rule Britannia." It goes: (Here the
reverend gentleman gave an imitation of the movement
of England's great national song.) It means, " Get out
of the way ; make room for me." It is John Bull elbow-
ing through the crowd. (Laughter and applause.)
* And so your "Star-spangled Banner" has kindled
so much unity and patriotism. The profoundly
religious nature of the Germans and Austrians comes
forth in their hymns, such as " God save the Emperor."
Our " God save the Queen " strikes the same note in
a different way as " Rule Britannia " —
" Confound her enemies, . . .
Frustrate their knavish tricks " —
'iM
\'hv
' .1
i
I II si
\ ■ 1;
h
214
Travel and Talk
that is, in the same spirit as " Get out of the way,"
and is enshrined in the British national anthem. This
shows the connection between emotion and music in
politics and patriotism. It explains the wisdom of
that statesman who said : " Let who will make the
laws of a people ; let me make their songs."
' I see another gentleman is in charge of the topic
" Religion and Music," but it is quite impossible for
me to entirely exclude religion from my address to-
day, or the power of emotion through music upon
religion and through religion upon morals, for religion
is that thing which kindles and makes operative
and irresistible the sway of the moral nature. It is
impossible, with this motto, " Music, Emotion, and
Religion " for my text, to exclude the consideration
of the effect of music upon religion. I read that our
Lord and His disciples, at a time when all words failed
them and when their hearts were heavy, when all had
been said and all had been done at that last supper
— I read that, after they had stifi(^ a Jiynm, our Lord
and the disciples went out into the Mount of Olives.
After Paul and Silas had been beaten and thrust into
a noisome dungeon they forgot their pain and humilia-
tion and sang songs, spiritual psalms in the night, and
the prisoners heard them. I read in the history of
the Christian Church, when the great creative and
adaptive genius of Rome took possession of that
mighty spiritual movement and proceeded to evan-
gelise the Roman Empire, that St. Ambrose, Bishop
of Milan in the third century, collected the Greek
modes and adapted certain of them for the Christian
Churches, and that these scales were afterwards revived
by the great Pope Gregory, who gave in the Gre-
gorian chants the first elements of emotion interpreted
by music which appeared in the Christian Church.
H
u
ay.
This
ic in
Ti of
; the
topic
le for
>s to-
upon
ligion
rative
It is
1, and
ration
at our
; failed
all had
supper
r Lord
lives.
st into
milia-
t, and
cry of
e and
,f that
evan-
Bishop
Greek
ristian
[revived
ic Gre-
rpreted
irch.
Chicago
GREGORIAN CHANTS IN ENGLAND
2IS
' It is difficult for us to over-estimate the power
of those crude modes, for they seem harsh to our
ears. It is difficult to realise the effisct produced by
Augustine and his monks, when they landed in
Britain, chanting the ancient Gregorian chants. When
the king gave his partial adherence to the mission of
Augustine, the saint turned from his presence and
directed his course toward Canterbury, of which he was
to be the first Archbishop.
' And still, as he went along with his monks, they
chanted one of the Gregorian chants. That was his
war cry : (intoning)
' " Turn away, O Lord, Thy wrath from this city,
and Thine anger from its sin."
' That is a true Gregorian ; those are the very
words of Augustine.
* And time would fail me to remind you of both
the passive and active functions of music in the
sanctuary — passive when the people sit still and hear
sweet anthems ; active when they break out into
hymns of praise. Shall I speak of the great com-
fort which the Church owes to Luther, who stood
up in his carriage as he approached the city of
Worms and sang his hymn, " Ein' feste Burg ist unser
Gott " ? Shall I tell you of others who have solaced
their lonely hours by singing hymns, and how at
times hymn singing in the church was almost all the
religion that the people had ? The poor Lollards,
when afraid of preaching their doctrine, still sang, and
throughout the country the poor and uneducated
people, if they could not understand the subtleties of
1
' I
'i:'
i
2l6
Travel and Talk
theological doctrine, still could sing praise and make
melody in their hearts. I remember how much I was
affected in passing through a little Welsh village some
time ago at night, in the solitude of the Welsh hills,
as I saw a light in a cottage, and as I came near I
heard the voices of the children singing :
*' Jesu, lover of my soul,
Let me to Thy bosom fly.'
And I thought how those little ones had gone to
school and had learned this hymn and had come home
to evangelise their remote cottage and lift up the
hearts of their parents with the love of Jesus. Why,
the effects of a good hymn are incalculable. Wesley
and Whitfield, and the great hymn writers of the
last century, and the sacred laureate of the High
Church party, Keble, have all known and exercised
the power of religious song.
M
LET THE PEOPLE SING
' Here let me speak a word to the clergy especi-
ally, if there are such present. Make your services
congregational, and don't let the organist " do " the
people out of the hymns. Don't let him gallop them
through them with his trained choir. Remind him
that he has his time with the anthems and the volun-
taries, and that, when the hymns come, it is the
people's innings, and fair play is a jewel. (Laughter
and applause.) Hymns have an enormous power in
knitting together the religious feelings. I never
was more struck than on entering Exeter Hall
one time when Messrs. Moody and Sankey were
ruling the roost there. What did Mr. Moody do?
He knew his business. He sent an unobtrusive look-
Chicago
217
lake
was
omc
hills,
2ar 1
le to
home
p the
Why,
Lesley
)f the
High
ircised
ispeci-
irviccs
" the
them
id him
Ivolun-
is the
[.ughter
)wer in
never
Ir Hall
were
ly do?
\e look-
ing lady to the harmonium, and she began a hymn.
There were only a few people in the hall, but others
kept dropping in and they joined in the hymn ; and
by the time they had got through on the twenty-fifth
or thirtieth verse the whole of the hall was in full
cry. They were warmed up and enthusiastic, and
then in comes Mr. Moody, and he would play upon
that vast crowd like an old fiddle. Believe me, that
emotion through music is a great power in vitalising
and cementing and unifying the religious aspirations
of a large mixed congregation.
* I now approach the last clause of my discourse.
We have discovered the elements of music. Modern
music has been three or four hundred years in exist-
ence, and that is about the time that every art has
taken to be thoroughly explored. After that, all its
elements have been discovered ; there is no more to
be discovered, properly speaking, and all that remains
is to apply it to the use, consolation and elevation of
mankind. We have reached that era of music, we
It is difficult to
are
living in
the " golden age."
imagine anything more complicated than Wagner's
score of " Parsival," or the score of the " Trilogy." We
have all these wondrous resources of the sound art
placed at the disposal of humanity for the first time.
But there is a boundless future in store for music. Wc
have not half explored its powers for good.
MUSIC CONTROLS AND PACIFIES EMOTION
' I say, let the people have bands. Cultivate music
in the home ; harmonise crowds with music. Let it
be more and more the solace and burden lifter of
humanity ; and, above all, let us learn that music is
'"f
i;
h '■ I
3l8
Travel and Talk
not only a consolation, it not only has the power of
expressing emotion, of exciting emotion, but also
the power of disciplining, controlling and purifying
emotion. When you listen to a great symphony of
Beethoven, you undergo a process of divine restraint.
Music is an immortal benefactor because it illustrates
the law of emotional restraint.
* There is a grand future for music. Let it be
noble, and it will also be restrained. When y
listen to a symphony by Beethoven you place yo>
selves in the hands of the great master. You hold
your breath in one place and let it out in another ;
you now have to give way in one place and then you
have to control in another ; it strikes the whole gamut
of human feeling, from glow and passion down to
severe composure of restraint.
* It seems to me, indeed, that music, the latest
born and the most spiritual of the arts, has been given
to us in this most materialistic and sceptical age
to remind us of the mystic realities and depth? f
our nature, for it is in listening to the sublim
tender or ineffable strains of music that we are lifted
out of ourselves, we move about in worlds not realised,
wc have heard the songs of the angels, " we have seen
white Presences amongst the hills."
' " Hence, too, in a season of calm weather,
Though inland far we be.
Our souls have sight of that immortal sea
Which brought us hither.
Can in a moment travel thither
And see the children sport upon the shore,
And hear the mighty waters rolling evermore."
* (The rev. gentleman returned to his seat amidst
loud and prolonged applause.) *
Chicago
219
ir of
also
fying
ny of
raint.
irates
it be
' y
yo.
I hold
other ;
:n you
gamut
)wn to
latest
1 given
al age
th? f
im
Ic lifted
alised,
ve seen
lore."
I amidst
LI
TiiK Chicago Exhhhtion.- Butthe Great Fair
seemed to beckon me.
Tennyson in his Cambridge prize poem on
* Timbuctoo ' imagines the Genius of Fable conjuring
up before the poet's eye a Uiiry city of transcendent
beauty, glittering minarets, and ranged towers and
walls ofdazzling marble, shining bulwarks, and golden
domes ; but as the Genius vanishes, the charm is
dissolved, and the mystic city, which is but the fabric
of a dream, fades away. So it has been with that
colossal and apparently indestructible white city
which in 1893 stood seven miles from Chicago, mir-
rored in the limpid lagoons fed by the waters of Lake
Michigan. Those parapets and embankments so
subtly counterfeiting hewn stone were but stucco ; those
stately buildings and Corinthian colonnades, combin-
ing the features of the Parthenon, the Vatican and
St. Paul's Cathedral, and ah '>st rivalling them in scale
and elaboration, were but pamted board, canvas, and
whitewash ; but the illusion, whilst it lasted, was
complete. For the first time in the history of exhibi-
tions (since the Glass Palace of 185 1) a unity of archi-
tectural plan was adopted and with unprecedented
results. Each mass was entrusted to a different
architect and landscape gardener : one charged with
the Administration building, with its colossal dome,
which shone like alabaster when aglow with elec-
tricity at night ; another with the stately Agricul-
tural block facing the manufactures and arts with their
ranged colonnades and divided by the lagoon, at one
i
i.':
"1:
<; . ,,
■ i<
'■.V
I 'I
220
Travel and Talk
end of which rose out of the water the immense gilt
statue of Liberty — and so on throughout the State
buildings. Hat the architects met in conclave, and
produced a combined work in which each contributed
his own to a monumental city in which all might find
their common glory. Two years sufficed to transform
swamps into lakes nine feet deep, and heap up wooded
islands which rivalled Nature's wildest solitudes. Let
me try and give an impressionist couj? d'a:il of a day
at the World's Fair — a day most sensational on ac-
count of its strange and almost cataclysmic ending.
I*
\
\
LII
A Day at the Fair.— I enter the show by the
* Plaisance,' a wide thoroughfare over a mile long
leading to the woman's building. On either side
stand booths, inclosures, beer gardens, and foreign
villages. I grapple with the Chinese theatre, in which
the only thing intelligible is the costumes, which are
gorgeous beyond description — the other part is not
worth describing. The artificial squeaky voices, the
painted mask-like faces, the to us meaningless strut-
ting about, the interminable din of gongs, drums, and
pipes. It is a relief to get out.
* The Brazilian dancing girls ' sounds attractive. I
peer into a stuffy log cabin — tired-looking negresses in
red and blue gyrating round their bored black swains,
to the thrumming of Spanish guitars — ten cents hardly
well spent !
But the colossal Ferris wheel now rises in front of
me, dividing the Plaisance. It has a diameter of 300
feet. You sit in a car on the revolving circumference,
Chicago
221
egilt
State
, and
butcd
.t find
sform
ooded
. Let
a day
on ac-
iing.
by the
e long
er side
foreign
n which
ich are
is not
Ices, the
|s strut-
s, and
:tive. I
tesses in
swains,
hardly
I front of
|r of 300
iference,
and as the wheel goes round, up you go and gaze
down from the dizzy height on a street in Cairo,
Pompeii, old Vienna, and the whole panorama of
palatial buildings and lagoons, and far out into the
ocean-like Lake Michigan. I felt no sensation
whatever. A poor gentleman, however, who went up
on the same day, lost his head almost at once. He
sprang up and shouted aloud, then flew at the bars of
his cage, and was for pitching himself out. He
could not be controlled, and the guard tried to
stop after the first revolution. But the inexorable
wheel went on. Then a lady with singular presence
of mind whipped off her skirt, and suddenly clapped
it over the temporary lunatic's head, which sobered
him effectually till, to the relief of everyone, his wheel
of torture stopped.
As the bane of all big and diffused shows
lies in that one word ' over-fatigue,' I soon mounted
a chair and passed many a State building full of
characteristic produce. My guide and propeller
was a young German student of good education
but imperfectly acquainted with English and the
topography of the exhibition. As he walked very
slowly, stopped frequently, reckoned his hour at about
three-quarters, and refused to speak German which I
could understand, whilst rejoicing in a perfectly un-
intelligible English, ' put me out,' I said, ' at the
Columbus caravels.'
There, hard by the Casino, they lay moored and
manned, strange topheavy pre- Reformation craft of
the date of our good King Henry VH., and Ferdinand
and Isabella of deathless renown, exact reproductions
of the three frail barques in which the great Italian
\l
iii
:i
222
Travel and Talk
navigator put to sea to find a new world— his own
boat is only partially decked. There stands close by,
an exact reproduction of the monastery at the door
of which the neglected and dispirited Columbus
knocked, and sought and found hospitality, and in the
good abbot an enlightened and sympathetic listener,
who believed his tale and brought his speculations
to the ears of the great Queen Isabella, afterwards
Columbus's steadfast friend.
I grieve that I had no time to inspect the Columbus
relics. I passed to the woman's building which has
created such a sensation throughout America. It was
the latest commentary on woman's work. Her wood
work, iron work, needle work, art work, educational
work is displayed in long galleries upstairs and down.
The building with its lofty refreshment rooms
atop was also the refuge of exhausted women through-
out the day. In the side rooms, all open to the
passage, I noticed helpless bodies lying prostrate on
every sofa, careless of appearances, worn out with
heat and tramping. The only things completely
inadequate for the 200,000 or more who latterly
attended the Fair daily were the refreshment and rest
departments. At midday those who had not brought
food simply fought, and then paid heavily for what
they captured ; orange cider and German beer were
however, plentiful, but to the faint and famished, most
lacking in substance.
A good many people were deterred from going
into the Beauty Show (typical women of the world
in characteristic dress), fearing to meet with vulgarity.
The very same people thronged to see the degrading
Eastern stomach-dances, which for dullness and
K
Chicago
223
own
;c by,
do(ir
mbus
n the
tener,
itions
wards
ambus
ch has
It was
r wood
ational
. down.
rooms
irough-
to the
rate on
t with
pletely
llattcrly
.nd rest
irought
r what
r were
:d, most
indecency exceeded anything of the kind I have
ever seen even in Morocco. The Beauty Show, on
the other hand, was absolutely modest, and the young
ladies were perfectly decorous, though here and there
a maiden who thought she was being unduly stared
at would occasionally make herself merry at the
expense of her admirer until he retired abashed.
The palm was of course borne off by the European
and American beauties, but that is perhaps because
our eye is not trained to admire Choctaws and
I^aps. Fenimore Cooper and Longfellow between
them have done a good deal for the wild Indian, but
I draw the line, with all due deference to those
distinguished writers, at the Sioux belle. In be-
holding the expressive and somewhat sinister counte-
nance of the Sioux belle, even when she wore her
sweetest smile, I could understand how proficient the
ladies of her tribe may become in torturing the
prisoners after the fight, and perhaps cooking them
after the torture.
It is not my purpose to describe those splendid
coups iVccil which remind one of Athens restored
and old Rome in the days of Augustus rolled
together. This was splendidly done at the time by
the Illustrateds of the period. I hasten to record
the closing catastrophe of my most memorable day
at the World's Fair.
V
r
going
le world
ilgarity.
[grading
Iss and
LIII
A Sensation. — In the low light the colonnades
and temples glowed like silver jewels against the pale
warm blue of the evening sky ; the sun nevertheless
i
224
Travel and Talk
had gone down behind an angry red and purple cloud.
We entered a Httle electric launch on the grand
canal which divided the Agricultural from the Arts
building. The air seemed cooler, but most delicious.
We sped under the Rialto bridges, beside the
Electrical building. The canals were alive with small
steam craft and gondolas. On we glided beside the
magic islands, home of the wild duck and the multi-
tudinous screaming sparrows going to roost. At the
entrance to the broad waters of Lake Michigan our
little launch turns round. Hardier steamers push
out into the lake. The breeze is freshening, crisping
wavelets begin to invade the quiet Exhibition waters.
The sun has set suddenly ; the white moon rises, but
the air is growing purple-dark. As we return to
the Grand Canal myriads of lights break out along
the banks, the magic isles are also all aglow with
many-coloured lamps ; presently the whole range of
palatial buildings is outlined with points of electric
flame, whilst gigantic search lights illumine now one
pinnacle or dome, now another, then flash out upon
the lagoons and vanish. I look up and notice an
inky black cloud across the moon. Dense masses of
human beings throng the shores of the Grand Canal
and pour from every State building. Into the midst
of the canal now floats boat after boat full of chorus
singers and coloured lanterns ; one mimic brig with
black sails like the Flying Dutchman, and all ablaze
with crimson fire, comes sailing majestically down
upon us ; a cornet on board plays lustily popular
melodies that ring out and re-echo from distant
glimmering palaces outlined with electricity. The
procession of Chinese lantern-hung boats passes
out of the Grand Canal. Suddenly ten thousand
I
A ,
Chicago
225
jets leap up from the great fountain at the end of the
great basin, the diamond spray is shot with emerald,
ruby, opaline and saffron hues that melt one into the
other — a silence seems to fall on the dense crowd that
has gathered on every available space and foothold
around the water and in front of the palaces.
A cold wind ruffles the lake, and shakes the
swinging lanterns. There is a distant rumble of
thunder, unregarded.
The inky cloud has blotted out the moon. The
crowds are still motionless, absorbed by the gor-
geousness of the fairy scene before them. TL":;
search light rests upon the giant figure of Liberty,
which blazes out golden against the white electrici-
ties playing around. The notes of the cornet ring
out and die away. The palaces shine like blocks of
transparent alabaster in the night. . . .
What is this .-* A spot of rain ! — unregarded — a
vagrant puff of wind — unregarded — then a sudden
glare and an appalling crash, a deafening roar from the
crowd, and before we have time to turn, the whole
scene is enveloped in a cyclone of whirling dust, and a
deluge of rain, pelting, stinging rain, hail, and slcct,
descend upon 200,000 densely packed human beings.
The boats on the lake are tossed and torn. I was
amongst the first to gain shelter under a colonnade.
The scene I witnessed I shall never forget. Through
the fog of rain and dust, terrified groups fled hither and
thither like flying squadrons in the smoke of a battle.
The artillery of the skies mingled with the musket-like
rattle of pelting hail and rain on that strange summer
night !
One deafening peal, and a zigzag forked flash
VOL. 1 (2
,. ,
-i f.l
HM^
i "'
w
r
li
226
Travel and Talk
that struck the earth not a stone's throw from where
I stood, and the fog seemed to roll away suddenly.
Where were the crowds ? Not a soul was to be seen.
The electric lights shone over vacant spaces and a de-
serted lake. Nothing but the elements could have
wrought such a miracle of dispersal in about two
minutes.
We were huddled away under colonnades and in
all available vestibules. Women screamed and fainted
at every peal of thunder as the pressure increased. I
kept on the edge of the crowd. There we stood, and
for an hour the downpour was steady. When at last
we stept out we were ankle deep in water. So we
waded to the intramural railway. Water, water every-
where. The cars were deluged ; we hurried in wher-
ever we could, and we stood in water, drenched to the
skin ; but the night, that had turned chill before the
storm, now grew warm again, and we were nearly
boiled with steam before we got out, still seven miles
from Chicago city, to find a drenched but welcome
carriage waiting to drive us home.
That night, one of the palatial roofs was blown
in ; the water soaked through the apparently solid
stucco, canvas, and board, that stood for marble and
stone ; the fairy city sprang a leak in a thousand
places. It seemed the beginning of the end of the
dream, and the elements in all their fearful and
inexorable reality, charged with destruction, revealed
the flimsy and perishable character of this fabulously
beautiful city, proclaiming aloud in thunder the
untimely fading of a vision as dream-like, but far
from as profitless, as the poet's illusory city of
Timbuctoo.
Ii
icre
:nly.
;een.
I de-
have
two
nd in
inted
d. I
i, and
Lt last
50 we
svery-
wher-
to the
)re the
nearly
1 miles
slcome
blown
r solid
>le and
ousand
of the
1 and
vealed
ulously
er the
but far
city of
Chicago
227
I am well aware that these monstrous industrial
exhibitions do not usher in the reign of universal
peace any more than a parliament of religions will
insure the union of churches. The great Exhibition
of 1 85 1 was followed by the Crimean war, the great
Paris Exhibition by the Franco-Prussian war, and the
Parliament of Religions has been followed by a snub
administered by the Reformed Church to the Mother
Church of Rome. But incalculable good has been
wrought by both the sacred and the secular demon-
strations at Chicago.
The Chicago palace brought home with crushing
force the enormous interests involved in any serious
breach of the peace between great peoples, especially
those bound together by community of blood and
language. And the Chicago Parliament of Religions
brought out with intense and popular distinctness the
great truth that God has never left Himself without
a witness, and that there never was and never could
be but one religion, which all the religions of the world
were so many attempts to realise and formulate, as
Tennyson has it —
' They are but broken lights of Thee,
And Thou, O Lord, art more than they.'
LIV
Some other Exhibitions. — With the glories of
the Chicago World's Fair fresh in our minds, it may
not be uninteresting to look back at the rise and pro-
gress of the industrial exhibition theory and practice at
home and abroad. We may say that we have arrived
at the centenary of such enterprises, as the first
Q 2
'My-
' : I
' \i
1 [
■W 'k
I
r.
* >
'I!
H!
If
228
Travel and Talk
1^.1
serious attempt to realise the idea dates back to 1797.
Of course the International Exhibition in Hyde Park
1 85 1 gave the new impulse which has been pregnant
with such mighty results. Prince Albert's name is
inseparably connected with the rise and progress of
vast industrial exhibitions in England, but the inter-
national and cosmopolitan element alone is peculiar
to the conception of the Anglo-German Prince. The
spectacular alliance of art and commerce — the poetry
of industry, the beauty of labour embodied in a show
— is distinctly of French origin. It dates from the
}'ear VI (1797) of the French Republic, and is, strange
to say, the direct offspring of the Napoleonic wars.
So late as the year 1844 the aged Marquis d'Aveze,
who had weathered the Reign of Terror (1793) and
been a useful servant of the Republic, published a
\ery curious account of the first two Industrial
Exhibitions at Paris in 1797 and 1798. The Marquis
and his exploits have been long since forgotten, and
perhaps few of those who flocked to the 185 1 Exhibi-
tion, or who nightly frequented the Healtherics at
South Kensington, were aware that the idea of these
ranged galleries and trophies, with all their glittering
works of art and industry, first rose in the brain of a
P>cnch marquis who narrowly escaped the guillotine.
D'Aveze had no sooner organised his first industrial
exhibition of SHtcs china and Gobelin tapestry at
St. Cloud in 1 797 than he was forced to fly, * proscribed '
with the rest of the P^rench nobility who had the
impertinence to retain their titles and their heads.
The Marquis had somehow been appointed com-
missioner of arts, but had found the art industries
of his country utterly depressed and at their very
lowest ebb. The only things that spun in the Gobelin
and
xhibi-
ics at
these
teriiig
n of a
lotine.
ustrial
try at
ribed '
d the
Ids.
com-
ustries
r very
obehn
Chicago 229
looms were spiders. The exhibition which he
organised, in which special attention was given to
tapestries, struck the note of revival. The following
year Napoleon's attention was arrested by the work
of his able, but now banished, commissioner. The
First Consul was not a man to stick at trifles. He
seized upon the art exhibition scheme with the decision
and rapidity of a skilled campaigner. Industries must
be revived ; home producers must be encouraged.
Napoleon at once ordered all English goods through-
out France to be burned, advanced 21 millions to the
French industries, and recalling the Marquis d'Avczc,
installed him as special director of the 1798 Paris
Exhibition, which was a great step in advance of the
St. Cloud collection, and embraced Bpule cabinets,
Leroy clocks, Angoulcme porcelain, Lyons silks, and
a collection of pictures by Vincent, David, &c.
Meanwhile, crowds collected in the streets to
witness one of the most extraordinary' pageants that
even Paris had ever witnessed. Twenty-nine chariots
full of Napoleonic spoils passed tlirough the principal
thoroughfares of the city. The Capitol and the Vatican
had been gutted ; even Venice had not escaped. These
trophies were borne in procession. The bronze gilt
horses of immemorial antiquity, which stood in front
of San Marco, the Dying Gladiator, the Nine Muses,
the Cupid and Psyche, the Apollo Belvedere, the
Laocoon, and last, but not least, Raffaelle's great
picture of the Transfiguration. The procession was
in itself an art education for the people. Of course
most of these priceless treasures have since been
restored to their rightful owners.
The Temple of Industry in the Champ de Mars,
i
'fi'
I
i
I
i "
iiil
it '
u
230
Travel and Talk
f
M
with its open invitation to contributors, its jury of
science and art, its twenty silver medals and one of
gold, marks the next stage in the history of exhibitions.
It opened up the provinces ; Jkussels, Liege, Rouen,
and other towns for the first time contributing. Be-
tween the Republican reign of terror and the reckless
slaughter of the Imperial campaigns these pacific
displays under the First Consul seem to fall like
gleams of sunshine between two devastating storms.
Some years later Spain made no less than five mild
attempts at industrial exhibition with almost ludicrous
results. In 1827-28-3 1-4 1-45 the old Convent of
the Trinity at Madrid was utilised for the purpose,
l^arcelona (the Spanish Manchester) and Madrid
contributing between thcin nearly the whole of the
collection, which consisted mainly of linen, woollen
goods, leather, and pottery. In these exhibitions it
was remarked as indicative of the decay alike of
mental activity and ancient handicraft that there was
nut a single specimen of printing, and hardly any of
the cabinet work for which Spain was once so famous.
About 1 84 1 the revival of Continental trade began in
Belgium, and a great exhibition was organised at
Tournai, displaying the carpets of that town and the
laces of Malines, Ypres, and Bruges, which employ
60,000 women. Liege, famous for its cannon foundry,
organised the metallurgical section ; and the prizes
were given by the King and Queen in person.
And here it should be mentioned, that although
for several reasons, chiefly insular, the industries of
Ireland have not had that widespread influence which
they deserved, Ireland has always, since as long ago
as 1723, been alive to the importance of industrial
y of
c of
ions.
>ucn,
Be-
kless
acific
like
orms.
mild
crous
:nt of
rpose,
laclrid
of the
ooUcn
ions it
ike of
Ire was
any of
imous.
gan in
scd at
nd the
mploy
)undry,
prizes
though
;ries of
which
ng ago
dustrial
Chicago
231
collections. From 1723 up to 1850 the Royal Dublin
Society has steadily organised a display of its home
products on a small scale, classifying them as raw
material, manufactured, and machinery. It was not
until 1850 that Ireland thought it advisable to invite
English competition. But the most important im-
pulse in this direction came again in France after a
partial paralysis of nearly forty years. The extreme
dullness of Louis Philippe's reign was relieved in 1844
by a great show in the Carre Marigny. The magic
structure designed by Moreau rose complete in seventy
days. There were 3,960 exhibitors, and the whole of
the centre was occupied with the largest collection of
machinery that had ever been seen. The * comet-
seeker ' telescope, which in a moment could be turned
to any part of the heavens ; the oil-colour grinding
machine, with its three cylinders ; the distillation
apparatus for making sea water fit to drink ; the
loom which wove two shawls of different patterns at
the same time, and then cut them neatly asunder —
the self-acting floating whistle which warned the
engineer when the boiler required refilling — such
objects making a direct popular appeal to popular
attention gave that attractive stamp to the Paris Ex-
hibition of 1844 which has marked every succeeding
effort of the kind.
In 1849 a similar exhibition was opened in Paris
on a vaster scale. The building, in the shape cf a
quadrangle filled with lawns and flower beds, was
composed of 45,000 pieces of timber, and roofed with
4,000 tons of zinc. The internal decoration — iron
painted to imitate wood, false medallions and sham
mullions in the Italian style — were much and ad-
versely criticised by Digby Wyatt, our architect, and
.H
II f
; i:
i'
. f
'«jii'
)!i.
232
Travel and Talk
others at the time, and French taste was as generally
decried as it iiad been extolled — on the whole not a
very unwholesome reaction. Ruskin was beginning to
be read in this country, and while much abused, his
influence was sufficiently conspicuous, though wholly
unacknowledged, in the Great Exhibition of 185 1.
■
I
I
\ m
In 1849, at IMrmingham, the Binglcy Hall was
completely filled by a vast free trade bazaar, which
suggested several features of the colossal show of
1 85 1. As early as 1844 Mr. Scott Russell tells us
that Prince Albert was casting about him for some
machinery capable of concentrating and displaying
on a gigantic scale the arts and industries of the
civilised world. The Society of Arts served him as a
practising ground. He soon found that London was
behind the provinces. His projects were at first
received with apathy. ' The public seemed indifferent,'
says Scott Russell, * the manufacturers lukewarm.'
In 1849 products of industry had to be dragged
almost by force from their warehouses, at the instance
of the Society of Arts ; and 20,000 people only could
be induced to go and look at them.
LV
PR I NX" E Aliiekt's Gen I us.— In 1S49 the times
seemed ripe. Thirty-six years had elapsed since the
Great Duke had brought to a close one of the most
desolating wars on record, leaving to the countr; a»'
enormous national debt and a bitter legacy o •'»•
national jealousy. But years of peace, soundci icws
of political and economic reform, the triumph of free
Chicago
233
trv' ar
)i" free
trade, combined with irrcat improvements in aj:fricul-
ture, had ;^one far to revive trade and commerce, while
Prince Albert was intent ii[)on striking; a death-blow at
international animosities by assemblin^nn I I>(le Parle
the political disputants of ever)' ccnmtry under the sun.
Most of us can remember the shout of incredulous and
timid derision with which Prince Albert's proposal
was met. Overcrowded London would be smitten by
the placjue, revolution would be freely fomented by
unprincipled refugees, the Queen would be in immi-
nent danger, and the concern would certainly be
bankrupt. At last, after anxious consultation with
Sir Robert Peel and Mr. Labouchere on behalf of the
Government, Parliament was applied to for the use
of the park. Colonel Sibthorpc — the O'Gorman and
the Whalley in one, of that i)eriod — called on the
elements to wreck the impious <^lass house. I le
denounced the enormity of cuttin
II
\^^
.;*>
i
I!
236
Travel and Talk
into which he breathed a new hfc Hves and moves at
South Kensington. It shows annual signs of asto-
nishing and beneficent vitah'ty in such collateral
' evolutions ' and ' developments ' as the Fisheries and
the I Icaltheries, the Colinderics, the Naval Exhibition,
et id genus oiiine at home and abroad.
LVII
Collapse of Britlsh Phlegm.- -We are a
phlegmatic people -- so say foreigners — and we take
our pleasures sadl}'. We only take our fellow
creatures on sufferance. You ma)' notice any da)'
on a railway platform : a man of any age will
walk the whole length of the platform to find a per-
fcctl)' empty carriage. lie will then get in, and
when his fool's paradise is invaded by another equally
morose person, he will frown — both will then frown -
and probably travel for miles together in silence.
We like a house to ourselves. J^lats are beginning
to come in, not because we are sociable and like
meeting people by chance on a common staircase,
but because we are economical, and don't like paying
rates and taxes.
' The Englishman's house is his castle ' is a phrase
which would not be understood in Japan, where you
can see through the chinks, and people bathe and are
all abroad day and night ; it is not very intelligible
even in Ceylon, Honolulu, or any climates where the
air is balmy, and doors and windows are open, and
walls are reedy and awnings tlappy and thin ; but in
these cold and foggy climes — to be snug and warm
and .secluded is the ideal of life. If we chatter in the
streets we get bronchitis ; and if we sit down, a chill
Chicac.o
237
es at
asto-
iteral
s and
3ilion,
arc a
e take
fellow
ny day
vc NviH
\ a pcr-
in, and
equally
frown —
silence,
iginninijj
.nd lil«-'
Itaircasc,
nni
« pay-
la phrase
lieve you
and arc
;clligiblc
rhere the
Ipen, and
; but in
hd warm
cr in the
n, a chill
on the liver ; and if we forget our wraps, rheumatism
pounces upon us.
To such a people the conception of great build-
ings frequented by peripatetic crowds came with
the force of a new social revelation or revolution.
The people flocked to see the monstrous products,
but these soon became mere backgrounds for ices,
champagne, lemonade, sandwiches, and the afternoon
cup of tea, which, b}' the way, first came in between
the fifties and the sixties and has happily stayed
with us ever since.
Little groups at round tables — pleasant meetings
of friends, acquaintances, and lovers — the Exhibition
a pretext — all under cover too, whilst the rain
pattered on the glass roof — and all surrounded by
trees; shrubberies in the midst of which glimmered
white nymphs and classic warriors, and busts of the
great and good. Nowhere could the eye turn with-
out food for thought, conversation, and delight.
A big organ peals out, yonder the distant tinkle
of a grand piano on show, or a new patent somc-
thing-or-other-phone, and 'Waiter! sherry cobbler
for two ! ' — and after that let us go on board the
Victory, * marvel of naval reconstruction on dry latid ; '
or into the long range of tent-like barns in which a
campaign, life size, is being conducted, ambulance,
wounded, and all, but which gives rather a couleny de
rose view of the terrible reality, everything being so
clean and the wounded looking so ha[)py and comfort-
able tucked up in ambulances, or being genially
operated upon by smiling surgeons.
But hark I the strains of a military band beneatli
an alcove entice us into the open air. Hundreds
are flocking out. Your likeness taken snap shot as
s \ \\
'H
V I ;
•Ji
ir
r
238
Travel and Talk
you pause and drop a penny in the slot by the way.
Hundreds of chairs are soon occupied — for once
the weather is soft and balmy, we might be in Paris.
How cheerful all the people look, John Bull and his
family ; and as the time for shutting up the shops
comes the young men and young women, who have
all day served behind the counter, flock into the show,
and after a visit to a different sort of counter, come
out refreshed, and behold with bright eyes and
wreathed smiles the kaleidoscopic scene, and hear
with enchantment the buoyant and light fantastic
strains of Herr Johann Strauss — his band.
I remember — it was the year of the Queen's Jubilee
— an unprecedented run of fine weather enabled these
outdoor entertainments to thrive ; crowds were nightly
attracted lo sit out and enjoy music, and after that
fireworks. I really believe that ten fine summers
running would go far to destroy the temperamental
moroseness and unsociable silence of the English
people.
It is because we don't see each other enough at
leisure times that we have nothing to say when we do
meet. It is the outdoor throngs, not the indoor
circles, which enable people to shake off unnatural
stiffness and unsociability ; but outdoor gatherings
mean climate genial, smiling blue skies and mild
soft air which may be inhaled without a respirator or
the use of an umbrella ; but the winter garden
promenade and restaurant element, without which no
industrial exhibition is now complete, has done much
and is doing more fo us, and the knowledge that out
of doors, weather permitting, there will be as much
amusement as indoors adds an attraction to our
Chicago
239
way.
once
Paris,
id his
shops
» have
show,
come
s and
I hear
ntastic
Jubilee
:d these
nightly
ter that
ummers
amental
English
lough at
;n we do
indoor
Innatural
itherings
[nd mild
lirator or
garden
Ivhich no
|ne much
that out
as much
to our
people's palaces and exhibitions which now make
Chelsea, South Kensington, Olympia, and all other
such sites of popular recreation formidable rivals to
the Champs-Elys^es, Cafe des Ambassadcurs, and all
the rest of them.
LVIII
Colour Art. — One feature of entertainment
which is now seldom wanting at these great shows has
always had a special interest for me ; and in ' Music and
Morals ' ( Book I . sec. 1 2) I have devoted some paragraphs
to it. I allude to the ' Colour Art ' as illustrated by fire-
work displays, and of late days by illuminated foun-
tains and skirt dancing a la Loie Fuller. From my
observations at the old Surrey Gardens, Cremorne,
South Kensington, the Crystal Palace, Paris and
Chicago, reaching over a space of more than forty
years, I can bear witness to the enormous improve-
ment in the use of colour, which with the new electric
appliances for tinting water jets through ruby, emerald,
saffron and other coloured glasses have laid the foun-
dation of that perfectly new and independent Colour
Art foreshadowed in my first book (1872).
I am glad to say that Mr. A. Wallace Rimington
has turned his attention to the subject and invented
a colour organ, which plays off colours on a disc for
the eye, just as a musician plays off notes for the ear.
I am also glad that Mr. Wallace Rimington, unlike
other people who take suggestions without acknow-
ledgment, has had the courtesy to allude to ' Music
and Morals * as at least one source of his inspiration.
The extent to which the analogy between the
^
(
240
Travel and Talk
I <
waves of light and the waves of sound will work out
practically has not yet been fully ascertained. That
by translating the one into the other very astonish-
ing results are obtained is certain ; but, as Mr. Wallace
Rimington says, the Colour Art will have to be
elaborated on its own basis and need not be tram-
melled by reproducing the wave lengths and sound
vibrations of musical compositions in colour waves
and vibrations of the same proportions and velocities,
I have no doubt whatever that what occurred to me
in the crude form of an imaginative speculation is now
on the high road, through the patient genius and
enthusiasm of Mr. Wallace Rimington, to winning a
foremost position in the history of known arts, by the
elaboration of an entirely new one. I have not had
the advantage yet of seeing the colour organ in
o^jcration ; but the following description of the effects
produced by treating fountain spray as a disc for
colour, as the sun paints a rainbow on the foam
cloud which rises from Niagara, may here be of some
interest.
LIX
Fire and Water Colour. — One lovely evening
in the spring of 1885, 1 was invited by the well-known
engineer, Sir Francis Bolton, to assist at one of his
colour exhibitions at South Kevisington. When it
grewdark and the fountains were turned on, he repaired
to a little room on the opposite side of the Exhibition
grounds facing his water discs, and I sat by him as he
proceeded to manipulate his various electrical stops
which controlled the changing colours.
From his exalted position, in full view of the
Chicago
24 T
out
rhat
lish-
llace
D be
ram-
ound
vavcs
cities,
to mc
s now
s and
ling a
by tbc
3t had
ran in
effects
lisc for
foam
)f some
ivenmg
-known
of bis
'hen it
i-epaircd
Ihibition
|m as he
|al stops
of the
Albert Hall, the fountains, and pleasure c^rounds, the
gallant Colonel surve>ed the peaceful field of his
electric operations, while the expectant crowd beneath
him clustered round the fountains and swarmed over
the walks and terraces right and left. The Colonel
was then a man of peace, having finally retired in July
1 88 1, after twenty-four years' service on the Gold
Coast and at Chatham. His name is associated with
ai. ingenious system of telegraphic and visual signal-
ling and other military inventions, and latterly he
happily applied to the recreation of thousands the
arts which he had so successfully placed at her
Majesty's disposal for the destruction of her enemies.
At the stroke of half-past eight Sir Francis signals
by bell telephone to the engineers in the bowels of
the earth beneath the fountains. He then takes his
seat in front Oi a little organ keyboard, consisting of
three rows of keys. From 1 to 16 regulate the water
jets, 17 to 32 the colours, and from 33 to 4S the light
is turned on at ' glow,' ' quarter,' ' half,' or ' full.' Close
beside this magic keyboard is a flat desk with six
circular knobs, like electric bell nuts: each kncjb
commands one of six sections of lights, and with these
in six batches the 12,000 coloured glowworms, the
buildings, the shrubberies, and the flower beds can be
turned up or down at a touch. ' See ! ' says the
Colonel, and at a touch all the lights outlining the
Albert Hall disappear in the distance ; another touch,
and they are all back again. ' More speed,' says Sir
Francis down the telephone, and the lights come on
from quarter to half ' More ! ' and then beam out
' full.* Now he plays the top row of keys, and his
water jets dart up. Meanwhile the side ones are
scattered in spray, then suddenly concentrated.
VOL. I R
i>
ii
f\
V.
m
;?Ji|il
(
ij I
it!
11 j
m
1
>(
242
Travel and Talk
Aiiollicr key down, and all disappear — all but one tall
central spire of crystal shot with amber, then carmine
flame, for Sir I'rancis is now touchinj^ his second row
of keys. With the third row the li^ht is poured on
the base of the fountain, leavini;- the top dim and
misty ; then a bright spire of emerald is quickly sent
up through the middle jet, while the top breaks into
saffron -coloured rain ; and so, endlessly varied, the
colour symphony is played out for an hour or so.
About a quarter to ten the band strikes ui) ' God save
the Queen.' At a given moment Sir Francis calls
through his bell telephone to the underground en-
gineer, 'All off!' then he gently touches two or
three keys and i)istons. As the last bar begins the
fountains fail and drop, the 12,000 lights grow dim,
and exactly with the last notes of the band they all
go out at once, and leave the scene cold and pallid in
the grey moonlight. The effect is absolutely dream-
like. It is difficult to recall the dazzling coloured
prospect which one second ago seemed so resplen-
dent. Surely it must all have been an iiuier vision !
All is so changed and dark. At this moment a
murmur of admiration breaks from the crowds be-
neath. The miracle of art and scientific skill seems,
then, only to be quite realised at the very moment
when the glittering spectacle suddenly vanishes.
Electric illumination had never before been carried
so far as this. Similar and even far more complex
effects were produced at Chicago ten years later, and
are now the common attractions of all firework and
night fountain shows.
When we think of great engineers like Sir Francis
Bolton, famous for inventing implements of ghastly
ill.
Chicago
243
ctall
mine
I row
d on
and
r sent
J into
1, the
31- SO.
\ save
\ calls
id en-
\vo or
ns the
vv dim,
hey all
allid in
dream-
Dlourcd
esplen-
vision 1
Incnt a
ds be-
seems,
ioment
mishes.
carried
lomplex
Iter, and
)rk and
[Francis
ghastly
destruction for one department, or when wc hear of
Mr. Edison's threat to invent miraculous explosives
for blowing armies to pieces before they come in
sight of each other, we can only say, Would that all
our great military engineers and inventors were at
liberty, like the late Sir Francis, to devote their art
and science to the cause of popular recreation, utility,
and peace !
It seems invidious to dismiss the subject of exhi-
bitions (suggested by the World's Fair) as places of
culture and recreation for the people, without a
respectful tribute to the Crystal Palace at Sydenham.
1 can remember the time when the site now occu-
pied by the Palace, its grounds and densely built-
over environs, were all wild woodland. To see the
rabbits feeding on a summer evening on the outskirts
of Mr. Nix's and Mr. Schuster's pleasant woodlands
was one of the delights of my boyhood.
Mr. Scott Russell, of unhappy ' Great Eastern
notoriety (his engines broke down), had a charming
house which stood in what is now, I believe, a portion
of the grounds. I think I could identify the cedar on
the lawn even now, if it has not been cut down.
I remember vividly the day of the ' Great Eastern '
disaster which ruined Scott Russell, the gifted Brunei's
favourite pupil. One Sunday afternoon we were on
the terrace, and all day directors kept arriving and
walking up and down discussing the dreadful news
with their responsible engineer — charming, genial Scott
Russell ! — half poet and dreamer, a soul full of kindly
sympathy, and with such a fascination of manner and
so persuasive a power that you could not help believ-
ing all he said, even when the foundation premises
R 2
i:|t
i«r
■MUa
244
Travel and Talk
were nil and the superstructure a mere card castle.
The Crystal l*alace, ^jraced by the genius of Sir Joseph
Paxton, and under the keen though coarse business
manai^einent of Mr. Bovvley, started with magni-
loquent promises of culture and refinement, art and
science, for the people. It had no luck. On the open-
ing da)' the biggest fountain would not play, and the
mechanician committed suicide. Some years after-
wards the gorgeous Alhambra and part of th tropi-
cal department succumbed to the flames. The late
Duke of Sutherland, who loved the excitement of
fires, and was to the last a close friend of Captain
Shaw, the great fireman, climbed the flaming ruins
and rescued a terrified parrot, upon which a witty
friend of mine observed, * A striking instance of
the way in which Providence appoints means to
ends.'
The people were to be taught history, natural
history, geography, science, they were to have music,
lectures, an art school, and be generally elevated. ' It's
all very well,' said Albert Smith to George Grove, the
versatile secretary ; ' but mark my words, it will still
come to climbing the greased .statue of Ramesesfor a
leg of mutton. What the mixed citizens want is amuse-
ment, not instruction.' Albert Smith was not far
wrong. The shareholders soon grumbled ; the tempta-
tion was sore to operate along the Bowley and Albert
Smith lines, and sacrifice everything to attract a
paying mob anyhow and anywhen.
One man, George Grove, stood firm, and he took his
stand on music. Challen's brass band was dismissed,
and the now famous Mr. Manns, then a very young man,
was installed as conductor of the now equally famous
Crystal Palace band. Again and again Mr. Bowley
ClIICAflO
245
stle.
seph
ness
igni-
and
)pcn-
d the
aftcr-
[ropi-
u late
nt of
iptain
ruins
witty
ce of
A\s to
latural
music,
. 'It's
c, the
ill still
sfor a
musc-
ot far
mpta-
Albert
Iract a
)ok his
lissed,
^man,
famous
Jowlcy
was for retrenchment in the direction of the music,
and again and apjain his daring secretary stood out
at the council board for Manns and his pioneer banti.
We all know the result. The Saturday concerts of
classical music prevailed — they attracted at last well-
dressed and paying crowds from London. Their ana-
lytical programmes, compiled and edited by Grove
(after the fashion of Professor ICUa's Musical Union
programmes), inaugurated a kind of musical literature
adopted since with modifications by the Monday
Popular and Symphony Concerts throughout the
country.
The incidental advantages to music from Sir
George Grove's long connection with the Crystal
Palace are quite incalculable. They are insepar-
ably associated with the production of almost every
work of musical interest that has been unearthed for
well nigh half a century, notably the orchestral works
of Schumann, and I might almost say the discovery
of Schubert as an orchestral writer. The giant Handel
Festivals, with memories of Costa, Clara Novello, and
Sims Reeves in his palmy days ; the colossal firework
exhibitions which, under Mr. Hrock, have ushered in
almost a new art ; the immense receptions, including
welcomes accorded to royalty, and the ever memor-
able visit of General Garibaldi ; the pleasant cricket
matches ; the inexhaustible refreshment rooms, bars and
pavilions ; the rose shows and fruit shows ; the theatri-
cal entertainments that ceased to be 'wrong' because
they were at the Crystal Palace ; the Leotard and
the Blondin feats (I remember Dickens saying IMondin
would come down some day, and th.ey would only
find * a little red sop ' when they went to pick him up) ;
and last, not least, the balloon ascents.
«.
.■ml
i >i
I
246
Travel and Talk
I I
It was from the Crystal Palace g^rounds that I
made my first, probably my last, balloon ascent. I
floated over Kent on a summer's afternoon, and came
down on the top of an oak forest, in peril of my life.
A few Handel Festivals, an Oddfellows', a Fores-
ters', or school children's ^iant assembly, a Shah, a
Garibaldi, or a casual Royalt)' realise, but only occasion-
ally, the ideal of the management ; but the cheap
pleasures of the mixed citizens alone have not been
found to sustain the funds so as to fill the pockets of the
shareholders.
Nevertheless, there can be little doubt that the
vast suburban city composed of Sydenham and
Upper Norwood rolled into one is the creation of the
Glass Palace, and it would pay the landlords, were there
a talk of taking the structure down, to come to the rescue
with a subsidy. Should it ever fall,thedepreciation in
house property would probably be very considerable,
as the hosts of wives, children, and young folk, in the
absence of the bread-winner who goes up every day to
town, would feel quite lost without their recreation
garden, reading room, park, and picnic ground, theatre
and concert especially on Saturdays, and all next door ;
but the shareholders, being now apparently resigned
to the inevitable, no longer grumble so loudly, and
there is little likelihood of the almost imperishable
glass house melting away like a dream after the
manner of the pasteboard and stucco prodigy at
Chicago. Financially, however, it never rivalled
that astounding enterprise. Of all the exhibitions
that have taken place during the last five-and-forty
years, two alone tower financially — the London Great
Exhibition of 1851, and 'the greatest show on airth'
at Chicago in 1893,
247
<.
MORMON LAND
:,\
LX
Utah Dp:skrt and Frisco Town.— Across
the desert ! The train drains through its four da)s
and ni<^hts somewhat slowl)-. Mot Utah i)lains, chiv-
ing alkah* dust, which bUnds the eyes and chaps the
hps. What a change from moist Chicago ! Yonder
hes a dead bullock, strayed, parched to death with
thirst, and many a skeleton of horse, elk, or prairie
dog — little heaps of bones among the sand dunes. Wo
surprise a herd of mountain deer on the verge of
the desert, a startled raven flaps by with an angry
caw, as we climb the Rocky Range. I can well
believe that the mountain lion, the grizzly bear, the
wild cat, and the coyote still linger in those illimit-
able fastnesses, although the buffalo has vanished from
the plains and valleys. As on the fourth morning in
the grey dawn the train draws up at Sacramento city,
a short stage from Francisco, I descend from my
sleeping car to have a look at a low tribe of Indians
bivouacking like gipsies on the fringe of the city, clad
in blankets and rags of civilised costume — consumj)-
tive, blind, half-starved, homeless and outcast in the
wide land once their own. Few sights more sad !
! ■i
^il
I
LXI
A Mormon Invitation. — San Francisco !
F'ifty years ago, who thought of the obscure Mexican
^
ai
> S^'
••■ t
i
248
Travel and Talk
iniiisioii, the wild mint villajrc, now the lar^^est city
in CahTornia, with its marvellous system of cable cars
which climb the almost perpendicular slopes with
ceaseless regularity and perilous speed, enablinj^^ the
suburban fashionables to live in a series of Belj^ravian
and South Kensini^tonian inansions at an incline of
45 degrees? No one, except in the llat business part
of the town, thinks of walking much in Frisco; the
population li\es in the cable cars. The rising genera-
tion .ire said to iiave no calves and no wind, but this
is a picturesque libel. The young men are well grown
but suictl)' commercial ; but the girls are pretty,
graceful, well educated, and splendidly healthy. On
my first visit to San Francisco, I was most hospitably
entertained by the Rev. Dr. Church at Irving College,
a large institution for young ladies, presided over by
the excellent ped able iloctor and his wife.
T!,c Rev. Dr. Church is a fine type of the single-
minded, single-hearted Christian, intent on doing his
duty to (jod and man. Like the Rev. Dr. Wakefield of
San josc, he represents in its least aggressive forsn the
more liberal element in the F,piscoi)al Church ; his
kindl)' antl fraternal lisposition draws to him many of
the town clerg)', who would not probabl) pledge them-
.selves to his precise opinionsif they precisely knew what
his precise opinions were. lie himself is content to
avoid ihe discussion of vexed (juestions, and rather
aims at resting in the Apostolical ' unity of the spirit
and the bond of peace.'
The cordial it}' of the Hishop and clergy, the kind-
ness of the people, and the crowded congregations that
I addressed during m\' nine days' fixing visit to San
J^'ranci.sco in 1JS93, made me not unnaturall)' turn my
Mormon Land
249
eyes in the direction of the Pacific coast when the
delectable climate of London in the winter of 1894-5
drove me in search of a respite from black fo;;s and
snow, of all which more anon in my second volume.
15ut by far the most interesting^ and, to me, memor-
able result of my visit to TVisco in 1893 was my
introduction to two Mormon elders, who happened
to be staying in the town, and who invited me over
to Salt Lake. • Now,' I said, ' my time has come at
last. I shall see these stranj^e Mormons face to face.'
.«,■.
Hi-
Id of
m the
; his
ny of
hem-
whal
_Mit to
rather
spirit
kind-
is that
jo San
Irn m)'
LXII
Earl^' Studies. — Lont^ ago, when quite a lad, in
the pa<;es of tlie * Ih-it^hton Guardian * I had written
the story {;f the Mormons — their eccentric creed, their
sufferinj^s and persecution, their irresistible eneri^)' and
indomitable pluck, their romantic wanderiny dwellin;^ almost
exclusively on the romance and i).ithos of the .stor\'
II
I,
250
Travf.l and Talk
.ind the pjoody-g^oodies shrugged their shoulders in
a non-committal style, and went their way, saying,
' lla ! very interesting never heard so much about
them —thought they were very different — had tio idea,'
&c. &c.
So when, thirty years later, I found myself at
l''rancisco, and read in the newspapers that President
Cannon and l^ishop Clawson had arrived in the cit\-,
and were at a certain hotel, I posted off at o!ici-.
sent up my card, and was very kindly received b\'
these two Mormon patriarchs.
LXIll
Mr. O. Cannon. — He is a contemporary of the
Prophet, Joseph Smith. His family joined the com-
munity when he was quite a boy. They were brought
over from England in the suite of Brigham Young,
who had gone to Liverpool on a missionary tour. Mr.
Cannon is a benevolent-looking elderly man of about
seventy. I le represented the Mormons and Utah terri-
tory at Washington for many years, and is certainl)-,
now Hrigham Young is dead, one of if not the ablest
of the Mormon rulers. In Congress they used to call
him * S)noot/i-lwrc Cantion ' on account of his singularly
persuasive manner and a certain quiet, stately and
restrained elotiucncc, which seemed to dei)recate rather
than silence opposition. Me is never hurried into a
rash adjective or an extreme statement, and his serene
composure, and at times almost pathetic seriousness,
make his conversation as impressive as it is charming.
* Do I understand from you,' I asked, ' that poly-
gamy is now completely abolished in Utah?'
Mormon Land
2!;i
by
'i^»
\imv^.
poly-
' You may rely upon it,' he answered. ' It couUl
not be otherwise. If we tried to continue it we could
not — wo arc surrounded by Government spies and
informers — we arc tracked and watched — and any
infringement of the law as it stands would be instantly
visited with arrest and imprisonment.' Turning to
Clawson, he remarked, ' \Vc know by experience it is
so ; we have both been imprisoned for the faith —
when we were fighting the legality of this questioti.
Of course,' continued the {'resident, 'with us it was a
religious as well as a social question of great import-
ance ; both Mr. Clawson and m)'selfhad several wives
and a large number of children ; we held that we were
covered by the 2nd Amendment of the United .States
of America Constitution, which provides that all
citizens of the States shall be left undisturbed in their
religious doctrine and practice. I fought hard for
the cause in Congress — we carried it from court to
court, and when at last it was given against us in the
highest court, I wrote a pamphlet to prove that the
decision was a wrong one. My friends,' added Mr.
Cannon, with a patient smile, ' were rather amused at
my professing to know the law better tha?! the highest
legal authorities. Hut,' he added emphatically, * we
gave in ; we have always been law-abiding citizens,
whatever our enemies have said to the contrar}'.'
* And what did you do about )'our wives?'
The old gentleman paused, but resumed shortly :
' It was a terrible thing, but our lives have always
been lives of sacrifice, and we felt that one more
supreme sacrifice was now demanded of us in the
cause of duty. Those who have never shrunk at
giving up possessions, peace, comfort, antl ha\(^
always been ready to suffer fine, arrest, persecution,
V
¥
I'
vmmmmm
■iiiiiiTini
'5:?
TkAVKL AND Talk
?M
imprisonment and dc.ith at the call of duty ant!
cf...''iction, could not hesitate. When plural marriage,
which had been tacitly countenaiiceil for years by the
United States of America Government, who con-
desceiuled \n appoint our tjovernors and judges, was
sudilenl)' declared to be illei^al, we j^jave in.'
Mr, Cannon aijain paused. Presently he resumed,
not without some suj)pressed emotion :
' 1 think,' h{^ said, turning to Hishop ("lawson, ' you
will bear me out thai our families were singularly
happy and united, the women loving each other like
sisters, and the children ^rowin^' up happily together.'
Mr. Claw.son remarked that this was so, but he would
not have me to suppose that there were never any
family discords in L^tidi in short, not even Mormoji-
ism could utterly and all at once destroy ()ri|.jinal Sin ;
only he conceived that on the whole there were fir
fewer unliai)py marriai:(es on their system than on
ours.
I.e.avinL];; the question open, we passed on to
particulars.
' And how,' I asked, ' did )-ou act ? '
•Well,' resumed Mr. Cannoti, ' I called m)' wives
together I explained to them the law. The>' were
now i'rcc, I saitl, lotlepart, and to n)arry if they chose ;
but I was morally bound to provide for them if they
did n('t do so. We had lived loni; and happily to-
i;ether ; I could never suffer them to want, and I
should still provide for the etlucatioji and mainten
ance of m\' dear children and wives. The\' all replied
they accepted the sacrifice im[)o.scd, but they would
not leave mc unless compclletl to do so. It was
hard, very hard — a terrible rendin<;of family ties all
round - but I iiad to decide what I would do. M)
i!
'A
Mormon Land
:?53
ami
■ the
con-
\v;is
mcd,
• you
lUirly
r like
•thcr;
a'ouUl
r any
rinon-
il Sin ;
:rc far
lan «Mi
on to
wives
ly were
chose ;
if they
l)ily to-
atul 1
lainten
[lepHetl
wonUl
It was
Ities all
P. ^b
first wife was deatl. I resolveil tiu r^' sliould be no
heart -hurnin^fs. I would iienceforth have no wife
there siiouid be no jealousy and I now live apart
with the cinldrcn of my first wife. Hut we could not
break up the family social circle, and I try for the
sake of all to keep it to'f^ether. I built a lar<^c mom.
h'very morning" the ladies with their children meet mc
there as usual for readinj^ of the Hible and prayer.
We dine in the same hall. I'.ach mother sits at a
table with her own children, and that it may not be
saiil I sit down with my " wives " to dine, I h-ive a
table set apart for me with the children of my first
wife.'
As the old gentleman contiiuied talkinfj earnestly
and sensibly in ^his way, I could not helj) feeling how
different t!ie real MormcMi looked from the unscru-
pulous satyr and would-be ignorant assassin of the
popular imagination. Mr. Caiuion added,' I will not
conceal from )'ou -as you are a cleri^yman, and must
ha\e thou^lu. over this subject that we view the
future of our )'oun^ pco|)le with anxiety. 'I'he co
m-
munit)' has been sini^ularl)- blest and i)ro>perous.
We have enjoyed an immunit)' from intemperance,
crime, disorder and pauperism very unusual in large
cities, but our female poj)ulation is' as usual larfjel)' in
excess of the male, and there is, as there aiua;,s has
been.apreponderating luuuber of single women among
those who still emigrate to us. Presently the old pro-
blem will arise, how to provide for these women, what
to do with them ^ Wc had our .solution, but it has
not been accepted by the United States of America.
We look anxiously to sec what new .solution the old
Christian cities mean to provide. At [)re.scnt it can-
254
Travel and Talk
i;
not be said that in any city of the Old World the
Social Evil with all its frightful concomitants has been
even approximately dealt with. We believe that
nothing but the strictest marriage code and the most
inexorable regulation of the sexual instincts, on the
highest religious principles, can put an end to this
evil, and we did put an end to it. No one,* added
Mr. Cannon, ' who in the least grasps the stringent
conditions and continuous sacrifices involved in our
plural marriage system can suppose for a moment
that any man in his senses would adopt the practice
for licentious purposes. It is not only far more costly
than monogamy, but it makes more demands on the
judgment, forbearance, moderation, and self-restraint
of those who adopt it, and I think I may add that it
is a system which has produced some of the noblest
and most refined types of womanhood — I had almost
said sainthood — in Utah.' 4
In listening to the President, I began to under-
stand how he won his sobriquet of SmootJi-borc
Cannon in Congress.
Of course, when all is said and done, it is difficult
to speak too strongly in condemnation of the practice.
Though sanctioned in the Old Testament and no-
where expressly forbidden in the New, it is essentially
unfitted to Christian civilisation, inimical to the higher
culture and development of women, opposed to the
spirit of Christ's religion, and often fraught with
social disaster and family demoralisation. Hut, with-
out condemning Abraham, who was the ' Friend
of God I the patriarch Jacob, and a score of Old
Testament saints, whom we are taught to revere, it
would be difficult to maintain that the system of
plural marriage is in all ages and under all circuni-
nl
T
Mormon Land
255
the
ecn
:hat
lost
the
this
Ided
gent
I our
ment
LCtiCC
:ostly
n the
traint
:hat it
oblest
lUnost
under-
Ji-bore
stances inconsistent with faith ami j^oud works and a
life in some measure acceptable to God. Moreover,
the Mormons were undoubtedly sincere. Their con-
ditions seemed to them .somewhat similar to those of
the patriarchal times. They believed they had a
mission to found a nation of rij^hteousness unto the
Lord. They were driven into the wilderness a mere
handful of exiles surrounded by wild Indians (longj
before this happened Joseph Smith foresaw and
foretold it). There seemed no way of protecting the
numbers of poor women who joined their ranks except
by marrying them and providing for their children ;
the waste lands of Utah required peopling and tilling,
the villages and cities had to be defended, the more
stalwart children the better, ' and Jiappy ilhxs the man
who had his quiver full of them' They believed that
under these circumstances plural marriage had been
revived by Divine revelation in their favour. VV'c
may regret this as a mischievous illusion, we may
denounce it as an infraction of .social order and a blot
upon the purity of family life, but no one can con-
verse with any of the founders of Mormonism many
of whom are still living — without feeling convinced
that they did the wrong thing with the best intentions ;
and we may perhaps give them credit for abandoning
-'■ frankly as soon as it was pronounced illegal.
I am now, as an impartial recorder, bound to say
that I learned from General M'Cook, Commander-in-
Chief of the Forces in Utah, who kindly offered me
the hospitality of his private saloon car whilst I was
travelling in the territory, that, in his opinion, poly-
gamy, in spite of the law, had not been definitely
abandoned by the Mormons. I cannot say on what
grounds this opinion was founded. I put it plainly
\ v:
1 '■ I
256
TUAVKL AND TALK
to the rn)])lu:t Woodruff, who sits in the seat ot liri^-
iiam Younj^, whetiier this was so or not.
We were in the Council Ciiamber at Salt Lake City,
and the twelve apostles were present. Mr Woodruff, a
fine old gentleman of eiiihty-fivc (iiS^s), in full vigour
of mind and bod)', assured me — and he was supported
by the bishops and elders present — that all reports of
plural marriage since the legal decision against it were
utterly false, malicious, and libellous, and my atten-
tion was called to the following passage, which occurs
in an • Official Manifesto,' dated Salt Lake City,
December u, I1SS9, and signed by Prophet Woodruff:
' I therefore, as I'resident of the Church of Jesus
C hrist of Latter-Day Saints, do hereby most solemnly
declare that these charges arc false, vv'e are not
teaching polygamy, or plural marriage, nor permitting
any person to enter into its practice, and I deny that
either forty or any other number of plural marriages
have been solenniised during that period in cur
Temple, or in any other place in the territory. One
case has been reported ; whatever was done in this
matter was done without m>' kncjwlcdge. I have not
been able to learn who performed it, and the Endow-
ment House, in which it was .said to have been per-
formed, was by my instruction, on that ground, taken
down without delay.'
I will add one more sentence from this remarkably
concise and frank manifesto :
' Notwithstanding all the stories told about the
killing of apostates, no I'dse of this kind has ever
occurred, and, (jf course, lias never been established
against the Church \vc represent.'
1 have thought it right to say thus much with a
,i
Mormon Land
257
iri<;-
.'ity,
Li ff, a
goui-
)rtcd
rts of
were
illcn-
(ccurs
City,
drulT:
Jesus
cmnly
e not
flitting
\y that
rriages
n cur
One
in this
vc not
ndow-
Mi per-
, taken
Lfkably
)ut the
\js ever
)lished
[with a
view to disarming, at least, some prejudice by making
it clear —
First, that plural marriage was no part of original
Mormonism, nor any inseparable adjunct of it.
Secondly, that it was not conducted in such a
manner as to blight entirely the happiness, and cer-
tainly did not check the prosperity, of the people.
Thirdly, that it was frankly abandoned as soon as
it was declared to be illegal ; and
Lastly, that the wholesale charges of assassination
launched against Brigham Young have never, in any
one single instance, been proved. Such are the bold
assertions now confidently made by the Latter-Day
Mormons.
In the matter of non-conviction, IJrigham Young
may fairly challenge comparison with the rounder
Prophet, Joseph Smith. Joseph Smith was fre-
quently arrested and imprisoned ; he was brought
up before the courts no less than thirty-nine times
on different charges, sedition, murder, immorality,
robbery, &c. &c. ; the juries were often packed, and
the judges were always prejudiced — fieirr on any one
occasion zvas he convicted, never was any one crime
proved against him. Joseph Smith was at last assas-
sinated at the early age of thirty-eight, by a fanatical
mob, without a hearing, without a sentence, and with-
out a judge.
As Joseph Smith, the Mormon prophet, has for
sixty years been gibbeted before the whole of Chris-
tendom as an impostor, and a knave of the fust water,
I need make no apology for introducing here a
brief sketch of his career, and a fair if not altogether
sympathetic estimate of a man whose ecclesiastical
and political achievements were as singular as they
VOL. I S
l< 1;
I J
T; I
258
Travel and Talk
were colossal ; who certainly had the courage of his
opinions, and was not innvillinj:^, thoiij^h by no means
anxious, to lay down his life for them.
When at last he ^ave himself up voluntarily to the
police, well knowing that he could expect no justice
or protection, but was about to fall into the hands of
an angry mob, he exclaimed, ' / go like a lamb to the
slaughter, but I am calm as a summer's morn ! *
I
LXIV
Rise ok Joskimi Smith. Joseph Smith, the Pro-
phet and founder of Mormonism, was born in the year
of our Lord 1805 at Sharon County, Windsor State,
X'^ermont. lie was one of a large family. Mis father
and mother, farmers, were both very religious people
indeed, his mother laid claim to special revelations.
She was always seeing visions, dreaming dreams, sing-
ing psalms, and telling fortunes. This sort of religion
was by no means uncommon in those days in America,
which was at that time profoundly agitated by a great
wave of evangelical reaction that had spread somewhat
earlier from ICngland. The usual jarring disputation
atul hair-splitting of doctrine followed, which resulted
not unnatural 1)' in the acute and ardent mind of
Joseph Smith being driven to the verge of scepticism,
when sudtlenly he lighted on the text, ' If any man
lack wisdom, let him ask of God.' Smith, being
grievously tossed in spirit, retired into the summer
woods 'and asked of God.' A vision then appeared
to him. ' / saw a pillar of light above the brightness
of the sun, ivhich descended upon me. I felt myself
delivered from my enemy the devil! Two angelic
t
Mormon Land
259
beings now appeared, whu told him that all the sects
were wrong, and had departed from the religion ^^
Jesus, which was the only true one. This was the
beginning of a series of spiritual communications
which ended in Joseph Smith receiving a commission
to restore the true religion with certain additions.
And this ' Restoration ' is now the faith of the Lattcr-
Day Saints.
igclic
LXV
Tun Book of Mormon. -He was sent to visit the
Hill of Amorah, some thirty miles from Rochester City.
There he dug, and found a stone box. In the box
were certain gold plates inscribed with Egyptian
writings, also a curious jewelled belt or breastplate,
apparently divination crystals or a Urim and Thum-
mim. He visited the Hill of Amorah three years run-
ning, and on the fourth year he was allowed to re-
move the golden plates. His family, who were at first
incredulous, now became his ardent disciples, so did
his young wife, Emma Hale, whom he had recently
married. Oliver Cowdrey, Maxim Harris, and David
Whitmer were the three witnesses who declared they
had seen these gold plates ; but, I gather, very much
as St. Paul sazij Jesus — in a kind of vision.
It was further said that, after Joseph Smith, with
the aid of the sacred crystals, had translated the
Egyptian letters, a copy of the plate and translation
was inspected by Professors Michell and Anthon,
of Columbia College, New York, who declared the
writing to be Egyptian and the translation fairly
correct ; but unfortunately the professors' certificate
has not been forthcoming. When the plates, which
b 2
5.
J.
^>.
-'^^ Vi
^>,
v]
<^
/2
^m
y
¥^
IMAGE EVALUATION
TEST TARGET (MT-3)
1.0
I.I
U^|28 195
■ 50 l"^" F M^
^
IL25 II U 11.6
Photographic
Sdences
Corporation
%
//
{./
% .<.5':
A
f/.
id
;\
V
^^
\\
^
23 WEST MAIN STREET
WEBSTER, NY. 14580
(716) 872-4503
26o
Travel and Talk
were in fact the ' IBook of Mormon,' had been trans-
lated, the angel took them away, and so the evidence
for their existence rests on Joseph and the vision of
the three witnesses ; the professors arc rather out of
it. The ' Book of Mormon ' was given to the world
in 1830.
This is the other account of the discovery of the
' Book of Mormon.' About 18 16 died one Solomon
Spaulding. This ingenious person seems to have
written an imaginary account of how America was
peopled in ancient times. He called it the ' Jl/S.
Found.' After his death it was ^ found', no doubt, on
a dusty shelf by a printer named Patterson. It
subsequently fell into one Sidney Rigdon's hands.
Joseph Smith was a friend o* Sidney Rigdon--and
' there you have it all ! ' So the * MS. Found ' is by the
enemies of the Mormons declared to be identical
Vv'ith the ' Book of Mormon.'
There are, however, flaws in this explanation.
Spaulding's MS. was not heard of until three years
after the ' Book of Mormon ' was issued. When
compared with Joseph's ' Translation ' — for the pur-
pose of exposing Joseph — it was found * totally unlike'
and consequently suppressed, three witnesses de-
claring, but without any proof, that it was ' quite like!
In 1884 (and tnis is the only solid fact for which
there seems any real evidence) the Spaulding MS.
turned up again. President James H. Fairchild, of
Oberlin College, Ohio, was looking over some of Mr.
Rice's MSS. in search of anti-slavery documents,
when he came on a package marked ' MS. Story,'
which proved to be none other than Solomon
Spaulding's 'MS. Found.' In 1840 Mr. Rice ex-
%\
.1:^;
ans-
snce
•n of
It of
^orld
f the
)mon
have
a was
' MS.
bt, on
1. It
:iands.
— and
by the
sntical
lation.
years
When
le pur-
de-
like:
which
r MS.
ild, of
f Mr.
ments,
Story,'
lomon
e ex-
is
ie
D
Mormon Land
261
plained that he had purchased from the publisher
of * Mormonism Unveiled ' the ' business and effects.'
The MS., which had originally been bought from
Spaulding's widow, had not been found of any use for
the purpose of exposing Joseph Smith, and had been
laid aside or * suppressed.'
In 1886 the MS. v/as at last published, and is
totally distinct from Joseph Smith's work ; and so
this explanation of the * Book of Mormon ' sccrns
to vanish from the controversi- after havinc: becji
accepted for sixt)' years.
From the above statements it will appear that the
Inspiration theory of the ' Book of Mormon ' rests
upon slender evidence enough, but that the fraud
explanation rests on no evidence at all.
And now, what is the * Book of Mormon,' or what
does it profess to be ?
The ' Book of Mormon ' claims to be the record
of two ^rc C.L *-aces that lived on the American
continent before the days of Columbus. The book,
indeed, goes back to ihe Tower of Babel, but we need
not start from the Old World before the time of
Joseph, one of whose descendants — Lehi — under
one Nephi, built a ship, crossed the ' great waters,'
landed in America, and peopled it North and South.
A whole section of the people— called the Lamanitcs,
or Darkskins — proved rebellious, and rose up against
the more pious and cultured descendants of Nephi.
To these appeared last Jesus, shortly after His Resur-
rection, and gave them special religious instruction.
About the same time a kind of Atlantean catastrophe
overwhelmed the majority of the Lamanites, but the
Transatlantic Church of Christ took root amongst the
Nephites, who proceed to enjoy two hundred years of
ivl
m\
11
m
\\- f ■ i
1;
• f
;
1
1
■»
£ :
i
1 -t
1
(J
262
Travel and Talk
..i
peace and plenty. But the usual degeneration sets in.
It is now the turn of the remnant Lamanites ; they rise
and overwhelm with slaughter the Nephites, but not
before the Nephite General and Prophet Mormon
has committed the records of his people to the care
of Moroni, his son, together with the divination
crystals — Urim and Thummim ; these are buried in
a stone box in the Hill of Amorah about A.D. 420,
and these are found b}' Joseph Smith in 1823. This
book contains the Gospel according to Joseph
Smith ; it does not supersede the Old or New
Testament — it supplements both. It deals with
Faith, Original Sin, the Work of Christ, the Gift of
the Spirit, the Organisation of the Church, Marriage,
the Dead, the Life Everlasting, and a variety of
kindred topics. It is always dogmatic, and often
dull ; but the same has been said of the Bible by
those who do not believe in it ; and to the converts of
Joseph Smith it proved an invaluable text-book, tens
of thousands having been converted by it to the
* Faith ' so recently delivered to the Latter-Day
Saints.
LXVI
Rise of the Church.— In 1830 the new church
was started at Fayette, Seneca County, N.Y. Smith
ordained Oliver Cowdery, and Oliver Cowdery ordained
Smith. The numbers soon swelled to forty — apostles,
evangelists, and missioners were appointed. Wholesale
baptism by immersion now took place, and the spec-
tacle of these strange people, male and female, plunging
and dipping into the open streams from planks stretched
across them seems to have excited the first popular
h\
r-Day
Mormon Land
263
attacks. Smith and his followers soon had to leave
Fayette — it was the bcginninq- of a series of expul-
sions which ended only with the settlement in Utah,
and of persecutions which have hardly yet ceased.
Not long afterwards Joseph Smith was arrested for
preaching the * Book of Mormon,' but was released
almost immediately.
The united church next removed to Ohio, and
founded in Jackson County the city of New Sion.
But the same hatred dogs the Mormon footsteps
Their numbers increase continually — in a short time
in Missouri alone they swell to 1,200. Joseph now
performs miracles — casts out devils, heals the sick,
and even raises the dead. Many dubious and some
startling tales were current about him. We know
that Mahomet had to go to the mountain because the
mountain would not come to Mahomet, so on one
occasion it is said that Smith promised to walk on
the water, and having assembled a crowd, took off his
shoes and stockings and inquired if the people had
faith to believe. They all loudly swore they believed,
upon which Smith put on his shoes and stockings
again, and said that was quite sufficient, for It was
written that those were * more blessed who had not
seen and ye': had believed.'
On another occasion he proposed to he-'^' two sick
women who died very shortly, but Smith said the
miracle was just as good, for they had both departed
in peace, which was * far better.' These may or not
be idle and malicious tales, but it is not unlikely that
so shrewd a man was sometimes tempted to answer
fools according to their folly, and we read of One
whose miracles we do not qucation Who was also
'■'.)
■'j
?64
Tkavki. and Talk
habitually importuned for them and bitterly com-
plained of for not performing them.
An amusing story is told of the prophet, who
once received a visit from a man determined to get
a miracle out of him. Smith absolutely refused ; but
being unable to get rid of the fellow, he turned sharply
on him with, ' Will you be struck deaf or dumb or
blind ? Whichever you choose, you shall have it.'
It is recorded that the man at once beat a hasty
retreat in the utmost terror.
LXVIl
New Sign. — For a short time the New Sion
seemed to be a success. The prophet reigned
supreme, and converts flocked — even the missions
sent out to the Indians (the Lamanites) were not
without fruit. But the Protestant ministers of mis-
sions incited the people to rise against the Mormons.
Life and property in New Sion ceased to be secure —
even the protection of the law was withheld ; and on
October 31, 1833, the saints were attacked by a
furious mob, houses were burned, women and children
brutally maltreated, and several Mormons killed and
wounded. Another furious and final attack was
made in November — the police looking on and
doing nothing.
* Armed bands of ruffians,' writes an eye-witness,
* ranged the country in every direction — bursting into
houses and threatening the defenceless people with
death if they did not flee. Out upon the bleak
prairie, along the Missouri's banks, chilled by
November's winds and drenched by pouring rains,
hungry and shelterless, weeping and heart-broken,
litness,
\g into
with
bleak
by
rains,
Iroken,
MoKMON Land
265
wandered forth the exiles. FamiHcs scattered and
divided, husbands seekin;^ wives, wives husbands,
parents seeking for their children, not knowing if they
were yet alive.'
Many thousands were thus compelled to cross the
Missouri River in open boats in the middle of a dark
November night, robbed of everything but the
clothes on their backs, and going they knew not
whither. But Joseph Smith was not idle : he covered
their retreat with an armed force, and even tried to re-
take the city. He was ubiquitous, exhorting, cheering
peo-^le, praying with and comforting his followers.
As the weeks rolled on they found themselves dis-
persed but still living, and persecution seemed only
to swell their numbers and strengthen their faith.
Never for a moment did Smith losr, confidence in his
mission. Through all difficulties with fixed purpose
he marched on in the very teeth of misfortune,
exhibiting, as even his enemies admit, unrivalled
coolness, sagacity, and personal courage.
His pov/crs of fascination must indeed have been
remarkable. Whenever he fairly faced his accusers,
and got any sort of hearing, from mob to magistrate,
he scored^ — the people vacillating if not won, the
guards conniving at his escape, the magistrates (con-
spicuously the Senators at Washington) refusing to
convict or condemn, shuffling, excusing themselves,
and, on the last fatal day, fairly running away, and
leaving the prisoner, whom they were bound to protect,
to his lawless murderers.
On one occasion, the authorities, wishing to put
an end to the riots, sent a body of troops to take
Smith. The officers found him at his mother's house
1
•nil
%
( a
f^'
m
I'
n
;■&!
ii
I
I
,'1
266
Travet. and Talk
writing a letter. He said, when he had done writing
he would attend to them, and proceeded quietly to
finish his letter. His mother then addressed the
officers : * Gentlemen, let me make you acquainted
with Joseph Smith the Prophet.' They stared at
him as if he were a spectre ; but Joseph, rising from
his bureau, stepped forward, and shaking hands with
them all in a kindly and fraternal manner, smilingly
bade them be seated. He then sat down, and
explained to them his views on religion, dwell-
ing with great calmness but deep pathos on the
sufferings which he and his people had undergone for
the faith. The men forgot their unwelcome errand,
and when Joseph turned to his mother and said, ' I
believe I will go home now, Emma [his wife] will be
expecting me,' two of the officers sprang to their
feet, and declared they would accompany him to his
door, and protect his person from injury ; and so
ended the arrest.
On another occasion, his rough body-guards, who
were stationed in his cell, and did not leave him day
or night, were so much moved by his sublime dis-
course and serenity that they fell at his feet, and
with sobs implured him to pardon them for carrying
out their instructions, seeing plainly that he was a
' holy man.'
Expelled from New Sion, the Prophet was now
hunted from place to place, but he shared all perils
and dangers in common with his followers, and
though often arrested would frequently escape, and
appear suddenly amongst them, and comfort them
with some new revelation. His prophecies were con-
sidered remarkable, though perhaps hardly beyond
■^^
Mormon Land
267
riting
tly to
d the
linted
ed at
I from
is with
ilingly
1, and
dwell-
Dn the
one for
errand,
said, ' I
will be
to their
n to his
and so
ds, who
im day
me dis-
et, and
;arrying
was a
:as now
ill perils
jrs, and
Lpe, and
rt them
fere con-
beyond
the speculations of a man of such keen insight. He
foretold the expulsion from Nauvoo (their next city),
his own assassination, the subscqiiont wanderings of
his people, their settlement at the Salt Lake, the
attempted disruption of the States, and the war of
North against South. He never had the smallest
doubt of the ultimate triumph of his cause ; and
his people, notwithstanding cases of apostasy and
occasional internal dissension, clung to him with an
a.stonishing ardour of devotion.
It was early apparent that such a life must close
with martyrdom. But the end was not yet — one
more brilliant act has to be played out before the
curtain falls on the last tragedy at Carthage City.
LXVHI
Nauvoo. — Leaving the State of Missouri — having
been expelled from no less than nine counties — the
tireless Mormons formed a new city, or rather rcchris-
tened and recreated the old city of commerce on the
banks of the Mississippi, * the Father of Waters.'
They call it Nauvoo — ' the beautiful.' In 1841 Con-
gress recognised Smith as head of the community, and
granted Nauvoo a most liberal charter. Smith was
also empowered to raise an armed force for the
protection of his people. Nothing could exceed the
industry and order which now reigned at Nauvoo.
Every trade flourished, and the land round the city
became as the Garden of Eden. The Prophet him-
self was continually seen conversing affably with the
lowest of the people, and his word was law.
A magnificent temple was begun, the women
r.
I
,■1
i I
Pi
1^
r
? i
II:
268
Tkavkl AM) Talk
f. I
giving up even their trinkets and the men their free
labour. Hut such sudden prosperity not only excited
the bitter envy of neighbours, but also roused a spirit
of greedy internal rivalry and opposition. A news-
paper now appeared which every week printed libels
on Joseph and showered abuse on the Saints.
The Prophet razed its offices to the ground.
This was his first false step. A howl went
through America that the Mormons were afraid of
publicity, that the plurality of wives which had now
been avowed covered naineless horrors of tyrann}'
and even murder ; that the liberty of the press had
been openly assailed by the destruction of the ' Even-
ing and Morning Star ' offices ; and that the Prophet
Joseph was a man of immoral character. Notwith-
.standing this Joseph Smith, backed by a numericall)-
powerful Mormon constituency, became a candidate
for the Presidency of the United States.
This was his second false move, and from that
moment much of his sagacity and even some of his
nerve seemed to forsake him.
LXIX
Causes of UNroPULARixv. — Before I record the
last shocking scene which so prematurely closed the
stormy life of the Mormon Prophet, it may be well to
ask and to answer the very natural question, why did
the Mormons, if they were so industrious, sober, orderly,
prosperous, and law-abiding, so invariably suffer from
unpopularity and persecution ? There were man)'
reasons besides the provoking arrogance of fanaticism :
the following four may here suffice ;
Mormon Land
269
ir free
xcited
I spirit
news-
] libels
1 went
"raid of
id now
:yrann3'
[jss had
« Even-
Prophct
lotvvith-
lericall)'
indidat.e
10m that
le of his
cord the
)sed the
well to
why did
orderly,
fer from
many
ticism :
(1) The Mormons were the eailiest and most
openly avowed Abolitionists, at a time when slavery
throughout America was held almost as sacred as the
Gospel. Joseph Smith even had a State scheme for
buying up and liberating all the slaves under certain
conditions and safeguards.
(2) The Mormons were advanced spiritualists,
believing in manifestations and messages from the
dead when ' all that sort of thing ' was tabooed as
'humbug' or denounced as 'diabolical.' In both
these matters the Morm.ons were about forty years
or more before their age, and suffered accordingly.
Ultimately the State adopted the Abolitionist view
for which these unhappy people were persecuted, and
the U.S.A. Government spent untold blood and trea-
sure in carrying Abolition by force instead of adopting
the pacific plans of Joseph Smith.
Ultimately, too, society at large has learned at
least to tolerate spiritualism and occultism, and some
of our foremost leading men of science and literature
now attest the truth of mediumistic and suchlike phe-
nomena, for which the Mormons were tarred and
feathered in the forties.
(3) Plural marriage has always been abhorrent to
Christian people, even among those who are prepared
to protect and legalise sexual irregularity, and wink
at other social evils of ever-increasing magnitude and
irrepressibility.
(4) The numerical increase of the Mormons
enabled them in many districts to give a casting
vote, to appoint State magistrates and even deputies
for Congress. Now, as the Mormons invariably re-
fused to place corrupt men in office, and declined
bribes, anyone who knows how politics are managed
If
r .f
2/0
Travel and Talk
in AmLM-ica and the sort of people who pull the wires
and get many of the plums, can imagine the extent
to which the Mormon interference with ' political
business' aroused a powerful and organised political
hatred against them wherever they went.
They may have been ridiculed for their sui)cr-
stitions, but they were chiefly persecuted for their
virtues.
LXX
Death of the rkoi'HET. — Let us now hear the
end of Joseph Smith.
Soon after the destruction of the libellous ' Star '
offices, when the thoroughfares of the beautiful and
stately Nauvoo were disfigured by ugly knots of mal-
contents, who thronged the squares and streets shout-
ing, ' Death to the Prophet ! ' a nucleus had been at
last formed, round which all the various elements of
disaffection could readily and plausibly gather.
From the neighbouring town of Carthage an
officer was despatched by Government to investigate
the matter. Thomas Fox, the officer, decided against
Smith, and advised him to surrender for trial. Know
ing what this meant, Smith declared he would not go
to Carthage to be assassinated by his enemies ; but
his vacillation, almost timidity, was now as remark-
able as his matchless foresight and courage had pre-
viously been.
He had the clearest forebodings of his coming
doom, which, however, he regarded with resignation,
as he intimated that perhaps his work was done, and
others would now be able to carry it on.
But he was sensibly drifting, and he knew it.
^vires
xtcnt
litical
iiticai
supcr-
thcir
car the
' Star '
"ul and
of mal-
s shout-
been at
lents of
age an
[estigate
against
Know
not go
jes ; but
Iremark-
ad pre-
coming
Ignation,
)ne, and
it.
Mormon Land
271
Like a man in a small open boat borne on by the
irresistible current of the Niagara Rapids toward the
Ci
he h(
the
roar of plungmg waters,
but he cannot stay his own frail bark.
Agitated by sucli sinister presentiments, at two
o'clock one morning Smith crossed the Mississippi,
intending to retire towards the Rocky Mountains, but
he had not gone far when a message overtook him
from his wife Emma, entreating him to give himself up
to the Government, as on the whole the safest course.
Firm no longer, he yielded, and rccrossed the
Mississippi, and on the same day, in company with
fifteen others charged with violating the Constitution,
he was conveyed into Carthage, under the strictest
promises of personal protection.
They entered the city at midnight, and, notwith-
standing the lateness of the hour, the streets were full
of excited people. An uproar seemed imminent.
Joseph passed through the crowd, amidst the lurid
glare of torches, and the shouting of a v/ild mob, who
threatened every instant to spring upon him, and tear
him from the guards.
The next day the Prophet was brought up before
the Court, charged with high treason ; what the sen-
tence might have been no one will ever know, for it
never was pronounced. The Governor, apparently in
perplexity, or seized with a panic, had suddenly left
the eity, and taken with him the only force available
for the protection of the doomed prisoner.
Joseph and his companions were confined in a
large upper room.
The day — one of those sultry days in June — wore
heavily on.
i S '
'■
i { I)
^ii
I
273
Travel and Talk
i;
About four o'clock they dined. It was a sad meal
— it was the last meal Joseph the Prophet and his
friends ever ate together.
Soon after, the Apostle John Taylor, happening
to glance out of the window, saw several ill-looking
fellows with blackened faces slink round the corner
of the gaol and disappear ; they were armed with
muskets anil crowbars. Were they making for the
entrance ? Would they attempt to force the gaol
door ? Could anyone prevent them .■'
The prisoners waited in the profound silence of
agonising suspense. I'^vcry noise, every footstep, was
listened for with intense anxiety. The tension v/as
growing unbearable. 1^'ive o'clock struck slowly. It
was the death-knell of the Mormons ; for at that
moment there reached them from below a clamour of
many voices — the report of firearms— a wild shout —
a mighty crash — the gaol door had been burst open,
and along the passage that led to the prisoners' room
came the rush and tramp of armed men.
William Richards, one of the Mormons, now
rushed to the door to oppose their entry ; a bullet was
sent through the panel, which hit Hyram Smith, the
I'rophet's brother, in the face. He cried out, * I am
a dead man ! ' and fell backwards. Joseph looked
towards him, and responded, ' O dear brother Hyram ! '
He then went to the door, and holding it half open,
fired his revolver into the passage ; a dozen muskets
and pikes were immediately thrust into the room, but
Smith shot two men ; then the pistol hung fire. The
Mormon still held the door, but the pressure was be-
coming irresistible. A volley of balls came rattling
in ; the Mormon struggled and fell ; the door, torn
from its hinges, came down with a crash.
U,
!
1 mciil
id his
)cninfj
x)king
corner
d with
for the
ic t^aol
3ncc oT
ep, was
ion v/as
^'ly. It
at that
mour of
shout —
3t open,
-s' room
IS, now
llet was
lith, the
:, ' I am
looked
lyram ! '
If open,
uskets
lom, but
e. The
was be-
I rattHng
l)or, torn
MORiMON T.ANl)
2/3
• The Prophet then rushed to the window and at -
tempted to leap out. At that moment he was pierced
by two balls, and fell into the prison yard below, cry-
ing as he fell, • O Lord, my God ! '
The mob rushed into the yard. ' I reached my
head out of the window,' writes an eye-witness, ' re-
gardless of my own life, determined to see the end of
him whom I loved.*
The dying Prophet was now propped up against the
wall, and mutilated by his fall and his wounds, received
four more shots, which put an end to him.
■ • * • • • •
At five o'clock in the afternoon next day the bodies
of Joseph and Hyram Smith were borne into the city
of Nauvoo -the ' beautiful ' Nauvoo which they had
founded. The whole population streamed out to meet
them. None knew till then how deeply the Prophet
was loved and reverenced by his {)e()ple ; even his
enemies seemed at last silenced and overawed. As
the densely thronged funeral procession passed along,
strong men were seen to weep, and the air was filled
with the sobbing and crying of women and children.
LXXI
Estimate of Joseph Smith.— The elements of
truth in the Mormon religion which explain its success,
as also the qualities of the Mormons which account for
their prosperity, are not far to seek nor hard to find ;
but I must defer for the moment any remarks upon
that aspect of the subject.
It is, however, impossible here not to ask and
attempt to answer one pressing question :
VOL. I T
U
> 1 I i
2;4
Travel and Talk
'-
Was Joseph Smith himself an impostor ?
His career appears, it must be confessed, remark-
ably free from those stains of impurity which so often
mark the lives of unprincipled adventurers. His ad-
ministration at Nauvoo was brilliant, successful and
uncorrupt. The people beneath his rule were quiet,
honest and industrious. The general tone of morality
in the city (matrimonial premises being granted) was
sound if not elevated. These are stubborn facts, and
if a religion is to be known by its fruits it would be
difficult to ascribe the faith and works of the Mormons
to a totally impure source or a grossly immoral
prophet.
Did Smith lie when he reported his vision — lie
when he declared himself in possession of the golden
plates ? Did he, or the three witnesses, ever sec angels
or the plates in anything but a vision ? When Smith
dictated the translation by the aid of Urim and Thum-
mim behind a curtain, was he entranced ? Did he
practise automatic writing, or believe himself moved
to prophesy, or was he a conscious fraud all the time .'*
These are questions which it may be easier to
answer favourably to Smith now than it would have
been sixty years ago. Of late days, mainly through
the energy of Mr. Stead, the Psychical Society, Dr.
Charcot, and a crowd of hypnotists as they aie now
called, we have become somewhat wearisomely familiar
with the phenomena of trances, visions, apparitions,
and materialisations, clairaudience, clairvoyance, sug-
gestion, automatic writing, faith healing, and Christian
science. With the aid of these abnormal addenda of
occult science — now vouched for by Mr. Crookes, by
Mr. Wallace, our oldest, and Mr. Oliver Lodge, our
youngest scientist of first-class repute — it would, I
Mormon Land
275
think, not be difficult to make out a fair case for
the integrity of Joseph Smith. Such an explanation
would not probably satisfy the Saints, but it has at
least the merit of clearing their Prophet's character
in the eyes of the outside world.
It is now, I suppose, evident that some people have
remarkable visions, which, howe r subjective they may
be in reality, appear to them at the time objective, as
indeed do all dreams while they last.
It is also certain that by suggestion others can be
got to see and feel what those in hypnotic rapport with
them see and feel, and no one can read the life of
Joseph Smith without strongly suspecting that those
who were much with him began to see and feel very
much what he said or thought he saw and felt. The
extraordinary and often half-paralysing fascination he
exercised over everyone with whom he had the op-
portunity of conversing may probably be referred, in
a measure, to the same cause ; indeed, at times and
with some people, we are all of us more or less mes-
meric and hypnotised.
I myself am disposed to believe that Smith, finding
himself subject to abnormal influences and in possession
of extraordinary powers which he did not understand
and could not always control, sometimes attempted
miracles that failed, whilst at other times he succeeded.
The effects produced upon him by his visions, and the
real powers he exercised, fairly convinced him that he
was an anointed prophet, and in possession of Divine
gifts, and being convinced himself, he not unnaturally
convinced others. The phenomenon is by no means
rare ; it is, indeed, of everyday occurrence. The phe-
nomenal foundations of Mormonism, in fact, differ if
T 2
1
i
I
, 1
>
1
:
■
r
I
ii
I I
I \
h
^i
Ii >■
276
Travel and Talk
at all, only in eccentricity and device from the psychic
phenomena which accompany all religious revivals from
the days of the Apostles to the Anabaptists of Munster
and the Irvingite tongues.
I shall pass over the sad monotony of those severe
persecutions which immediately followed the death of
the Prophet, and landed finally in the expulsion of
the Latter-Day Saints from Nauvoo.
I shall now have to accompany the fugitive Mor-
mons in their wanderings over not less than 2,000 miles
of wild and desolate country until they reach the pro-
mised land ; and I shall close with an eye-witness's
glimpse of Salt Lake City as it appeared to me under
the auspices of the Prophet Woodruff, who sits in the
seat of Brigham Young, the President, the Bishops,
and the twelve Apostles, who, in October 1893, were
good enough to show me their beautiful city and to
converse with me very freely upon their past history
and future prospects, and who, I am bound to say,
however mistaken we may believe them to be, did
not at all resemble those monsters of iniquity which
some people who have never been near them suppose
them to be.
VM
LXXII
The Exodus. — The murderers of Joseph and Hy-
ram Smith were easily arrested ; they were tried — and
acquitted. It was ruled that anyone who despatched
such vermin as the Prophet and his friends deserved
well of the Territory. This may have been fine
patriotism — it was hardly sound law ; but it had now
become evident that the law was not for the Mormons.
bl
y^chic
from
inster
;evere
ath of
ion of
; Mor-
D miles
le pro-
itnes'-'s
I under
5 in the
►ishops,
13, were
and to
history
to say,
be, did
which
uppose
nd Hy-
Id — and
)atched
^served
m fine
lad now
)rmons.
Mormon Land
277
The arrest of Brigham Young, who had been
chosen as Joseph's successor, was next considered
needful to ' stamp out the Mormons ; ' but one Mr.
Miller put on the Prophet's coat and hat, and, being
rather like him, marched out quietly and gave himself
up to the officers of justice ; nor did they discover
their mistake until they got their prisoner into Car-
thage gaol, when they had to discharge him. Mean-
while Brigham had judiciously gone into hiding.
* tf • • • • ft
The snow lay deep on the banks of the Missis-
sippi ; the river was frozen hard. In the distance, far
above the houses, rose the tall spire of the new temple
glittering in the pale sunlight. The scanty trees in
the valley were covered with snow. The fields and
prairie land, so lately bright with gold and crimson
flowers, lay bare and silent, and beyond, far as the
eye could reach, ranged the snowy summits of the
Illinois hills. It was at such a season of the year, in
the month of January, that the Mormons, pursued
and persecuted by their relentless foes, were forced to
leave the city they had reared with so much labour
and industry, and, gathering together as much of
their property as they could carry, crossed the Missis-
sippi on the ice. These were pioneers who. went to
prepare a way for those who should follow them in
the spring. Under the most favourable circumstances
an expedition of this kind is accompanied with great
danger and hardship.
The distance they had to travel was immense, the
country in many places was infested with hostile
Indians, they were badly supplied with provisions,
and the cold was intense.
The north-east winds, which come down in snowy
i s
i \
\ I
1 V,
i I
278
Travel and Talk
{} ■■ I :
ll i
gusts from the Iowa peninsula, swept the bleak prairies
over which they had to travci. The annual autumn
fires, which rage with tremendous fury over the grassy
flats, had left little wood fit for camp fires, and after a
hard day's march the night was often passed by the
pilgrims in restless efforts to keep themselves from
freezing to death ! Their food, too, soon proved
miserably inadequate, and as their systems became
impoverished, their sufferings from the cold increased.
Many fell a prey to catarrhal affections and acute
rheumatism, and almost all got dreadfully frost-bitten.
At times it took them the whole day to lim}. a few
slow miles through the deep snows, but still they
struggled bravely on.
.t
Spring came at last. It overtook them still on
the nakcrl prairie, not yet halfway across the tract of
land which lies between the Missouri and the Missis-
sippi rivers, and there they seemed likely to stop ; for
the sleet and rain, which appeared to the poor
Mormons to fall incessantly, had turned the impass-
able snowdrift into still more impassable mud ; the
streams, which they had crossed easily on the ice,
thawed and overflowed their banks, and as there was
often no wood fit for bridges, they had to halt some-
times for three or four weeks until the waters subsided.
These were dreary waitings upon Providence ! The
most spirited now began to lose courage. The
women, whose heroic fortitude had been proof against
every other misfortune, now began to complain that
the health of their children was giving way. The
March and April winds brought with them mortal
disease, and the frequent burials on the road made the
hardiest sicken. It is a strange tribute to the general
. f
Mormon Land
i79
hopefulness of human nature that no one had thought
of providing undertakers' articles. The corpse was
usually folded up in the bark of trees and thus plunged
hurriedly into one of the undistinguishable waves of
the great land sea. Such graves mark all the line of
the first year of the Mormon march. But in the
midst of their troubles they did not forget their
brethren, and it is a most affecting proof of the fore-
thought and self-sacrifice of these poor people that
out of their scanty stores of grain they managed to
sow large tracts of arable land on the way, and there
left a future harvest for those to reap who would
follow them in the autumn. Before the end of spring
several caravans had set out from Nauvoo, but a
remnant was still left, and, strange to say, these people
employed their last days in finishing their beautiful
temple. Meanwhile, their enemies pressed on them
ruthlessly ; but they succeeded in parrying the last
sword thrust until they had completed even the gild-
ing of the angel on the summit of the lofty spire. At
high noon, under the bright May sunshine, they con-
secrated their temple to Divine service. Nothing
could exceed the pomp and magnificence of the
opening ceremony. It was said that the high ciders
of the sect travelled secretly from the camp of Israel
into the wilderness, and throwing off their disguise,
appeared in their own stately robes of office to give
the ceiemony splendour.
t '
li
But the last days of Nauvoo had now arrived.
The remaining Mormons had obtained a truce in
order to sell their lands and possessions ; but long
before the appointed time their enemies lost all
patience, and in September 1 844 troops entered the
28o
Travel and Talk
h
It J
e' I
city and drove out the remain in<^ inhabitants. None
were spared : weakly mothers and their infants,
dcHcate younj^ pjirls, old and infirm men, bereaved
and sick jjcople -they drove them from their lands
and houses, they drove them from their homesteads
and their workshops. The carpenter left his bench
and shavings, tlic spinner left his wheel, the tanner
left the fresh bark in his vat, the blacksmith his coal
heaps and mass of unwrought iron. They left the
ashes white upon the hearths, they left the unfinished
meal. Outside, the dahlias and the poppies, the crim-
son hollyhocks and the golden sunflowers, stood
blooming in the Mormon gardens. Fields upon fields
of heavy-headed yellow corn lay rotting, ungathcrcd,
far as the e}c could reach, stretching away in the
hazy autumn light like a rippling sea of gold.
Night came on, and the homeless wanderers en-
camped on the dreary flats of the river. There,
among the dock and rushes, sheltered only by the
darkness, crowds of human beings lay down for the
night. Dreadful indeed were the sufferings of these
forsaken people, bowed and cramped with cold and
sunburn, as the hot days succeeded the cold of bitter
nights. They could not satisfy the feeble cravings
of their sick ; they had not bread to quiet the fractious
hunger cries of their children. Mothers and babes,
daughters and granddaughters, were bivouacked in
tatters, without even the covering to comfort those
whom the sick shiver of fever was searching to the
very marrow. But still they struggled on Many
caravans had passed before them, and soon they began
to reap the produce of rich fields, and to avail them-
selves of the landmarks traced out by their fore-
runners. Thus they were not without their consola-
Mormon Land
281
lions; but as the autumn advancctl,andthc rainyscason
set in, disease increased, and at last, to crown all, a
sort of plague broke out. The distress of the Saints
now exceeded all their previous sufferings. In some
caravans the fever prevailed to such an extent that
hardly any escaped. They let their cows go unmilked ;
they wanted voices to raise the psalm on Sundays
The few who were able to keep on their feet went
about amongst the tents and waggons with food and
water like nurses through the wards of an infirniary.
Here, at one time, the digging got behindhand, burials
were slow, and you might see women sit in the open
tents keeping the flies off their dead children who
waited in vain for burial.
Thus passed the autumn and the following winter,
and when the spring came round things began to
mend. First, f1">ere were stations all along the route,
travelling became comparatively safe and easy, and
then there were great station camps established for
the relief of those smaller bands of fugitives who
were constantly arriving in a state of complete ex-
haustion. Nothing could exceed the eager hope with
which these small bands of fugitives would push on
for the great Papillon camp.
The following incident, which occurred there, is
a touching illustration of Mormon hopefulness and
energy. Poor Meriman was a joyous-hearted and
clever fellow whose songs and fiddle tunes had been
the life of Nauvoo in its merry days. When he set
out he was recovering from an illness, and the fatigue
of marching with a child on his back brought on a
speedy relapse ; but this made him only the more
anxious to reach the camp. For more than a week of
f.
I ;:
it '
ii .1
1; •
1 ''
i ^'
ii
282
Travel and Talk
the dog-star weather he laboured on under a high fever>
walking every day till he was quite exhausted. His
limbs failed him at last, but his courage holding out,
he got into his covered cart and bade them drive him
on. ' I'm nothing on earth ailing,' he said, ' I'm only
home-sick ; I'm cured the moment I get to the camp
and see the brethren.' Thus he kept up the spirits
of those about him, and they held on their way until
he was within a few hours' journey of the camp. He
entered on his last day's march with the energy of
increased hope. The poor fellow was nearly used up,
but declared he was getting better. About noon,
however, he grew restless to know accurately the
distance travelled ; then he asked more frequently
for water, he was consumed by a burning thirst. A
film soon gathered over his eyes ; after this he lay
very quiet, as if husbanding all his strength for a final
effort. He was now quite blind, and admitted that
this was rather discouraging, but said he should still
hear the brethren's voices. His sufferings increased,
but when asked by the woman who was driving the
cart whether they should stop, he gasped out, * No, no ;
go on, go on.' The anecdote ends badly. They brought
him in dead about five o'clock in the afternoon. He
had on his clean clothes. He had dressed himself
carefully in the morning, for he ' was going to the camp
to see the brethren.'
LXXIII
Arrival at Salt Lake. — On July 23, 1847,
the first body of emigrants, under the guidance of
Orson Pratt, Saint and Apostle, reached the land of
promise. The pilgrims stood at length by the shore
\
Mormon Land
283
of that mighty inland sea called Great Salt Lake,
and gazed out upon its waste of silent waters ; tide-
less and calm it lay before them in blinding sheets of
light. The shores of the lake were thickly strewn
with a white salt crust, which lay broken into crystals
and glittering around them like thousands of scattered
gems. Through the translucent air the Rocky Moun-
tains, in reality fifteen or twenty miles distant, seemed
only half an hour's walk from the margin of the lake.
The varied outline of cape and promontory floated
away on either side into far perspective, whilst the
nearer summits, flooded with sunshine, lay like shining
jasper in the central blue.
As the devout Jew bows himself to the ground
when first he comes in sight of the Holy City, as the
Eastern pilgrim prostrates himself three times when
first he perceives the glittering walls and towers of
Mecca, so did these pilgrims of the Far West bend
their knees in joy and thankfulness to the Father of
lights when first they came apon the shining levels of
the Great Salt Lake.
It is characteristic of the practical character of
the Mormon administration, that within two days of
reaching the Salt Lake plain four acres of potatoes
had been planted. In a few weeks the rough camp-
ing-out tents had been superseded by about eight
hundred log huts, and in a month or two more the
Salt Lake City was already mapped out — Tabernacle,
Temple and all — a system of irrigation resolved upon,
whilst round the settlement rose a thick wall of adobe
or sun-dried mud to keep out the prowling Indians.
These wild men were the new settlers* only neigh-
bours, and rather troublesome ones they sometimes
proved ; but the wisdom of Brigham soon dealt with
'. a I
I
&■
!i
: 3
( I
284
Travel and Talk
'T i
I
I
U'
\ i
I i
them, and his famous dictum, ' It is cheaper to feed
than to fij^lit the Indians,' struck the keynote of his
metliod ; still Brigham knew how to be firm, and the
Red Man had occasionally to be shot down along
with the mountain lion ; but, as a rule, there was
peace between the fugitives and the savages, and a
Mormon could go up and down Utah in safety
because he was recognised as the Indian's friend.
Still there were sometimes daijl Indians — i.e. in-
dividual prowlers, who were known to be grasping
and even violent. One of these came round to a log
hut, and found a Mormon's wife alone in the house.
He instantly demanded food ; the lady, with great
composure, replied very civilly that she would be
glad to feed him, but she only had half a dozen dog
biscuits in the house : she would, however, give him
two. He ate them, and, like Oliver Twist, 'asked for
more.' With some reluctance she gave him another,
which the savage devoured, and then got violent and
threatened to scalp her. Trembling inwardly, but
never losing her presence of mind, the Mormon
heroine at last bade her terrible guest wait a minute,
and she would look for more food. In the back room
lay an enormous mastiff ; she opened the door, and,
at a sign from his mistress, in a moment the faithful
animal bounded out and buried his fangs in the
Indian's thigh, who fell to the ground with a howl,
much hurt and still more terrified. The mastiff held
him like a vice. The Mormon lady stood for a
moment proudly over her prostrate foe, and at his
piteous entreaty at last called off the dog. The
blood was streaming from the Indian's thigh, and the
' Indian's friend ' now fetched a basin of water, and
staunched the wound ; then, after strapping up the
\
v\
Mormon Land
feed
; his
[ the
long
was
nd a
afcty
icnd.
:. in-
sping
a log
\ousc.
great
Id be
n dog
e him
:ed for
lother,
^t and
but
ormon
inutc,
room
, and,
laithful
the
howl,
if held
for a
at his
The
tid the
r, and
ip the
n
285
i
leg, she sent the ' bad Indian ' away limping, with
a parting injunction not to molest Mormon women
again in their homes. Thus the wild tribes soon
learned to fear as well as respect the whites at the
Salt Lake.
By 1848, 5,000 acres of land had been laid undef
cultivation, but in the fall of the year appeared
.swarms of black locusts. Against this new horror
the people at first seemed powerless. They formed
themselves into bands and tried to stamp out the
plague with fire, sticks, and trenches ; the insects lay
dead in huge piles, but still more came on, till, as the
Mormons believe, in answer to their prayer appeared
a white gull. Then gulls by fifties, hundreds,
thousands. They came in flocks over the Salt
Lake, settled down in the fields, gorged and vomited,
and gorged again, until there was not a live locust
left. No wonder the gull at Salt Lake is a sacrcu
bird, and to this day no one is allowed to shoot it.
When Brigham Young raised himself feebly, still
suffering from malarious fever, in Apostle WoodrufTs
carriage, to take his first glance at the site of Salt
Lake City, he beheld through the opening rifts in the
mountains a vast alkali plain, stunted brush growths,
here and there a tree on the hill-sides, indications of
fresh water, and beyond all the wide expanse of the
great lake, with an horizon like that of the sea. * This
is the place,' he murmured, and sinking back in the
carriage he seemed lost in a dream. * Many things,'
adds his devoted friend Woodruff, now himself head
of the Mormons, * were revealed to Brother Brigham
at that time in a vision concerning the future of his
people.' * This is the place ; ' but it must be confessed
)
I
I
t
Y
i
n
n
286
Travel and Talk
.
l\
i
that, on nearer inspection, blank disappointment
seized on many of his followers. * O what a barren
land is this, and void of all content,' they might well
sing. The ladies wept, and some of the elders
advocated pushing on into more fertile territory, or
even settling down in California. But with a really
prophetic sagacity Brigham stood firm. His people
could alone be trained by continuing to fight
difficulties.
To train up a righteous nation — to spread the
new gospel — to develop character — to people the
waste places of the earth and break up the fallow
land — this was the mission of the Mormons, not to
amass wealth or live at ease, or aim at luxury or
the achievement of any earthly glory or renown.
Brigham, especially as time went on, was not in-
sensible to the material prosperity of his people or
his own ; he has even been accused of greed and love
of money. There can be no doubt that he was a
very rich man, though not so rich as some thought ;
the distinction also between what belonged to the
prophet and what belonged to the Church was not
carefully defined. He had a convenient item called
^/o?' services rendered to the Churchy' which enabled
him to balance accounts with — so it was said —
undue facility.
He solemnly warned his people against the craze
for Californian gold, although his people were the
first to discover it ; he often used his influence to pre-
vent migration from the city and its territory, yet the
Mormons were the first to start the Pacific Union
Railroad, and they say Brigham got fat on the con-
tract. The mines of Utah — only half explored —
were not the first source of wealth attended to, but
i \
y-'
m
tment
)arren
t well
elders
)ry, or
really
people
fight
id the
e the
fallow
not to
ury or
enown.
aot in-
ople or
id love
: was a
ought ;
;o the
as not
called
nabled
said —
Mormon Land
287
they were not neglected. If to get rich was not the
first thing put before the needy, to be thrifty was, and
a great co-operative store enabled the Saints to buy
in a cheap market, whilst their own mother-wit taught
them how to sell in a dear one.
In 1850 the settlement of Utah territory was a fact
no longer to be ignored by the United States Govern-
ment. Brigham Young and the leading inhabitants
of Salt Lake City now applied, in 1849, for a terri-
torial government * of the most liberal construction to
be authorised by our most excellent Federal Constitu-
tion with the least possible delay.'
In 1 85 1 news at last reached Brigham that he
was himself appointed Governor, and he took the
oath of office February 3, 185 1. From this time up
to 1857 the development of Utah territory went on
rapidly and, with the exception of some occasional
difficulties with the Indians, peacefully. About
10,000 emigrants had arrived from P2ngland — ' the
flower, as it seemed to me,' says Dickens, * of the
English artisan class ' — not * the dregs of the people,'
as is generally supposed. From Salt Lake City
radiated continually streams of colonists, carrying
with them all the trades and equipments of civilised
life. Sanpete, Tooele, Sevier, and Iron counties were
explored, until the Mormon offshoots occupied the
country extending over 1,000 miles from Mexico to
Canada, and their numerous trim towns and villages
are now to be found in the valleys of the mountains
in nearly every State and Territory of the mighty
West.
a'
.• li
»
288
Travel and Talk
LXXIV
mi
£
ih .;
y-
The Great Rebellion (?).— A good deal has
been said about Mormon rebellion and sedition ; but
from the first, in the teeth of the greatest injustice
and persecution, the Mormons have shown themselves
loyal to the United States Constitution, and Brigham
was always careful to draw a distinction between the
U.S.A. Government and the unscrupulous men who
occasionally maladministered it.
The judges and other law officers that arrived
from Washington were treated scrupulously accord-
ing to their merits. Judge Brocchus and Secretary
Harris neither gave nor received satisfaction, and
they had to go, and, of course, every unpopular official
on his return to Washington libelled the Mormons.
But Judges Reed, Shower, and Kinney were very
popular, and the Mormons have never lacked warm
friends amongst the best type of American official
and Government employee. But the tug of war was
not far off.
There are few episodes in Mormon history more
characteristic of the earlier relations of the States
Government to Mormondom than what is already
known in history as * President Buchanan's blunder '
— the march of an army across a continent to put
down a rebellion which never existed !
Two judges — Stiles and Drummond — had made
themselves very unpopular by certain arbitrary pro-
ceedings, setting aside the authority of the Probate
Courts. Stiles threw up office and hurried back to
Washington to report that the Mormons had burnt
the State records - an absolute lie. Drummond
aauaamm
"T^'
Mormon Land
289
remained, and might have pulled through had he not
insisted on seating beside him in court a lady, who
was certainly no better than she should be, and whom
he called Mrs. Drummond ; but that too was an
absolute lie, and it was discovered that he had left
the real Mrs. Drummond and her family behind in
the Eastern States. Judge Drummond soon found
the Salt Lake City very unpleasant as a place of
residence for an im.moral man, and so he joined Judge
Stiles at Washington, declaring the Mormons to be
in a state of open rebellion against the U.S.A.
Government, as was evident from the expulsion of
two judges !
'M.
' i:
I
It is almost inconceivable that President Buchanan
should have acted simply on the representation of
these prejudiced and by no means immaculate
officials, but in reality there wa? wheel within wheel.
The secret history I only learned from the lips of the
Prophet WoodrutT at Salt Lcke. It was convenient
at this moment for the wire-pullers in Buchanan's
cabinet to send off an army to attack the Mormons
on any pretext. A powerful section of Buchanan's
cabinet favoured secession, and to weaken the home
forces at that moment would of course encourage the
Southern rebellion whilst having all the appearance
of echoing the popular cry, * Down with slavery and
polygamy! An attack on polygamy was thus the
very thing to blind the public to the Secessionist
policy of the Buchanan cabinet, and Buchanan, who
was never really a Secessionist^ fell into the trap.
A sumptuously equipped army was accordingly
despatched, under command of General Johnstone
and Mr. Cumings was sent out to supersede
VOL. I U
\ !
!
.i
290
Travel and Talk
I'*
\i ''
Governor Brigham Young, whose term of office was
nearly up.
In June of 1857 rumours of strange teams — of
armed scouts — always occupied with ' the Indians 'of
course, reached Salt Lake.
The U.S.A. invasion of Utah was conducted with
the utmost secrecy. But Brigham, who had good
information, with characteristic caution immediately
put the city in a state of defence and reconstituted
the Nauvoo legion.
Next it turned out that the mails to Salt Lake
were stopped.
On July 23, 1857, three breathless horsemen rode
into the city — Major Swift, Judson Stoddard, and
Foster Rochwell. They had come 500 miles in five
days and three hours. Most of the people were out
holiday-making in the hills. On hearing the startling
news that a U.S.A. army was advancing upon Utah,
Brigham instantly called a council of war. It was a
great moment, and the Mormon leader rose at once
to the occasion. * Liars,' he said to the council, ' have
reported that this people have committed treason.
The President has ordered out troops against us. I
feel that I can't bear such treatment ; and as for any
nation coming to destroy this people, God Almighty
being my helper, it shall not be.'
Meanwhile, in the hostile camp, * On to Utah !
War and extermination ! ' was the popular cry.
An advanced courier next arrived with informa-
tion that Brigham Young was officially superseded
as Governor by Mr. Cumings. For that, Brigham
said, he cared not a jot, and he would lay down his
governorship willingly under lawful authority at the
-=T^ "
Mormon Land
291
was
—of
s'of
with
good
ately
tuted
Lake
1 rode
[, and
n five
re out
artling
Utah,
I was a
once
have
eason.
us. I
)r any
nighty
Utah !
forma-
irseded
[igham
m his
lat the
expiration of his term of office, but he was still
Governor, and the troops should not come within
thirty miles of the city. There was no rebellion — no
troops were wanted. He remembered New Sion
and Nauvoo ; he would not allow the soldiers to be
turned loose on his helpless community. He had
therefore armed, and he would resist aggression,
hoping the Government would see its error. If that
failed, he would lay waste the land, fire the city, and,
retreating en viasse into the mountains, leave a second
Moscow blazing before the eyes of a victorious but
starving and vanquished foe. * We have borne
enough,' he cried, ' and we will bear no more. Come
on, with your thousands of illegally ordered troops,
and I promise you, in the name of Israel's God,
that they shall melt away as snow before a July
sun.' Could the prophet at that moment have seen
in a vision the final discomfiture of that proud army,
he could not have uttered words more triumphant
and more true.
Captain Van Vliet, who arrived to parley and
smooth matters if possible, was taken so much aback
at the Mormon attitude and the real state of affairs,
that he sat down and wrote out a report, stating that
there was no rebellion, that it was all a mistake, and
soon hurried off to Washington to present his
memorial in person and explain the truth. The
cabinet were so ashamed when the real facts at last
dawned upon them, viz. that no State records had
been burned, and that the people had never rebelled,
and were quite willing to accept Governor Cumings
or anyone else who would behave decently, that
Van Vliet's report, as also Governor Cumings' dc-
u 2
K
\\\
Hi
I '■:, I
292
Travel awo Talk
spatches, were never published, and the contents of
these documents only leaked out by degrees long
afterwards. I had this from the lips of Woodruff and
the elders in 1893. Meanwhile the army — now com-
manded by General Johnstone {N.B. : nominee of the
Secessionist members of Buchanan's cabinet, who after-
wards died fighting for Jeff Davis in the SoutJiern
ranks) —the army, as usual, wanted to do something.
They bullied and swore, but Brigham kept them in
the mountains all through the winter, cut off their
supplies, and only allowed them to buy food and
provender so long as they abandoned all thought
of advance ; and — last triumph — installed Governor
Cumings peacefully as his successor, giving him every
facility to enter upon his high office. In fact Brig-
ham sowed such dissension between Governor Cum-
ings and the commanding general, who was supposed
to be supporting his claim by force of arms, that
Cumings could hardly be prevented from fighting a
duel with the general !
After this, Brigham's statesmanship will scarcely
be called in question. He had reduced the army to
impotency and its leaders to mere puppets. Without
his leave neither could the army advance nor the
Governor take his seat. Brigham's letters and State
papers to General Johnstone, Governor Cumings,
and Buchanan's cabinet are extremely racy and
splendidly brave and resolute ; but he did not
measure his language nor attempt to hide his indig-
nation, and throughout his aim was undoubtedly to
avoid the shedding of innocent blood. His pro-
clamation to the people gives us a taste of his
quality, * We are condemned unheard ' (the Govern-
It
Mormon Land
293
mcnt had refused a commission of inquiry, finding
itself in the wrong), 'we are forced to an issue
with an armed mercenary mob sent against us at the
instigation of anonymous letter writers, ashamed to
father the base slanderous falsehoods which they
have given to the public — of corrupt officials (Judges
Drummond and Stiles), who have brought false accu-
sations against us to screen themselves, and of hire-
ling priests and howling editors who prostitute the
truth for filthy lucre's sake.' He then declared the
city and territory under martial law.
Whilst Brigham, hand-in-glovc with Governor
Cumings, was making a brave stand for his people
and keeping the United States army at bay, he lost
no time in sending off to President Buchanan, Colonel
Kane, a gentleman who, though favourable to the
Mormons, he knew also to be a persona grata at
Washington. The Colonel was to interview the
President, answer all questions, and explain the nature
of the mistake which led to the despatch of the army.
S"'
fly to
pro-
his
;^ern-
On February 28, 1858, the Colonel returned to
Salt Lake with a Government * full and free pardon '
for all past seditions, &c. Brigham wrote back :
* I thank President Buchanan for forgiving me, but
I really cannot tell what I have done. I know one
thing, and that is that the people called Mormons are
a loyal and law-abiding people, and ever have been.'
A slight allusion to burning the army supplies, with a
dignified apology, and the rebellion (!) was at an end.
Then came the spoiling of the Egyptians. The
war of North against South broke out. Orders arrived
to disband for reconstitution and sell up the army
stores. The Mormons went over and bought every-
294
Travel and Talk
'^
I i
^ 'I
thing they wanted at what the French tei-m prix
cmhetants, or what the Yankees call ' slaughter prices ; '
and Mr. Q. Cannon assured me that the great burst of
Mormon prosperity, comfort, and luxury dates from
the selling up of the United States army sent to put
down the Mormon rebellion. Truly a case of sic vos
non vobis !
LXXV
U.S.A. Presidents and the Mormons. —
It may be interesting to notice here the attitude of
successive U.S.A. Presidents towards the Mormons.
Buchanan, as we see, made the amende honorable when
he had to face the facts. The following anecdotes,
told me by Prophet Woodruff, the present Prophet,
are very characteristic of President Lincoln : * What,'
asked a senator, * do you intend to do with this Mor-
mon plague spot } ' * Wal,' said Lincoln, slowly,
' there's a log in my field so thick my teams won't
move it, and so damp it won't burn ; so I said I reckon
I'll just " plough round it." And I guess it will do just
to plough round these Mormons.' But when Lincoln
wanted a brave and reliable frontier guard to protect
his postal service during the great war of North
against South, he sent to the Mormons, for, he said,
' I reckon they'll just do ; I can trust 'em.'
President Grant was no friend of the Saints, but
in 1875 he resolved to visit Salt Lake City and see
for himself.
The announcement created unbounded enthusiasm.
The whole city turned out in holiday costume. The
stars and stripes were seen flying from every flagstaff
i
■*ii
irnmn
;* —'y
Mormon Land
295
and pinnacle. A special car was despatched with a
Mormon bodyguard to meet the President, Mrs.
Grant, and suite.
Dense throngs, as for a coronation, lined all the
road from the station to the court-house, but the
President was first met by thousands of white-robed
children. As he looked at the happy, healthy faces
and then at the masses of well-dressed loyal citizens of
both sexes, * Whose are these children ? ' asked the
President. * These are the children of the Mormons,'
was the reply. The President leant back in his carriage
silent for a moment — he was at all times a man of
few words — then he said, * I have been deceived about
the Mormons.'
In the vast tabernacle he heard the great organ
and the choir of five hundred young Mormon men
and women. Mrs. Grant was moved to tears, and
turning to her husband, said, ' Oh, I should like to do
something for these good Mormon people.' The
President was surprised to find a flourishing university
and so many schools and such splendid buildings.
He was introduced to the Mormon families, and
President Q. Cannon acted as an excellent cicerone
and drove him over the city and its environs. Brig-
ham Young and the President parted with expressions
of mutual goodwill.
LXXVI
The PolyCxAMY Fight. — The halcyon calm was
not to last. The law against polygamy of 1862
had been almost a dead letter ; it was revived and
enforced by the legislation of 1881, and a still more
stringent injunction of 1887. It was clear the
4
296
Tkavkl and Talk
1 1
It '
Government were at this time in earnest, and Presi-
dent Harrison was not slow to gain what popularity
he could by identifying his lease of power with the
abolition of the universally hated practice.
Thousands of Mormon girls born and bred in the
system, who thought they had been leading lives as
blameless as those of Sarah and Rebecca held up
in the Church Service for our general imitation, were
now declared fit to rank only with the lowest of the
low. For fifty years the practice had almost been
countenanced by the United States of America.
There was consternation and weeping in Salt Lake
City ; the women do not appear to have considered
the Act of 1 887 against polygamy one of emancipa-
tion at all ; they were furious at not being allowed
to retain or ' to choose their own husbands,' and
3,000 of them — the pick of the Utah ladies — met
in the large tabernacle to protest.
In vain ! Fathers were arrested, fined, or im-
prisoned for a term of years. Gentile informers and
spies, the drunken dregs of the Christian populace,
dogged the footsteps of the Saints. The rage of
persecution set in.
Bishop Colenso's suggestion on behalf of the Zulu
plural marriages — that existing ties should be recog-
nised, and no new marriages admitted — was at one
time considered, and the Government seemed half
inclined to back it, but the fury of Christian virtue
was aroused, and nothing but a ' root and branch
policy ' found favour with Congress. Outward pro-
sperity was now succeeded by mourning, lamentation,
and woe ; many fields and gardens were left unculti-
vated ; trade languished ; many Saints and their
Mormon Land
297
families fled ; women and children wandered home-
less and unprotected ; the bread-winner was in hid-
ing or in prison ; fines ruined others. Not only
polygamy, but the community itself seemed at the
point of dispersion or extinction, when one of those
timely revelations came to the Prophet Woodruff,
which once more saved the situation.
It seemed now the will of the Lord that, polygamy
having been at last declared illegal by the highest
U.S.A. tribunal, it should be frankly and fully aban-
doned.
LXXVII
Brigham's last Days.— But I have slightly
anticipated the march of events, and it remains for
me to trace in a few words the closing days of
Brigham Young.
He lived long enough to hand over the civil
government of Utah to the United States of America ;
to meet the President of the United States on friendly
terms in the City of the Saints ; to go to prison pen-
dente lite for the doctrine of polygamy ; to see the
free admission of the Gentile {alias outside Christian)
world into the City of the Saints, and with it those
apparently inseparable adjuncts of Christian civilisa-
tion, the gambling hell, the gin palace, and the house
of ill fame, none of which institutions were tolerated,
or even called for, under the despotic and licentious
rule of Brigham Young.
Brigham lived also to show an enlightened interest
in the organisation of charity and the higher education
of women.
The Salt Lake Charity Organisation Society was
ii
I! i\
K
. 1,
■l
298
Travkl and Talk
placed entirely under the management of a committee
ot'ladies ; a RetrencI'mcnt Association to teach women
how to economise time, labour, and money, and thus
be more free to educate their minds ; a young ladies'
Mutual Improvement Society, including lectures and
essays on science, literature, and the arts, was also a
favourite interest of the Prophet's declining years.
ill
11
I '
Brigham Young's last public appearance was
well in tune with the best side of his nature. He
preached very earnestly shortly before his death to
the assembled Saints on the duty of taking the
Sacrament, and of bringing up children in the fear
of the Lord and in habits of strict purity, industry,
and honesty.
Soon afterwards he took to his bed (August 29,
1877). His last words were, 'Joseph! Joseph!
Joseph ! ' This is, perhaps, the greatest tribute that
ever has, or ever will be, paid to the memory of Joseph
Smith, the founder of Mormonism.
It is not for me to estimate in a sentence the
character of so strange a man as Brigham Young.
His achievement remains and challenges the criticism
of the whole world. Of him it may be said that,
with faults of temper, an iron will, a fanatical faith,
and a hand not always scrupulous in selecting means
to ends, he was nevertheless the founder of Utah, a
great coloniser, a great statesman, a great ruler of
men, and in every sense of the word and altogether
and very much the father of his people.
V!
Mormon Land
299
LXXVIII
Salt Lake City.— I visited the Salt Lake City
in 1893. Being very kindly entertained, I naturally
received a roseate impression ; this is what I have
tried to convey to my readers.
Before the Mormon President Cannon left Fran-
cisco, I had addressed to him a letter, expressing,
in answer to some kind words of his, a hope that
I should be able to visit Salt Lake City, and offering
to deliver a lecture to the Mormons. I soon after-
wards received the following letter from him :
' Palace Hotel, San Francisco, Cal. :
'Oct. 2, 1893.
• Reverend Sir, — Your kind note, expressive of
your feelings concerning the giving of your lecture
" Music and Noise " at Salt Lake City during your
proposed visit, came to hand on Saturday too late for
me to call upon you and learn from you further particu-
lars. I fully expected to do so to-day ; but I find it
impossible to do so. It was notcntircly clear whether
there would be a charge for admission to the lecture,
or whether you intended it for the gratification of a
certain number of friends. It was to obtain a clearer
understanding upon this point that I thought it better
to see you than to write, as upon this would depend
the size of the hall where the lecture would be
delivered.
' In my absence, would it be asking too much of
you to call at the office of a young friend of mine.
Col. Isaac Trumbo, Room 22, fifth floor of the Mills
Building, Montgomery Street, who will communicate
your views to me ?
I
I
i
^!
300
Travki. and Talk
' I dislike to put you to this trouble ; but as there
appears to be some uncertainty about finding you at
the Irving Institute, this plan suggested itself to me.
* Your lecture, I am sure, will be listened to with
pleasure, and I shall be gratified to see you at Salt
Lake City, and will do what I can to make your visit
interesting to you.
• I am,
' Very respectfully,
'Geo. O. Cannon.
' Rev. H. R. Haweis.'
Mr. Cannon certainly fulfilled his promise. I
was met by Bishop Clawson in a smart' trap, and, after
conducting me to a comfortable hotel where he had
engaged rooms, he called for me in about an hour,
and it was then that he drove me to visit the Prophet
Woodruff, whom I found sitting in conclave in the
House of Assembly. The successor of Brigham
Young, Arch-President Woodruff, is an agreeable
and shrewd old gentleman of eighty-four, credited, of
course, with prophetic inspiration, and looked up to
with reverence and affection by the twelve Apostles
and the whole Mormon community. I spent the
morning in converse with the Prophet and the
Twelve, as previously recorded. In the course of con-
versation the Prophet quoted Brigham Young as
saying, ' Religious profession should be quite free ;
act up to whatever you believe, and let others do
likewise ; be friendly to all sincere religionists, even
when most opposed to you, so long as they do not
interfere with you ; preach the brotherhood of the
human race ; love all and labour for the good of all
and mind your own business.' ' And,' .said the
Prophet, * I reckon that is so, and we act on that.
■ I
Mormon Land
301
Any body of people who want to worship God, and
come here and have no church, are welcome to use
ours. Four hundred clergy on their way to a con-
ference passed through our city ; we offered them a
building to worship in, but they said, " No, we want to
sec how jyou worship." " Come and see," we replied ;
" all are free to enter, to look around and ask questions.
We are honest men ; we are not ashamed of our
religion. We are law-abiding citizens of the United
States of America." '
On leaving the council room Bishop Clawson
proposed driving me round the city. To look down
upon it from a neighbouring hill is indeed a sight
never to be forgotten ; the magnificent marble temple
with its four towers, and its loftily raised golden
angel sounding a trumpet, its vast tabernacle and
assembly rooms adjoining, and its symmetrical rect-
angular blocks of houses surrounded by flower
gardens, clean straight streets with their rows of
trees on either side, present a spectacle of order and
prosperity which I never saw in any other city of the
world I visited the schools, the University, the
Prophet's residence, the suburbs — everywhere the
same comfort, cleanliness and order, no poverty ; no
drunkenness, no dirt.
The air was clear and bracing. A railway ran to
the Salt Lake, twelve miles off. The Bishop pro-
posed a visit there in the afternoon ; some of his
daughters were to accompany us — I was nothing loth.
Bishop Clawson has over thirty living daughters,
twenty of whom are married. Mrs. Goesbeck, a
charming young married daughter, the on(y wife of
a banker, said to me as I sat by her in the car, with a
sort of artless pride, ' Pa thinks so much of his girls ! '
r.
302
Travel and Talk
i
. t!
I
' Mind you keep him up to it,' I said.
* No fear/ she replied.
' Now/ I went on, ' I dare say he was quite sorry
to lose you when you married ? '
' Oh, he has not lost me ; and then, you see, if he
does miss one there are a good many of us to fall
back upon, and my husband's a banker in the town,
and we often meet, all of us/
Mrs. Goesbeck seemed to have absolutely no
consciousness that there had been anything irregu-
lar in her 'bringings up' or in her father's domestic
arrangements, and she had the appearance and manner
of a girl who had led a happy simple life, without any
terrible secrets or gloomy experiences. Is it surpris-
ing that I should take a coideur de rose view of Salt
Lake City .'' I know it has been said that whenever
a stranger arrives he is taker* in hand, and that every-
thing is carefully cooked for him in order to produce
a favourable impression, but you cannot at a moment's
notice cook a whole city of people ; what I saw and
what everyone may see spoke for itself.
I saw a happy and contented people, a clean and
sanitary city, a colossal white marble temple which had
taken forty years a-building (a tabernacle into which
throngs every Sunday a congregation of from 12,000
to 16,000 people, or about four times the size of the
late Mr. Spurgeon's congregation), neat houses and
prosperous farms, well-behaved children, venerable
elders, agreeable and cultivalr^d ladies. I lectured to
several thousand Mormons in their great Assembly
Rooms. I found ' Music and Morals ' a household
book, and the Mormon rising generation great pro-
ficients in the divine art. After my lecture I was
invited across to the Giant Tabernacle, and there a
Mormon Land
303
choir of 500 young Mormons, of both sexes, who had
just Hstened to my lecture, anxious to give me a taste
of their quality, stood up in the vast tabernacle and
sang the choruses from * The Messiah ' without a
note of music before them in a style that would
compare favourably with many of our Festival choirs.
1 was surprised at nearly all I saw and heard —
at the splendour of their bathing establishments at
the Salt Lake, at the taste of their architecture, at the
perfection of their irrigation, and the ever-increasing
enthusiasm with which they are cultivating the liberal
arts. Not least was I surprised at the almost entire
absence of friction between the Gentile settlers and
the Mormon population. A Mormon elder will go
into a Gentile shop, and on departing will bless the
owner of the store as though he were a co-religionist
as well as a man and a brother. The improved
relations between the U.S.A. officials and the Saints
were evidenced by General McCook's courteous
manner when he met me with two Mormon bishops
and some Mormon ladies at the Salt Lake. He
invited us all into his private car, and chatted in a
most friendly manner with Bishop Clawson and the
ladies, and so did the members of his family who
were travelling with him. We all went back by rail
together to Salt Lake City on the best of terms.
V
I
s?
I have purposely refrained from dwelling on those
darker pictures of Mormonism culled generally from
the books of apostates and their Gentile foes.
I do not deny the alleged miseries of poly-
gamous marriage, but even monogamous marriage is
not always a success. In Mormon families there may
have been much cruelty, neglect, despotism, and fickle-
V-' *
304
Travel and Talk
M
II
ness. In rough times, when smarting themselves from
outrage and murder, outrage and murder in retaHation
may very probably have been committed by them.
Rowdyism and mobocracy are not confined to New
York, Paris, or London, and the Saints may have,
under provocative injustice, shared these tendencies
with their more orthodox brethren. I do not believe,
however, that anything like organised assassination
ever disgraced the government of Brigham Young,
although it may have been occasionally resorted to.
However, I am bound to say that I have had brought
before me some very damaging evidence bearing upon
this vexed question. But, further, if Mormons were
mixed up with Indians in the everlastingly quoted
Mountain Massacre, we have no more right to call Salt
Lake City a city of assassins than we have to call Eng-
land a nation of regicides because from time to time
somebody shoots at the Queen. There are some ugly
tales in Mrs. Stenhouse's book, ' An Englishwoman
in Utah,' and Mr. Jarman's denunciations are some-
what appalling ; but he deserted, and she went there
prejudiced, lived there prejudiced, and came away
prejudiced. I should like some one to hunt up all
the alleged Mormon horrors committed in any one
year, and then lay them side by side with a file of
the * Police News ' for a year, and see which comes
out the best. Christian or Latter-Day Saint.
Still, I have no doubt a black picture of Mormon-
ism might be painted with a little selection by what
is called a graphic pen. My business has been —
since (with a few illustrious exceptions) nothing but
black Mormon pictures have been painted — to remind
my readers of a much neglected motto, Audi alteram
partem.
Mormon Land
305
LXXIX
Estimate of Mormon ism. — As no account
of the Prophet Smith could have been profitably
attempted without some estimate of his character and
some explanation of his career, so no account of
Mormonism is justifiable nowadays without some
attempt to define the source of its astonishing power
and vitality.
Needless to say that such a discussion would run
into space I cannot here devote to it ; but it is neces-
sary to suggest at least the heads under which the
inquiry might be conducted.
First, we may be quite sure that any good that
there is in the movement comes from what is true
and not from what is false in Mormonism. It may
be a delicate but not impossible task to suggest the
true without endorsing the false.
The first truth that Mormonism proclaims is tJiat
God reveals Himself noiv as much as ever through
(i) 7iature ; through (2) outward and sacravietital
ordinances ; through the still small voice of spiritual
intuition. We accept the reaffirmation of these truths ;
we believe they were never more needed than now :
we are not therefore bound to declare all Mormon
visions important, all Mormon ceremonies good, or all
Mormon intuitions trustworthy or inspired.
The second truth is that God sends His prophet
preachers now as He has ever sent them — indeed, a
prophetical ministry \s the life and soul of the Christian
Church. It does not follow, and we are not obliged
to admit, that Joseph Smith, and Brigham Young, and
Woodruff are prophets.
VOL. I X
3o6
Travel and Talk
If ,
r.
The third truth is that God has enshrined Divine
and authoritative truth in sacred books ; but we arc at
liberty to draw the line if we please at the * Book of
Mormon.'
The fourth truth is that God Himself has found a
means of atoning for the original and actual sins of
the world in the person and work of Jesus Christ.
We may yet be at variance as to the exact sense in
which the * blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth from all
sin,' and we may even reject the substitution theory,
which seems to have been adopted in its crudest form
by the Mormon theologians.
The fifth truth is that all the dead shall have a
chance. And here again we may accept some form
of the * uncovenanted mercies of God,' without
adopting either the purgatory of the Mormon or the
Papist.
The sixth truth is the living communion of saints,
with which I may couple baptism for the dead. I
have no doubt that under cover of this doctrine
an elaborate system of spiritualism is practised — •
something akin to Mr. Stead's proposed bureau of
inquiry, where people may converse through well-
accredited mediums with their departed friends. The
Mormon temple, to which thousands of anxious in-
quirers annually resort from all parts of Utah — some
to be nitiated into sacramental rites, others to be
baptised for the dead, others to inquire into their
present condition, to help or be bettered by them —
is, I infer, amongst other things, the scene of a vast
system of organised seances conducted by rule and
authority. Well, we may be of opinion that there is
a real intuitive communion of saints, that the de-
parted do influence us, that under some conditions
Mormon Land
307
they may even appear or be otherwise communicated
with, but for all that we may not be prepared to accept
the Mormon temple as a Holy of Holies and the
Mormon mediums as the only inspired and in-
fallible guides. Still it cannot be denied that the
Mormons have had the wit or the grace to appropriate
that mystic and mediumistic element which lies at
the root of all religious intuitions and observances,
and the disappearance or discouragement of which
throughout the orthodox Protestant Churches since
the Reformation gives every Roman Catholic, Salva-
tionist, Swedenborgian, Christian Scientist, or Faith
Healer such a sustained and inevitable pull over the
Established Church and her clergy.
\
Now take their faith in a living and constantly
self-revealing God, in a prophetical ministry, in a
sacred book, in an atoning love, in a communion 01
saints, in spiritual manifestations, and add thereto a
stern respect for the moral law (as defined on the
lines of the Old rather than the New Testament),
admirable thrift and organised industry, obedience
to authority, immense energy spent upon the un-
exhausted and apparently inexhaustible resources of
a new world, and last, but not least, a succession of
men endowed with singular courage, genius, and
devotion, like Joseph Smith, Brigham Young, Taylor,
Woodruff, Q. Cannon and Clawson, and enough has
been advanced to explain the vitality of the Mormon
faith and the prosperity of the Mormon people.
The City of the Saints is now thrown open to the
outside Christian world, styled * Gentiles ' by the Salt
Lake Saints. Let us hope that they may meet, not
X 2
L
3o8
Travel and Talk
ti
t
if-
\^l
\>
to borrow each other's vices, but to imitate each other's
virtues.
I am told there are five poh'cemen engaged in
keeping order at Salt Lake City, but that their ser-
vices at present are almost entirely monopolised by
the * Gentile ' or Christian population, to whom
belong the gambling hells, the gin shops, and the
houses of ill fame. This may be an exaggeration, but
it points in the direction of a sad truth.
The orthodox Christians seem at present to com-
pare unfavourably with those whom they despise as
befooled and degraded Mormons. But if, with false
doctrine and an erroneous social system, the Mormons
have accomplished so much, how much more ought
we orthodox Christians to do in the way of good
living and good works, with a correcter belief, a higher
culture, and a purer conception of family life ! The
mote may be in the Mormon's eye, but we shall not
see clearly how to pull it out whilst there is a beam
in our own. Ah, holy ideal ! — the eye single, and the
whole body full of light !
Postscript. — Whilst these pages are passing
through the press a paragraph is going the round of
the papers that President Cleveland has sanctioned a
Bill raising Utah from a Territory to a State, and
recognising existing polygamic ties, whilst forbidding
them for the future.
II,
309
PULPIT AND PLATFORM OUTRE MER
LXXX
San Francisco, 1893. — I wish to avoid the
beaten tracks of lecturers in America.
We are tolerably familiar with the progress ot
secular star lecturers like Dickens and Thackeray in
the United States. Of late years the barrier between
pulpit and platform speakers has been thrown down,
and Canon Kingsley has been followed by Canon
(now Dean) Farrar, Dean Hole, and several Noncon-
formist lights, who have not disdained to deliver, for
a pecuniary consideration, what message they could,
to large transatlantic audiences.
I think I have gone much farther afield than any
of them. I leave on one side my Lowell Lectures
at Boston, Harvard and Cornell University sermons
and general lectures in Canada and the Eastern
United States of America in 1885, my speeches and
sermons at Chicago as an Anglican delegate in
the World's Parliament of Religions in 1893, ^^^
I propose to deal solely with some more excep-
tional experiences in less over-lectured places under
conditions which may render my remarks useful, and
I hope of some interest to those pulpit and platform
pioneers who will ere long follow in my path.
In 1893, after addressing the Parliament of
,
<.H
310
Travel and Talk
I
\)
ill
Religions in Chicago, I had, as recorded, paid a flying
visit to San Francisco for the first time. I had been
told that whilst High Church was tolerated and Low
Church respected, anything like Broad Church was
out of the question in San Francisco.
Some people, it seems, had identified me with the
last-named incendiary and traitorous ecclesiastical
faction. From the first I made it clear that I
sympathised too deeply with all three parties to cast
in my lot exclusively with any one ; my family tradi-
tions being E\ "'^v^elicnl, my education Puscyite, niid
my maturer tendencies Maurician. So-called religious
liberalism to me meant nothing but an active sympathy
with all seekers after God and well-doers in Christ, a
love of truth, and a moderate attention to history ; and
I could not see that any party in the Church had, or
ought to have, a monopoly of such desirable attri-
butes.
In a word, I ignored Church parties.
Perhaps it was this unusual attitude, perhaps it
was the * one touch of nature,' or the magnetism of
common sense —anyhow, the Californian bishops and
clergy at once came forward on my arrival, and nearly
every F.piscopal pulpit in Francisco seemed open to
mc, whilst at a sort of clerical banquet I received
S(imething like an official welcome from the Bishop
of California and the clergy of San Francisco.
I shall never forget those nine happy days in 1 893
at the City of the Golden Gate, for it was due to my
cordial reception there that I accepted an offer on the
part of the Trinity Church Committee, made with
the Bishop's approval, to deliver a course of eight
sermons at San Francisco in January and February of
the year 1895.
f
Pulpit and Platform
311
It
1^
LXXXI
At Trinity Church, San Francisco. — When
I left London in December 1894, with a view of
escaping the winter, which proved unusually severe,
I pushed on through New York to New Orleans with
the Bishop of Honduras, arriving there after a run of
two days and nights. It being Sunday morning,
I preached ; addressed the New Orleans clergy on
Monday, and left on Tuesday, passing through
Texas, Arizona, New Mexico, Southern California,
and reaching Francisco just in time for Christmas 1894.
People, it seems, don't go to church much on
Sunday evening at San Francisco ; that explains my
being appointed evening preacher. Trinity Church,
belonging to the oldest parish (jn the Pacific coast,
has just been rebuilt, and is now the largest and most
ambitious of the Californian churches. It is indeed a
noble grey granite edifice, fashioned on the model of
St. Albans Abbey with a huge central square tower,
but an aisle somewhat too short in proportion.
On my first Sunday night at San Francisco,
Trinity Church was crowded to suffocation ; on the
second, a partition separating the side aisle from a
large adjoining hall was removed ; this hall was, like
the church, filled before service began.
The following list of subjects was freely distributed
by the Trinity Church Committee on my arrival at
Francisco :
Dec. 23.— God! Who is He? What is He?
Where is He } How is He }
Dec. 30. — Bible. How inspired ? When written ?
Who wrote it ? Of what use now ?
Jan. 6.— Right and Wrong. How to decide ?
•■ \
I'
-I
I y
I '
i
\ \
\
ir
i'
ii
312
Travel and Talk
Where are the sanctions ? What are the conse-
quences ? Why should we know ?
Jan. 13. — Pravp:k. What? How? When?
Why ? Where ?
Of course there were various opinions about the
sermons. One lady, who seemed to be a pillar, heard
the first, and came no more. When asked her reason,
the good creature exclaimed, ' Why, it's downrigh '
destruction, because if people go to hear these sort ^
sermons they will never come to church to hear the
usual ones ; and what's to become of the clergy ? '
This was oddly endorsed by a remark from another
regular seatholder, who attended twice, and then con-
cluded to go no more ; ' because,' said he, ' if I hear
any more 1 sha'n't be able to go back to the church
and listen to the old sort.' One man, who was a judge
of the Supreme Court, seemed quite put out. The
sermon had lasted for an hour and a quarter, and he
said in an aggrieved wa)', ' I thought it was onb
about a quarter of an hour. No one ever caug
me listening to a sermon for an hour before.' He
became nevertheless one of my regular hearers. But
perhaps the most singular comment burst from a
somewhat unlikely quarter — a ritualistic clergyman
declared that my teaching had * ruined " Church
influence'' in Sa7i Francisco for tzventy years to come'
By Church influence he meant sacerdotalism, to which
the Franciscans do not seem to take very kindly.
At these evening services, conducted with a full
and exceptionally good surpliced choir and organist,
every section of the Californian community might be
seen, from the bishops, clergy, statesmen, and judges,
to the Jews, Turks, infidels and heretics, including
Pulpit and Platform
3T3
even some of the lowly pig-tailed denizens of conser-
vative China Town. The papers gave very able and
ample reports, and I never found — no, not even in the
World's Parliament of Religions more eager and
sustained interest in what aimed at being a reverent
but candid exposition of modern doubts, difficulties,
and beliefs. The only thing these practical striving
Californians arc intolerant of is pure destnictiveness
in religion ; they simply cannot afford it — it wastes
their time. They hate Jiegatives : if the old is to go —
and the old has gone for the Californian masses —
you must substitute ?>or[\c\.\\\x\^ positive — you must be
at every step constructive. People are never won by
what you deny, only by what you affirm. After all,
a good stout affirmer like Luther or Athanasius can
almost afford to let denial and denunciation alone.
I'M
1)
l,i
Contrasting the extraordinary amount of good
advice I received at Boston, U.S.A., in 1885, not only
before I opened my mouih at the Huntington Hall,
but after I had lectured there, and preached for
Phillips Brooks and before 'he University, I noticed
with some surprise the complete absence of all hints
and suggestions of what I otigkt to say or how I
ought to say it on the part of the Trinity Church
Committee. One night I did expect a little encourage-
ment for getting the sermon down to an hour and five
minutes, but I received none. The collections pro-
bably had something to do with this state of placid
contentment, for out of the surplus funds accumulated
in a few weeks the committee were not only able to pay
the whole of my expenses at Francisco, but found
themselves in a position to offer me a handsome
honorarium, which formed no part of our agreement.
.f
I '1
.1
3H
Travel and Talk
My Sunday mornings were free, but at first the
committee were averse to my preaching elsewhere
during my course at Trinity ; the experiment, how-
ever, being tried, it was found that, after addressing a
crowded assembly at St. John's in the morning, the
crush at Trinity in the evening was un ibated, and
no further objections were raised.
LXXXII
At Stanford and Leland University. —
At President Jordan's request I visited Stanford
and Leland University. It stands mostly one storey
high, its low cloisters and quadrangle straggling over
a vast area interspersed with collegiate residences,
gardens, and green trees. The architecture is quaintly
suggestive of the Moorish style which characterised
the early Jesuit settlements on the Pacific coast, of
which Santa Clara near San Jose, with its suave and
polished monks and its vine-wreathed cloisters, is
one of the loveliest relics. The students, as at
Cornell, are male and female, singularly free, self-
reliant and independent. They live all about at
their own sweet will.
A young P'rancisco girl who was pursuing her
studies at the Stanford and Leland University
invited me to lunch with her. I found her living
quite alone in a trim little cottage within ten minutes'
walk of her class rooms, with only an old Irish
woman to do the housework and catering. She was
a very earnest student, and only came up to San
Francisco from Saturday to Monday, about two
hours' journey by rail. She was staying with her
Pulpit and Platform
31S
mother and sister at my hotel, where I first met her.
This seat of Western learning is an idyllic spot.
Far as the eye can reach, the hills, the woods, the
bush, thousands of Californian acres, all belong to
Stanford University. It is but a mushroom institu-
tion as to time ; Mr. Stanford's widow, who has been
left with absolute power over it, being still alive.
It is enormously endowed, and when all the contem-
plated quads are developed will be the most remark-
able centre of light and erudition on the Pacific
coast.
The morning I preached there the goodly sized
chapel was packed long before eleven o'clock. I
could see from my platform crowds of students of
both sexes standing at the open doors, and the young
men climbed up outside and looked in at the open
windows. I have those hundreds of fresh young
eager faces before me still. I had been told that
infidelity and materialism were here rampant, and
that many of the teachers were openly agnostic or
sceptical. Very likely. I felt strangely overcome : my
heart went out to them ; they seemed to be as sheep
without a shepherd, with their feet stumbling on the
dark mountains. California may be sensual, material-
istic, sceptical, superficial ; but Californians arc full of
heart, and the young people, with small respect for
precedent and convention, are wonderfully recep-
tive and eager. They do not always sec through
pretence and assumption, and can be lured anon by
false and unstable guides, but they fall ravenously on
what they want, and there is a vein of passionate
sentiment about them which contrasts oddly enough
with their inatter-of-fact directness and utilitarian
modes of thought and action. The Americans arc
V.
' f
I'
, I
M
316
Travel and Talk
smart, go-ahead, and perhaps not over scrupulous, but
they are all Idealists and Sensitives at the bottom, and
Emerson is still their prophet. When Dean Stanley
was asked which of the American preachers had
most impressed him, he replied, * I heard a good
many whose names I don't remember ; but it mattered
little who preached — the sermon was always by
Emerson.*
Emerson still divides with Oliver Wendell Holmes
the cultivated taste of the United States. The one
was a prophetic dreamer, the other the most genial,
yet wise and sober, of sentimental humourists.
Another Sunday morning I ran down to San Jose.
The Rev. Dr. Wakefield, the rector, is one of the most
intelligent and enlightened clerics on the Pacific
coast. He has, through a long pastorate, won the
singular respect and affection of his people, and his
genial and liberal influence extends far beyond the
precincts of his own town and is felt in Francisco. I
might almost call him a Franciscan cleric, did he not
rather belong, like a sort of leaven in the lump, to the
whole of California. The morning I preached at
San Jose admission was by ticket ; the church was
soon packed, and I should think enough for another
congregation remained outside.
LXXXHI
The Bishop Criticised. — As my last Sunday
drew near, it was suggested to me that I should take
the largest available hall in San Francisco for a
morning sermon. The Metropolitan Temple, capable
Pulpit and Platform
317
of holding between two and three thousand people,
was accordingly engaged with the approval of the
Bishop of California, whose licence I held. On this
occasion I spoke for two hours on the subject of
marriage. The newspapers declared * that two
thousand people were shut out, and a squad of police
were kept busily engaged,' &c.
This masterly specimen of American ' gassing '
originated, as I happen to know, in the following
simple way. After preaching as usual in the evening
at Trinity, I was coming back in the cable car with
my friend Major Hooper, one of the Trinity Church
wardens, when a reporter boarded us and inquired
of the Major how things had gone at the Metropolitan
Temple in the morning. * Oh,' says the Major, * crowds
turned away, and police outside,' which blossomed
out next day into &c. &c.
I received numerous invitations to preach at Non-
conformist chapels, which I was perfectly willing to
do provided that the Californian Bishop, whose licence
I held, did not object. Needless to say, the Bishop
did object ; and with that deference to Episcopal
authority which I hope will always honourably dis-
tinguish the so-called Broad from the High Church
party, I always withdrew. Some regrettable corre-
spondence followed, from which I held aloof The
Bishop was attacked for not giving his consent — I
was attacked for not preaching ; I was also attacked
for b'^ing willing to preach, which only shows how
difficult it is to please everybody.
The Francisco Press, with the most business-like
instincts, left no stone unturned to get the Bishoj)
and me to fight, but in vain — we neither of us had
time or inclination 'to oblige.' A portrait of the
^ ,
3i8
Travel and Talk
Hishop having come out with an inflammatory para-
graph in which I was represented to be in violent
opposition to my pro tern. Diocesan, I wrote to the
Bishop to ask whether I ought to take any notice of
it. His answer was wise, and characteristic of his
most kind and temperate disposition :
' February 4, 1895 : 2521 Broadway, San Francisco.
' My dear Mr. Hawels,— Major Hooper handed
me your note to-day, and in acknowledging it let me
assure you that I have felt that whatever has appeared
in print — and I have heard of much that I have not
seen — was an exhibit of our newspaper enterprise.
So far from associating you with it, I have taken pains
to say that all that has come to me from you has
been most courteous and law-observing. I quite agree
with you that it is not worth while for you to take it
up publicly.
' Mrs. Nichols and I have been hoping to have the
pleasure of your company at our home to meet some
of the clergy, and are much disappointed that constant
illness in the family — one of my children being sick
now, though not serious — has prevented it.
' I am, my dear Mr. Haweis,
' Yours very sincerely,
' William F. Nichols.
'The Rev. H. R. Ilaweis, M.A.,
' Occidental Motel.'
Here is another of Bishop Nichols' letters, which
will show that, notwithstanding the somewhat em-
bittered controversy which followed my refusal to
preach without the Bishop's approval in Nonconformist
pulpits, our friendly relations remained unbroken :
ruLPiT AND Platform
319
•January 29, 1895 : 2521 Broadway, San Francisco.
• My dear Mr. Haweis, — An appointment for a
wedding" to-morrow (Wednesday) evening, antedating
the selection of the date for the lecture which you
have so kindly undertaken to contribute to the Good
Samaritan Mission, will deprive me of the pleasure of
being present. I beg to express my sincere regret
that I must miss the enjoyment of the lecture, and to
thank you for so cordially complying with the request
of Major Hooper on behalf of the executive committee
of the Good Samaritan Mission.
' I may add my regret that my frequent goin^'^s and
comings do not give me more opportunity to see you.
' Yours very truly,
• William F. Nichols.
'The Rev. H. R. Haweis, M.A.,
♦Occidental Hotel.'
Here is a characteristic specimen of one of the
attempts to draw me and the Bishop — to which he
alludes as an exhibit of press ejiterprise :
'THE BISHOP SAYS NO
*He Draws a Line for His Clergy
' NO exchange of pulpits with dissenters
»,••
' Dr. Haiveis not alloivcd to Preach in Plymouth
Co7igrcgational Church
• The church-going people of this city may go to
hear Rev. H. R. Haweis as often as they like, but if
they are not members of the Episcopal Church they
cannot hear him in their own sanctuaries on Sunday.
That is definitely decided.
1
I i
i\
320
Travel and Talk
' Rev. E. S. Williams of Plymouth Congregational
Church expected to have a treat for his flock last
Sunday. Dr. Williams is an Englishman, and
although he is what churchmen call a nonconformist,
he made bold to ask Dr. Haweis to preach in his
pulpit. This invitation Dr. Haweis graciously ac-
cepted, provided the bishop of the diocese had no
objection.
* Now, the incumbent of St. James's is as politic
as he is genial and clever. He has been feted and
lionised here to a great extent, and he preaches
while here under a special licence from Bishop
Nichols. Consequently he would not offend the
Bishop for the world.
* In fact Dr. Haweis did not care to ask the
Bishop for his permission to preach in Plymouth
Church, and so Dr. Williams undertook to procure
the Bishop's consent.
* He did not succeed. The Bishop was charmingly
courteous to the nonconforming gentleman. But he
indicated quite clearly his disapproval of any such
scheme. He said he was sorry, but he did not think
that it would aid that fellowship and unity which is
so much desired. That settled the question so far as
Dr. Haweis was concerned. He declared at once
that under no circumstances could he do anything of
which the Bishop disapproved, though as far as he
was concerned he was willing to preach the gospel
anywhere — in Catholic Church, nonconformist chapel,
on a sandlot or a Salvationist's tent. He says that
he is willing to preach anywhere, for anybody that
wants him, but with the Bishop's approval.
* Bishop Nichols stated yesterday that his reason
for not wishing Dr. Haweis to preach on Sunday in a
ational
ck last
n, and
formist,
in his
isly ac-
had no
politic
:ed and
reaches
Bishop
;nd the
isk the
ymouth
procure
rmingly
But he
ny such
t think
lich is
o far as
at once
hing of
as he
gospel
chapel,
ys that
dy that
reason
ay in a
Pulpit and Platform
321
Congregationalist Church was because he could not
give his approval to any of his local clergy accepting
a hospitality that they could not return. He believes
in fraternal interdenominational courtesy and all that
sort of thing, but when it comes to an Anglican
rector in a Congregationalist pulpit on Sunday that
is quite another thing.
' The Congregationalist brethren are inclined to be
a little hurt over the matter. They thought the
Parliament of Religions had settled all that. Mean-
while the Bishop holds the key to the situation in
his hands, and cannot give his consent to so irregular
a proceeding in his diocese.'
Bishop Nichols is a very good high class type of
the American prelate. He walks in the steps of Dr.
Potter. He does not meddle too much ; he is willing
to hear grievances and to bear them in mind when
he cannot right them at once, which is more than
can be said for many English bishops, who seldom
right grievances and often forget them. He answers
letters. Bishop Nichols holds strong opinions, but he
does not often obtrude them. His clergy have a kind
of instinct — what he approves or disapproves of. He
is averse to publicity, and never forces a controversy.
He governs by biding his time and seizing his oppor-
tunity ; he is always on the watch, and instead of
speaking before he acts, he acts before he speaks.
This course saves him and a great many others
trouble, but it often leaves a sting behind. His man-
ner is extremely genial and courteous ; but a few
words I once had with him about the nature of the
episcopal office showed me that, whilst tolerating the
expression of views and opinions different from his
VOL. I Y
1 1
,r
1
m
322
Travel and Talk
own, he was not prepared to make the least concession
of any kind to an opponent. Personally I owe a debt
of gratitude to Bishop Nichols for smoothing my way
with the clergy. I am sure that the general tone of
friendly acceptance which I received at the hands of
numbers of my clerical brethren at San Francisco
who could not have agreed with some of my views
was largely owing to the courteous initiative and
Christian tolerance of the Bishop of California. On
my first visit to San Francisco the Bishop introduced
me in an after-dinner speech to the diocesan clergy in
the kindest and most flattering manner ; and I am
sure my recall in 1895 was largely due to his well-
known friendly attitude towards me. He invited me
to address the diocesan clergy before I left San
Francisco, and took the chair. The ^"jUowing extract
from a Francisco paper records the event :
* HAWEIS ON REVIVALS
'Their Relation to the Church
' There was a very large attendance of Episcopal
rectors from this and neighbouring cities at the clericus
yesterday morning. Both the assembly rooms of the
diocesan house were called into requisition to accom-
modate the Churchmen. The occasion was the
announced address of Rev. H. R. Haweis on revival-
ism — a subject not commonly discussed at great
length in the Anglican Churches. Certainly Dr.
Haweis has not appeared to greater advantage than
he did before his own brethren yesterday morning,
nor has he spoken with greater force or eloquence
since he has been in this city. Perhaps he addressed
Pulpit and Platform
323
the clcricus with a little more freedom than he has
the other ministerial unions. He gave them very
clearly his own vivid ideas on revivalism, and did not
go around prejudices, but struck directly at them.
' " Revivalism," he said," means a very great force
which is important to us clergy. The way to handle
it is not to denounce it. Instead, we should understand
its nature and then try to control it.
*" Revivals always mean the revival of some neg-
lected truth, or a new way of presenting an old one.
Whenever it appears it is a sign of activity and of truth
in a passionate form. Its forms are as varied as the
chameleon. Sometimes they are extremely repulsive,
especially to us. At other times they lend themselves
to ecclesiastical rule and order. But it must be con-
fessed that the usual tendency of revivalism is to
kick over the traces. That is the great difficulty with
which the Episcopal Church has to contend." '
I then gave an account of the scene at New
Orleans, described at length in vol. ii., when I listened
to a negro Revivalist preacher. I endeavoured to
correlate the various revival manifestations of the
Irvingites, Wesleyans, and Salvationists with the
scenes in the Church of Corinth, described by St.
Paul. I must say my crowded clerical audience heard
me with the greatest patience and courtesy.
Soon afterwards I was honoured by the Presby-
terian clergy with an invitation to address them, and
the papers reported me very well. Here, too, my
clerical brethren received me with the utmost cor-
diality, and listened to me with exemplary attention.
Y a
■F
324
Travel and Talk
.1 i
r
'MR. HAWEIS ON SECTS
♦Thk Noted Divine Talks to ruESBYTERLVNS
* The Presbyterian Ministerial Union had one of
the most attractive programmes in its history yester-
day morning. After the adoption of resokitions of
sympathy with Rev. Dr. Ellis, chairman of the pro-
gramme committee, whose son died on Saturday, the
Rev. H. R. Haweis of London addressed the meeting.
' There was an unusually large audience to listen
to the Church of England's representative, and the
extemporaneous talk which he made was not one of
the least notable among the many remarkable dis-
courses that he has given in this city. The Rector of
St. James's is a man of charming and fascinating
personality, and he prefaced his talk, which was on
sectarianism, with some characteristic and happy
remarks. There were several anecdotes of clerical
meetings in this country at which he had been present,
and the speaker alluded particularly to the diversity
in unity which prevails here, and whfch makes discus-
sion frequent and interesting and raises it above
monotony.
* Then he proceeded to the rationale of sectarian-
ism as it appears to an Episcopalian clergyman.
Sectarianism is often denounced as an unmitigated
evil. This is a half truth, he said. Most sects are
the embodiment of some truth which has been lost.
To appreciate this reassertion of some neglected or
forgotten truth one must understand how the sect
arose. At first the result of this rediscovery is to
Pulpit and Platform
3^S
:rl\ns
one of
yester-
ions of
he pro-
lay, the
leeting.
o listen
ind the
: one of
Die dis-
ector of
:inating
was on
happy
clerical
Dresent,
iversity
discus-
above
tarian-
^yman.
tigated
icts are
en lost,
cted or
le sect
y is to
throw that particular branch out of order with the
rest. Anyone who points out a neglected truth is
certain to be persecuted, but that does not interfere
with the value of sectarian movements, though the
word is a bad one, signifying as it does something
cut off.
'The real strength of the sects should be carefully
nurtured within the Church. As an example take the
Church of Rome. For all its power, its m}'sticism
and its enormous self-confidence, how much more
powerful would it have been if, instead of casting out
Luther, it had accepted his truths and got rid of the
abuses he denounced. There is a tendency to cast
out elements which should be carefully retained and
room made for them in the Church. It is not necessary
that a bishop should take up each individual minister's
fad, but they should be allowed to speak out the truth
which is in them. They will speak it out on the out-
side. It is better to keep them in.
'This applies to the Evangelical Churches, as well
as to the Church of England. They say, "It is
heresy. Cast it out." That is very much what the
Church of England has done. It is like the old
practice of medicine, when they bled for everything,
and sometimes the patient died in the end from loss
of blood.
' At the time the Act of Uniformity was foisted on
the clergy, i,6oo clergymen went out. Terms should
have been made with them ; compromise would not
have been difficult, and by not doing so the conscience
of the Established Church was lost. One might suppose
that the Church would have derived wisdom from this,
but it didn't. Wesley was regarded as a fanatic. lie
lived and died in the Church of England, but the
326
Travhl and Talk
1^
whole Wcslcyan body is now out, and the Established
Church thereby lost the best part of the personal
religion and piety within itself. Then came the High
Church revival. It was to exalt the beauty of holiness,
the historical fabric of the Christian Church. This
revival stood for orderly usages and observances.
The Church hounded them out. Newman went over
to the Roman Church.
' These observances were cast out, and much beauty,
reverence and order were thereby lost.
' The last sectarian movement in the Church of
England is what is known as the Broad Church move-
ment. The members of the movement do not like to
have it called a sect. It represents the study of
comparative philology. It is the liberal party of the
Church, and it advocates the study of Church history,
Greek and the historical knowledge of the Holy
Land, so that we may exercise the historical imagina-
tion. In this way dogmas are dissipated, and the
Bible, as a long progressive story of God's relation
to man, is understood. Yet the Episcopal Church
calls members of the Broad Church party infidels, and
wants to cast them out. If this party is expelled, the
Church will lose its learning, science and love of truth.
* Mr. Haweis concluded as follows :
' " There may be in the community some new
truth. It should be dealt with tenderly, lest an angel
is turned out unawares. Beware how by the hand
of persecution you expel what may be the ark of the
living God. Gather up the fragments, that not^
may be lost. Have great toleration for the vt-
capacities of men to see truth. Don't ca; .l i. >
that do not think your thoughts. Whac is cahed
heresy may be truth in a new disguise. Give it 1 me.
Pulpit and Platform
327
Truth is quite capable of taking care of itself in time.
By casting it out instantly you imply a doubt as to
this ability. Let each man have his say, and the con-
science of the community will take care of it. Do not
recommend bleeding. There are remedies more safe
and less drastic than to try to cure a community by
bleeding it to death."
* The usual discussion was omitted, and instead
Mr. riaweis consented to answer some questions.
The first question was for definitions of Low Church,
High Church and Broad Church, as understood at pre-
sent in England. He said that the Low Church is the
most sterile survival of the living movement of the
last century. The High Church looks to the source of
authority in the Roman Catholic Church, though they
do not feel it necessary to join that Church. Both
elements are recognised in the Book of Common
Prayer. The highesJ: of the High Churches have a
ritual very like the Roman Catholic Church. A
majority of the English Churches are High Church, but
more moderate than the extreme examples. The
Broad Church is not a party. It includes clergymen
of all shades of belief, and represents the element of
intellect and culture in the Church.
' The next question concerned the Church Army.
Mr. Haweis said it was doing good work, and is under
the patronage of many clergy and dignitaries, in-
cluding the Archbishop of Canterbury, though the
speaker does not think it is as effective as the
Salvation Army.
* Then one of the Presbyterian brethren inquired
to what branch of the Church the Queen belonged ?
" Oh," said Mr. Haweis, ** she's a good religious woman.
The question of her religion is like that of Dr,
3^«
Travki. and Talk
Johnson's. Some one asked him what rch'^ious beliefs
lie held, and he answered that they were the same as
any sensible man held. The next query was as to
what beliefs sensible men lield, and Dr. Jolinson said
that that was what every sensible man kei)t to
himself"
* In the laughter that followed, no one found out to
which winjT of the Church the Queen belonged.
* Then Mr. ITawcis replied to a question as to the
attitude of the Episcopal clergy on the temperance
question. He said the majority who had to deal with
the masses are total abstainers because this accords
with their hiirhest usefulness.
o
' As to apostolic succession, Mr. Ilawcis said the
Broad Church did not care twopence for it, though
they were willing to accept it if it could be satisfactorily
proved.
' Mr. Ilaweis thinks the attempts at organisation
undertaken by the Lambeth Conference were rather
abortive. This was in reply to a question regarding
the Conference. Throuijhout the talk and the subse-
quentcatechismthe Rectorof St. James's wascxtremely
witty in all that he said. He gave a good plain dis-
course on tolerance, and the most searching truths
were told in an altogether charming manner. Mr.
Ilaweis is an authority on English Church matters
and history, and proved himself an admirable exponent
of the Broad Church idea.'
LXXXIV
Major Hooper. — I have merely given the above
as samples of fair reporting, and of the kind of
addresses I was called upon to deliver ad lib. every
Pulpit and ri-ATroim
1^9
week. Iiuleetl, before I lefl S;m I'laiicisco, I was
asked by the ministers of all tlie i)rincipal relij^ious
denominations to address them.
'fhis I was very willing to do, and tb.c truly
warm-hearted and fraternal reception accorded mi: by
the assembled representatives of well ni^^h every Chris-
tian denomination in the city brought home to tne a
saying of Dr. Jowett's, ' that good men of all sects arc
much more nearly agreed than they themselves
suppose.* Certainly nothing could be more genial
than my intercourse with the Episcopalian and Non-
conformist clergy in San I'rancisco.
My good friend Major Hooper, my landlord and
general protector, stood between me and the various
agencies for wasting my time and strength whilst I
was under liis hospitable roof at the Occidental
Hotel. lie set aside for me the rooms always
occupied by the kite lamented writer Louis Stevenson
in passing to and from Samoa. He rescued me
from the crowd of people who waited to see me
after Sunday evem'ng service. ' Don't let 'em get at
you, they'll tear you to pieces,' he used to say ; and
he stood sentinel at the vestry door and got me out
at ? side door home to supper. He al.so intercepted
visitors, reporters, and bores in the hall. He under-
took to control my business engagements, so that
I should not have to deal with that class of peo[)lc
who thought I could run anywhere for a five-pound
note, or turn out to speak for the hundred and one
philanthropic fads espoused by the hundred and one
philanthropic maniacs who in all large cities prey
upon anybody svho is understood to draw a crowd.
■t-
:
I
IM
330
Tkavfx and Talk
LXXXV
My Agents. — My experience of professional
agents generally in America has not been very
satisfactory.
I took on the services of a Hebrew gentleman
for a short time, who proposed to work up my Golden
Gate Hall lectures at Frisco. His schemes threatened
to be elaborate, costly, and mostly superfluous, much
of his work required promptly undoing, and until I
dealt with this son of Israel I never quite knew what
unconsidered superfluities meant. When it became
evident that I had to be the agent to watch the
agent, I resolved to dispense with the luxury. The
psychological moment arrived when, after an absence
of a day, I returned suddenly to find him sitting in
my private room, in front of my bureau strewn with
my letters and memoranda, and calmly using my
paper and envelopes. After this I became my own
agent. Indeed, the matter was simple. I required
no advertisement. The whole of Francisco knew
where I dined, took tea, and what I said, or did
not say, in the streets. The tradespeople printed
imaginary sentences as advertisements, and all kinds
of haberdashery and other articles were said to have
been used or recommended by me. The reporters,
when they could not hear or be present, put down
what they thought I ought to have said, and surpassed
themselves at last by making me present at two
public meetings at the same day and hour in different
parts of the city, at one of which I was reported as
making a speech about missions at Samoa, a mission
I know nothing of and an island I never visited.
Pulpit and Platform
331
People who sent me invitations registered my pre-
sence at their house in the papers whether I went
or not, and I could hardly ever go outside the hotel
without being accosted by some press gentleman
anxious to know where I was going then, where I had
been last, and, where I expected to be next, and what
I thought of the world and Life and Time and
Francisco. Exaggeration and mendacity seemed to
be reduced to a fine art. Contradiction or correction
made matters worse, so I ended by letting it all alone.
The use made of my antecedents was artistic, and
any peg seemed good enough to hang a legend on.
Great play was made of my having been an evening
preacher at Westminster Abbey and of my holding a
Crown living ; but this was not good enough. I was
paraded in print as special prcacJicr to her Majesty
Queen Victoria ! and as for Westminster Abbey,
you might have inferred that I preached there every
Sunday !
I had indeed loafed about Naples and Capua, and
been present at the last great Garibaldian struggle
which ended in the capture of the Two Sicilies. I
had also induced Garibaldi to write some of his early
memories. This was not nearly sufficient. I had
been, so the papers informed me. Garibaldi's aide-de-
camp at Naples, been wounded by his side, was his
intimate friend, &c. ; in short, when anecdotes were
not forthcoming they were invented, and generally
everybody seemed to know more about my affairs
than I did ; from which it may be inferred that I had
small need of a Hebrew ally to * work up ' publicity for
my lectures at the Golden Gate Hall, San Francisco.
The plain truth is that my lecture room at Fr'sco
was never full ; the people knew well enough all
"
332
Travfx and Talk
about my lectures, but they could hear me every
Sunday, often twice, and on week days beside, for
nothing, and why should they pay ? They did not
pay. The net profits on three Golden Gate Hall
lectures (although admission was only two shillings)
did not exceed forty pounds, exactly half the pro-
ceeds of one night at Sydney, Australia !
But I have not quite done with my agents. In
crossing the Atlantic, I had met an influential gentle-
man, who was very anxious that I should visit
Montreal, and proposed a certain gentleman whom
I will call H. : ' Capital man to organise your route
all along the Canadian Pacific from Vancouver to
Montreal.' A great railway man, who heard me
give an impromptu talk on board the * Teutonic,'
White Star line, for the Seamen's School Charities,
offered me a free railway pass, and this decided me.
Wire communication with H. was set up ; and not
long before leaving Francisco, I received a splendid
programme mapping out my northern route, when
unexpectedly another wire arrived from the great
R. S. Smythe of Melbourne, offering me fifty nights in
Australia and New Zealand if I would step off the
Pacific coast, cither for Auckland or Sydney. But
the glamour of H.'s programme and a free pass over
the Rockies for the moment beckoned me to Canada.
At this time also I received the following kind letter
from his Excellency the Earl of Aberdeen, then
Governor of Canada, offering me the hospitality of
Government House, Ottawa :
I
Pulpit and Platform
333
'Government House, Ottawa: March 4, 1895.
' My dear Mr. Hawels,— I have just received
your kind letter from Vancouver, and I hasten to ex-
press the pleasure which it gives me to hear from you.
' Lady Aberdeen and I would certainly like very
much to be present on the occasion of your Montreal
lecture if it can possibly be managed, but unfortu-
nately we are not living there now, but at Ottawa,
which of course is our head quarters, and where we
have many engagements ahead — all the more because
as an exceptional thing (and to the surprise of our
Ottawa friends) we spent about seven weeks this
winter at Montreal.
' Could you not come here for a night or two en route
either way } It would be a great pleasure to us to
see you, and you might make it a rest. We have to
be absent from to-morrow till Friday, but shall be here
all next week. Meanwhile, I will ask Mr. Cooper to
inform me as to your immediate movements. The
tickets have not yet arrived, though they may be on
their way.
* I hope your health has benefited by the trip.
• Yours very sincerely,
• Aberdeen.
' March 8.
* P.S. — This letter has been returned to me from
Montreal with the explanation that owing to some
hindrances to the arrangements you are not to be in
this quarter on the present occasion, so I am sorry we
shall not see you. I hope you will have a pleasant
voyage and a successful tour in Australia.'
Visiting Tacoma and Seattle along the Pacific
334
Travel and Talk
coast, I reached Vancouver to take up agent H.'s first
engagement.
Perhaps the management had been faulty ; anyhow
the attendance was wretched — there was not five
pounds in the house (I had not yet learned the secret
of running three nights in succession, a plan I after-
wards adopted with such good results in Tasmania
and New Zealand).
Hurrying on to Winnipeg, H.'s next engagement,
I secured two crowded houses, and overflowing con-
gregations on Sunday, my hymn of the ' Homeland '
being sung in more than one church in recognition of
my presence in the city. Then followed in regular
succession a series of mysterious wires from agent H.
Toronto, Ottawa, even Montreal — all, it seems, had
broken down ! In one place the committee would
not come to terms ; in another no hall was vacant ;
in another the theatre had just been burnt down ;
and so forth ; in fact agent H. had brought me three
thousand miles out of my way on a paper programme
for two lectures, and the others had all collapsed !
I
LXXXVI
The Rev. Dr. Garrett. — I immediately wired
to R. S. Smythe, and hurried back to the Pacific coast
gnashing my teeth. Receiving en route most pressing
invitations to return to Seattle, where I had already
preached and lectured, I went on there direct. I had
about a week to make out before sailing for Australia.
The Rev. Dr. Garrett, of Seattle, and his amiable
and accomplished wife, a young lady brought up in
the chosen Concord circle of Emerson, Longfellow,
Pulpit and Platform
335
and O. W. Holmes, welcomed me as an old friend.
Dr. Garrett, in plenitude of manly vigour, and filled
with a noble enthusiasm, gifted with eloquent speech, a
keen intellect, and a warm heart, constantly reminded
me of F. W. Robertson, of Brighton ; his sympathetic,
clear, but glowing pulpit addresses, full of fearless
thought, only strengthened the impression.
It was at his church that I preached again on
my return from Winnipeg. The crowd was such that
it was resolved for the evening service to take the
largest hall in Seattle, holding over two thousand five
hundred people. So in the evening Dr. Garrett,
together with his organist, surpliced choir and whole
staif, adjourned to the platform of the Public Hall,
and hastily arranged for an extemporised service.
I shall never forget the scene on that night. Dr.
Garrett read a shortened form of service with special
lessons most impressively ; he seemed filled and lifted
up with a kind of large-hearted sympathy for the
masses and their deep spiritual needs, and he spoke at
the beginning a few spontaneous words, explaining the
special occasion and exhorting the enormous gather-
ing to reverence and devotion. Soon after the service
began the doors had to be closed ; there was a surging
crowd outside pressing in at all entrances long after
there was no standing room in the hall. The stair-
cases were blocked.
A large American organ occupied the centre ot
the platform, and the white-robed choir spread in a
semicircle from the organ reaching up to the two
officiating clergy at both extremities of the arc. I had
no pulpit or reading desk, b'^'i afvcr the assembly had
336
Travel and Talk
sung * The King of Love my Shepherd is ' with great
fervour, I ad.anced to the middle of the platform,
whence I could command a good view of the
thronged galleries, and commenced my address.
1 soon became aware that something unusual was
going on. Dr. Garrett more than once left his place,
went out, came back, went out again. My ear at times
caught strange murmurs, something like groans, in
the middle of a somewhat highly strung passage, in
which I paused to ask in detail what each had done,
was doing, with the powers of mind and body, oppor-
tunities, talents, which had been entrusted to them,
and dwelt on the sure and inexorable account to
be rendered for the waste or abuse of them ; I heard
abrupt sobs and exclamations ; a certain number of
the people fainted and were got out ; but Dr. Garrett
told me afterwards that much more than that had
been going on — in parts of the hall the excitement
became uncontrollable, and people fell down in fits.
' Upon my word,' said my friend, ' in another moment
I thought we should have had the speaking with
tongues.' It was these unusual commotions, together
with the fear of accidents inside and disturbances
with the crowd outside, which seemed to call for the
personal attention of the Rector, who on so unusual
an occasion was very anxious, for the honour and good
repute of his Church, that everything should ' be done
decently and in order.'
On seeing the great eagerness of the people for a
liberal form of religious instruction, and consider-
ing Dr. Garrett's admirable fitness to impart it, I
urged my friend to open the big Hall (Ranke's) in
which I had preached, for a course of Sunday night
ith great
platform,
of the
iss.
sual was
is place,
at times
roans, in
5sage, in
id done,
', oppor-
o them,
:ount to
I heard
imber of
Garrett
:hat had
:itement
in fits,
moment
ig with
:ogether
rbances
for the
unusual
id good
be done
lie for a
)nsider-
irt it, I
ke's) in
y night
I'ULi'iT AND Platform
Zl>7
services for the people, and aim directly at the
working classes. He did so with the happiest
results. The following kind letter records, amongst
other things, this agreeable fact :
'Seattle : May 13, 1S95.
'My dear Mr. Haweis,— lam greatly delighted
this morning over the arrival of your good letter
written as you were ncaring Sydney. We have been
hoping to have a letter from you, and did not realise
how long it would take for you to complete your
voyage. It is too bad that you had via I dc incr, but
I hope you were able to " brace up " for your lectures.
I envy the Australians the pleasure they are having.
You were on shore for Easter, and I hope you thought
of us on that day. I want you to know how con-
stantly you are in our conversation. We look on
your face every day, and pour forth our desire to see
you again. Mrs. Pumphrey cherishes the memory of
your visit, and speaks of you every time we meet.
She told me a few days ago that two different
persons had said to her that since childhood they had
never prayed, but after your sermon on Prayer they
had attempted prayer with the most comfortittg re-
sults. Now is not that worth all of your trip around
the world with Seattle thrown in ?
' You made a wonderful impression here. Only a
short time ago I saw an editorial in one of our papers
that began : *' When the Rev. Mr. Haweis was in
Seattle, he said," &c. &c. We had a glorious Easter
as told in the " Rubric " I have sent you. The congre-
gations hold up remarkably well. Church crowded
every Sunday. Yesterday I preached on "The
VOL. I Z
i3^
TUAVKK AND TaI-K
)
Ij
Nature of Cluist's Risen Hotly, aiul its relation to a
(leiUM-.il Ivesurrection." It was suj^j^ested by a sermon
of Heber Newton's that has made a sensation. I
took the gmuml that Christ's physical body was
ream'inatcil, somethiiii; not so extiaordinai)-, but a
phenomenon within the lan^e of possibilit)' to-da)- ;
but this reanimalion or the return of the si)irit to the
earthly form was the beginning of the t.jaiiLje out of
the earthl\- altoj^cther intt) the si)iritual ; that the risen
body of Christ was in the state of semi-j;lorification ;
that eventually men would all die that way we don't
know how to die now : time will come perhaps when
gradually the animal will disappear, and the spiritual
srrow more and more luminous until the whole
spiritual body has emerged from the ph)'sical and
can ascend at will into the heavens, I held that the
risen body of Christ is not to be regarded as the exact
pattern of the j;cneral resurrection body, which will
be the clothing of the spirit with some lighter form ;
" the standing up ai;ain in immortality." It made a
deep impression, and numbers came to mc afterwards
to thank mc.
' If you get the *' Rubric " you will read about the
Ranke Hall services, which I kept up at your sug-
gestion and which proved a great success in every
way. W'c had crowds of working men, and the
interest was sustained to the close.
' How we wish you were here for this fine weather
with the mountains all out, and the whole environ-
ment as beautiful as that of Naples or Constantinople.
But you will see scenery enough before you dine in
London.
' The children often speak of you, and will always
remember their kind friend. Whenever you can write,
PUM'IT AND 1*1 ATIOKM
^^9
it will make us very liapp)'. WhaU'cr Inlide, thiiiU
of us always as the (rucsl and nuvsl dcvctlcd iVitiids.
' Yours affci liniiaU'ly,
• D. C. Gaukktt.'
Aftrr accepting an cni^a^cincut from the manaj^jcr
of the Opera House ;it Seattle to ^ive a week-ni^ht
address tlealiu}^ with Colonel Iuj^tsoII and the Miblc,
on whieh occasion I sj)()ke for two hours, I hurried
up to Vancouver, where, by rcfjuest, I ^ave one more
lecture before sailing for Sydney.
Remembering the meaj^re attendance on my first
appearance there a fortm'ght before, I was certainly
not sani^uine ; but arrivin}_j at five nn'mites to cij^hl
I found the staircase crowded. The hall was full ; even
my private room and the sta^e were invaded, and I
had to ri^ up a temi>orary screen on one side of the
platform to retire behind for breathing space between
the parts. I attribute this favourable reaction entire!)'
to my havinjT preached at Vancouver before leaving
for Winnipeg, a practice to which my managers have
been invariably opposed.
On the following night a public reception was
tendered me at Vancouver under the presidency of
my kind friend the Rev. Dr. Tucker, who had been
forward to welcome me on my previous visit. I went
on board the ' Miowera ' at midnight, and sailed before
dawn on March l6, 1895, f(jr Sydney t(j fulfil my fifty
nights' engagement under R. S. Smythe, the king of
managers in the Australasian colonics.
UNivrr;, TT
MOUNT ALlISO^J,
LIBRARY. J
340
Travel and Talk
I have thought it convenient to tlimw together in
one coup (iivil some of my more special Pulpit and
Platform experiences in America, although this has
compelled me to allude to some events and [)laces
which belong only to my 1895 visit to the Pacific
Coast. Having thus made a leap forward at the end
of vol. i. to the March of 1895, I shall have to retrace
my steps, like the old novelists, at the beginning of
vol. ii., in order to gather up the incidents of contem-
porary travel from December 1894 to IVIarch 1895
which have, for the sake of clearness and continuity,
been separated from their Pulpit and Platform
accompaniments.
END OF THE FIRST VOLUME
. PRINTja) IlY . ,
SI'oTTlSWOODli Ar;i) 10., NKW STKI FT Srt AUK
LD.NIiDN
;cthcr in
ilpit and
this has
d places
2 Pacific
: the end
3 retrace
lining of
contem-
:h 1895
ntinuity,
■Matform